Pannekoek - Workers' Councils
Pannekoek - Workers' Councils
Pannekoek - Workers' Councils
S
UQ M'? __ "
'I'
W M
.. ba $' CUCR . ... (la7 7',
waaKEas'
laUNllLS
Works' Councls
By Aton Pannekoek
2003 ]Press in tis format
All rights reserved.
First published in English by:
Southern Advocate for Workers' Councils,
Melbourne, Australia, 1948
ISBN: 1-902593-56-1
Edited with a introduction and bibliography by Robert F. Barsky,
Yale University (2002-3) and University of Western Ontario; with
contributions by Noam Chomsky, MIT; Ken Coates, Bertrand
Russell Peace Foundation, and Peter Hitchcock, CUNY
Press
674-A 23rd Street
Oakland, CA 94612-1163
USA
(510) 208-1700
www.akpress.org
akpress@akpress.org
] Press
PO Box 12766
Edinburgh, ER8 9Y
Scotland
(0131) 555-5165
ww .akuk.com
ak@akedin.demon.uk
The addresses above would be delighted to provide you with the latest com
plete ] catalog, featuring several thousand books, pamphlets, zines, audio
products, video products, and stylish apparel published distributed by
] Press. Alternatively, check out our websites for the complete catalog, latest
news and updates, events, and secure ordering.
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
A catalog record for this title is available from the Library of
Congess.
Cover desig by John rtes
Printed in Canada
TABLE OF CONTENTS
INTRODUCTION, BY ROBERT F. BARSKY . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . V
INTERVIEWS
ROBERT F. BARSKY AD NOAM CHOMSKY. . . . . . . . . . . . . .. VlIl
ROBERT F. BARSKY AND KEN COATES . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . XI
ROBERT BARSK AND PETER HITCHCOCK . . . . . . . . . . . . XIII
J. J. LEBEL AND PAUL MATTCK . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . XII
WORKERS' COUNCILS
PREFACE . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 3
I. THE TASK
1. LABOR . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
2. LAW AND PROPERTY . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 13
3. SHOP ORGANIZATION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 18
4. SOCIAL ORGANIZATION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 23
5. OBJECTIONS . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 28
6. DIFFICUlTIES . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 39
7. COUNCIL ORGANIZATON . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 44
8. GROWT . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 50
II. THE FIGHT
1. TRADE UNIONISM . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 57
2. DIRECT ACION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 61
3. SHOP OCCUPATION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 66
4. POLTICAL STRIKES . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 68
5. THE RUSSIA REVOLUTION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
6. THE WORKERS' RVOLUTION . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 83
III. THE FOE
1. THE ENGLISH BOURGEOISIE ... . .. ............ ..... 99
2. THE FRENCH BOURGEOISIE .. ..... .. . . .... ... . . . .. 103
3. THE GERMAN BOURGEOISIE . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 109
4. NATIONALISM .... . . ...................... . . ... 115
5. AMERIGAN CAPITALISM . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
6. DEMOCRACY . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
7. FASCISM . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 138
8. NATIONAL SOCIALISM . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 144
IV. THE WAR (1944)
1. JAPANESE IMPERIALISM . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 161
2. THE RISE OF CHINA . ....... ... ............ ..... 166
3. THE COLONIES . . .. . . . . .. . . . . . . . . . ... ... .... ... 174
4. RUSSIA AND EUROPE .... .... ........ .. .. ........ 178
5. IN THE AySS . . . . . . . . .. .. .. . . . . .. ... . .. . .. . . .. 183
V. THE PEACE (1947)
1. TOWARD NEW WAR . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 189
2. TOWARD NEW SLAVERY . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 196
3. TOWARD NEW FREEDOM . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 202
RTHER VEADINC, COMPILED BY ROBERT F. WARSK . . 209
Introduction, by Rober Bask
lrkers' Councls is good, solid, working-class literature."
Noam Chomsky
This text of Anton Pannekoek's lrkers1 Councls, which is based on the
1950 Melbourne edition, questions the legitimacy of wage labor and the sub
ordinaton to authority in the workplace. Ideas relating to these crucial issues
are not presented here as a series of convoluted aguments rooted in language
games. Rather, this book sets out in clear and unequivocal terms previously
discussed methods for re-organizing the workplace to meet the needs of ordi
nary people who both man the machines, and purchase the products tey pro
duce.
One migt think, given the frst paragraph, that this book will be a welcome
re-edition of a well-known text. Today, however, this book is part of a large cor
pus of negected works which consider, from a so-called "radical" perspective,
very basic issues of concern to a general reading public. Like so much related
work by anarchists, communists, socialists, wobblies, or others who have
thought about relations of power in the workplace, it ought to be better known.
Anyone who has ever worried about how factories are organized, what role
unions play in determining factory output, why workers have so little say on
shop foors, and how it is that people can speak of "post-industrialization"
the vast number of items produced each day in factories and shops, wil
considerable value in reading these texts. More specialized audiences, such
as people who have come across the work of Gramsc, Lenin, Marx or Trotsky
will be surrised, I think, by the pertinence of Pannekoek's views. People famil
iar with more recent versions of Marxist analysis will be relieved to discover a
writer more obviously engaged in the concerns of ordinary working people,
rather than some version of dialectical writing that has been tainted with the
will for postmodern obscurity. This is a text that is made to be read for its
insigt, but it's also a text that offers a fraework for change which, although
at limes i need of updating, rings true in many places. Finally, people who
know of Anton Pannekoek as a astronomer, and an historian of science, will
be pleasantly surprised that he is yet another example of those great scientists
who have worked on, or given their name to, progressive poltical work.
On the other hand, tere's no question that people less familiar with te
issues raised in this book, or with works by other persons concerned with sim
ilar things, such as Karl Korsch, Rosa Luxemburg, or, more recently, Zellig
Harris, will fmd the book challenging at times. As Ken Coates notes in his
interview, younger readers will need to have a strong historica sense to cut
through Pannekoek's writing, but it is indeed worth the effort. And this effort
wil be assisted considerably, in my opinion, by the isights offered herein by
v
vi WORKERS' COUNCILS
Noam Chomsky, Ken Coates and Peter Hitchcock. It was Chomsky who orig
inaly suggested to Mark Pavlick the need for a new edition of this book, and
in his fascinatng interview he draws attention to the ways in which we can re
cast questions about wage-earners, globalization, and free trade with reference
to this tpe of book. For Chomsky, 1rkers) Councils isn't an ideologically
charged Marxist text, but is instead a sensible approach to critical concerns
about the challenges of being a working person in contemporary society. By
taking this tack, Chomsky helps drive home the point that ordinary workers,
not ideologues, have fought over the years for decent wages, fair settlements,
acceptable living conditions, and equality. Tese people, ad the movements
they have supported, are constanty bashed or ignored by those who lie to
equate concers for human beings wit radicalism or utopianism, as a means
of pandering to the rich and the powerful and promoting their own agendas.
Mark Pavlick, who started the Chomsky discussion crcle in Washington
DC, and who has been concerned with the types of issues raised in this book
for several decades, suggested that I pursue the project. I have relied upon
Mark's wisdom ad suggestions throughout this long process. His new collec
tion of unpublished and early Chomsky texts (forthcoming from Common
Courage Press) will further demonstate the value of this book for curent
debates. Ken Coates has been a tieless correspondent and a wise source of
information he has collected, in his many writings and hs priceless reminis
cences. My dear friend Peter Hitchcock, who has doggedly pursued work on
the "workers of the world" from a range of cultural, economic, and historical
perspectives adds a whole new dimension to this work by discussing
Pannekoek's views about Chinese workers, and by providing a framework for
thinking about Pannekoek in the contemporary working-persons setting.
Finally, I should add that this book appears as I put the final touches upon a
biography of Zellig Harris, Noam Chomsky's teacher, and the author of a book
(published posthumously) caled 1 Trantion 0 Capitalist Societ. Readers
interested in different models for re-tinking workplace inequality and factory
inefciency would derive significat benefit from some of Harris's insights.
Even more dramatic given te current crisis of capitalism is the appearance of
Seymour Melman's monumental tome, Afer Cpitalism: Fom Manalism Lo
T%rkplace Democrat), an up-to-date example of how truly radical thinking can
contribute not only to productive freedom in the workplace, but to a better
society. My frequent discussions with Chomsky, Coates, Hitchcock and
Melman on such fundamental topics as worker organizations brings significant
light to a context that is darkened by an ever-widening gap between the haves
and te have-nots, the workers and those who can afford to buy the goods, the
First and the Thrd Worlds, at a time when "security" can serve as a excuse
for more militarism and more ilegitimate intrusion into people's lives, rater
INTRODUCTION vii
than better organizations of those institutions which we rely upon to survive
from one day to the next.
lowe words of thanks to the Socal Sciences and Humanities Research
Council, the University of Western Ontario, ad Yale University, and, in par
ticular, to Doug Kneale, Michael Holquist, Kathleen Okruhlik, and Elise
Snyder. Tyler Tokaryk's assistace in the final edit was invaluable. Ad [mally,
my thanks again to Patricia Foxen, my love and inspiration.
Robert F. Barsky
New Haven, CT
Robert F. Barsk ad Noa Chomsk
VLV1 P1bY: Why should we re-publish Pannekoeks work today?
LDWLLWbY: Tere is a spread, for the frst time in may years, of
a sigficant public callenge first of all to the existence of the corporation, a
very questionable type of economic organization, and more deeply, there's
questoning of te legitimacy of wage labor and the subordination to authority
in the workplace. This is what Anton Pannekoek is talking about in Trkers'
Councils. Herein, he draws from very deep traditions, all over the West, which
sometimes have no connection to Marxism or any radical tradition; for exa
ple, te Republic Party of the United States. In the 18608, the Republican
Party was opposed to wage labor, which it regarded as not different from chat
tel slavery. That was a standard view in the independent workers movement.
And if you read materia from the American working class press in the 18505,
whch was run by young women from the farms and by laborers from down
town Boston, and others, it's the same perceptions and convictions. It comes
from their own sense of what they call republicansm, that is, that free men and
women don't sell themselves, they don't enter servitude to a monarchcal
authority, which is how they regarded the industrial system. You can even read
editorials in the York Times from this period which denounce wage labor.
The Knights ofLabor,l the main United States labor union in the 19t
h
Century,
was also committed to colective worker ownership. Even in the early days of
the Aerican Fderaton of Labor in the 18905, you had members discussing
this. These were very deeply-rooted ideas, and they come straight out of 18t
h
century conceptons of natural rights, the rights of fee people, whch in those
days mostly meant free men. Te working class press at that time was run by
women, to a large extent, though, and it contained the same ideas, ad we see
it again in the Homestead Strike in the 1890s. It took a long time to drive them
out of peoples' heads, and then never completely disappeared. So tere's a res
onance today, when you talk about them to working class groups, at least in
the United States. All tris has real meaning, and here in Trkes' Councils we
have an intelligent exposition with an historical background, coming out of a
different tradition, the European socialist tradition, which feeds into tlrs, and
provides a bacing, which can stimulate it and lead to extremely important
developments.
V This book contains idas as well as specc details about how to tranir soci-
1 thee still some value in the more technicl details q this book for the conteporary
world?
L: Things have changed, but I don't thin that the fundamentals have. So
let's take informaton technology, which is new. The iformation technology
Vlll
I NTERVIEWS i
itself is kind of neutal. It can, and is being used to dominate and contol the
workforce. But you can also use it to provide real tme information to people
on the shop foor, to enable people to make global decisions about plant activ
ities by themselves, without managers. There's an interesting study of this in
David Noble's work [Progress Wthout Peopl, }ores q Production], and indeed it's
exactly what he was talking about. When automation came along, and espe
cially numercal processing and computer contol of machine tools, the early
efforts to apply them were done under the auspices of the mltary, because tat
way it was essentially cost-free. So it could have gone either direction; the tech
nology that was available could have been used to increase managerial control
and de-skill mechanics, which was done, or it could have been used to elimi
nate managerial control and to put control into the hands of skilled workers.
The decision to do the frst and not the second was not based on economic
motives, as Noble points out pretty successfully, but was made for power rea
sons, in order to maintain managerial control and a subordinate workforce.
There was evidence that frms could have made more money by working the
other way, tat is, according to capitalist principles. The fact that this didn't
occur is a good exanlple of what happens troughout the workforce.
V: Te viw we hear most qfen n that without manageril control, no progres would be
possibl/ Pannekoek book, and what you've Just said, the opposite, that managers
have ipedd pro,goess.
L:It might well be, and this goes back to the ealy 19th Century. If you look
at 19th Century materials about the early Industrial Revolution in te United
States-I haven't looked but I'm sure that it would be the sae in England
repeatedly there are cases where decisions were made not on nrrow econom
ic grounds-proft-but on grounds of subordination ad domination, to organ
ize production in partcular ways. This actually caused problems for American
industries in te 1970s, when they were falling behnd Europe and Japan; it was
in considerable part because of the hierarccal system of US production, with
layers ald layers of management, whch took decisionmaking away from the
hands of working people, people who can make these decisions more effective
ly than managers. Europe and Japan had other teciques, like qualit control
groups, so there was some devolution of decisionmaking there, although not
much, but it too turned out to be more efcient than the American system.
That led to calls for what was called the "re-industrialization of America" that
went on in the 1980s, when the Reagan administration essentially dosed the
America maket in major industries, assumig that otherwise they were going
to be wped out by Japanese competition. What happened during this period
was that tere was a re-constitution of the steel industry, the auto industry, te
semi-conductor industry, and so on, maintaning the heavy layers of control,
but moving more towards the lea production style of the Japanese and
x WORKERS' COUNCILS
German manufacturing. This was a response to the de-skiling of the American
workforce. This is discussed in the technicalliteramre, including work by out
standng economists like Robert Solow ad others, who point out that the
Unted States does not provide the technical training and the skill training that
is standard for most of the population, meaning
t
he workforce, i places like
Germany and Japan. In an era of production in which skills really mtter,
where the repetitive tasks can be done by robots, you only need people to do
more skilled work. If you haven't developed fundamental skills in the popula
tion, like basic literacy, numeracy, vocational educaton and so on, ten you'll
fall behind. A friend of mine who has worked OIl the free school movement,
and is now involved in educational innovaton projects at the university level
in Massachusetts, has pointed out that the technical schools are often much
more imaginative and free in the way that education proceeds than are the uni
versities, because they just have to train people to do things. The sciences are
like that as well; you train people, they work with you, and that is the way peo
ple lear.
V: Pannekoek dscrbes this ver isue f!worker managemet q/roduction and interests
in ways flUt folow this modl empl(ed in the scinces.
L: Pannekoek of course was a well-known astronomer. Sciences have to
work like that, and they have for a long time. Those ideas come straight out of
the Enlightenment, actually, notably Rousseau, Humboldt, and back even fur
ter_ It picked up in the left-Marxist traditions, and the independent work
ing class traditions, whic have separate roots. They go in parallel, and they
have been suppressed i parallel, but they ca re-emerge and interact with one
another.
V: What about another parallel, between the anarcho-syndclists and the Council
Communists? Both share some q/ these uc, and both have irueced, and been iruenced
b, Anton Pannekoek.
L: Anarco-syndicalists and Council Communists were at this time almost
indistinguishable. In fact, they cooperated pretty closely; if you look at
t
he lit
erature on the reactions to the Spanish revolution, the anachist revolution, the
Council Communists were, like the anarcho-syndicalists, very positive.
Important fgures from the two sides, Karl Korsch ad Rudolph Rocker, were
saying about te same things.
V: But Innekoek in this book is hard on the union movement, saying that
replicate the societ, notabl hierrchical relationshi to workers.
L: They do.
at tmes
V In that sense his sympathyfor anardlo-syndiclism may be somewhat mitated.
INERVIEWS Xl
L: It depends upon what kind of union we're talking about. The union is the
collective organization of the workers, which takes over production and dist
bution, and so on, and interacts with communities. In this sense the union is a
combinaton of Pannekoek-style council communism, anarcho-syndicalism,
and Kopotkin's emphasis on community organization. That combination
maes great sense. Mter all, a work place is not just a work place, it's also in a
community. The community has a role to play and what it does to the people
in it has important effects on the community, as on others who are not in the
workplace itself or the local community. Those kind of interactions have to be
an essential part of any society based upon voluntary association.
V: So this woul appl a much to !lOusing a to the workplce?
L: Indeed. One of the successfl anarcist-initiated developments in Canada
is the major housing cooperative in Montreal, which is a good model for lots
of things.
V: Where Pannekoek is ls clear is on the reltionhi between the institutions
required for, say) the distrbutn 0 resources requiredfr all workers) councils) such a power
o water. Is this afw?
L: I'm personally skeptcal about detaied descriptions of the future society;
I just don't think we know enough. And ths applies a well to fne detailed
descriptions, for example, Diego Abad de Santillan's 1937 book, Afer the
Revolution. De Satillan was close to the Spanish anarchists, and he wrote a very
detailed description of how they should organze society after the revolution. It
was very critical of the Spanish anarchists, and of what they were doing, and
in his book you'll [md a extremely detailed account of what he thought the
society ought to look like. In my view, though, it's too detailed; we don't know
enough. Te kinds of questions you're asking here are very serious, but the
answers to them will be learned by experiment; you try, you see how it works,
and then you try other things. Nobody is smart enough to plan a societ. You
can talk about some of the principles upon which a society should work, and
you can set up guidelines as to how to implement them, and how to experiment
with tem, and there are probably many different ways of doing them. There's
no reason to believe that there's only one right answer; tere are lots of dfer
ent answers, with advantages ad disadvantages, and people have to choose
between them on the basis of experience, what has happened to others, and so
on. This is tre in every area. Take for example the problem of controlling
criIninal activity. Any society, no matter what it wl contain people you are
afraid of. What do you do with people you're afraid of? For one reason or
anoter, they cannot become part of the functioning societ. This is true of
families, tue in comnities, true in the world. So you have to have ways of
dealing with it. You want to fnd the most humane, and least punitive mode of
xii WORKERS' COUNCILS
doing this, but it's had t believe that there won't be any crie or anti-social
behavior. Humans are just to complicated. Every one of us has anti-social ten
dencies, and under certan circumstaces, some of them will come out, and
when they do, tey have to be controlled. You can see that with your own dl
dren. But there are no formulas for how to do it, any more than there are for
mulas for raising your children. These are things that have to be worked out
through experience, and institutions have to be constructed to deal with them.
Once constructed, they ten have to be modifed, and exmined, with
skepticism, in an experimental spirit. This applies as well to schools, and every
thing else.
V: messae ?! thi text i tat you can exercise control over your ownfuture, and you
can be productive while satijing your own interests. So even when Pannekoek is critical, as
he is ?f the unins, he remai optimistic about our abilit to set up a societ in which peo
ple can productivel pursue their own interests.
L: Pannekoek's criticism of unions is historically specifc. He's talking about
the unions that existed, not necessarily working-class associations, which could
be different. Even at the time, I thnk that the criticism was too harsh, since the
unions were spearheadng reformist social democratic initatives, which were
extremely important for people. That's why the unions are under such vicous
attac, and have been ever since the 1940s; there are efforts to try to dimnish
or destroy the possibilites that flow from the iitiatives that they supported,
and which aimed for democratization and the improvement of human lfe.
Those are not insigificant things; as a result, people can health cae, edu
cation, opportunities to control their own communities, and tat is all good,
even if it's not workers' control. Yes, unions reproduce the structure of society
in bad ways, but then you deal with that.
V: Is Pannekoek work consitent with Zellig Har' idas, which have now been pub
lished in his posthumous J55 book The Transformaton of Capitalist Society?2
There are obvious points q overlap in ters q workers control,3 but how close are the?
L: Zellig Harris's work draws from these circles. Harris and Paul Mattick
were close friends, and Mattick comes straight out of Pannekoek's tradition;
indeed, he was responsible for making Pannekoek's ideas known, or at least for
distributing the original Pannekoek book. So sure, ths is coming from exactly
the same background. Harris moves in different directions, though, because
he's thinking of ESOPs [mployee Shared Ownership Plas), and other tech
niques by which workers' control can be introduced, that by mechaisms
that actually exist within the capitalist society. Tere are thngs that can be
done in that framework, and in fact there are major entities that are techncal
ly under workers' control, like United Arlines, which in principal is under
workers', and not management, control. And pension funds are under workers'
INTERVIEWS xiii
control in principle, by no means in practice. If devices like that are used in
order to take over part of the functioning of society, then that is a move in the
directon that Pannekoek is talking about. It makes use as always of what is
available, which can be a good idea, as far as it goes.
V. The other Jnction that thi book could perhaps ply is to counteat the endlessl
reeated thee that in !oey's world there's no atenative to the status quo.
L: That is really nothing other than cheap propaganda, and it is successful
among people who benefit from it. Tere's nothing surprising about that. The
same people could have told you that there's no alternatve to fascism. If you
look at the early period of corporatization, say the early part of the 20t
h
cen
tury, you see that it was understood to be a radical attack on clasical liberal
ism. Corporatization essentially undercut the crucial core idea of classical lib
eralism, that rights inere in people, that rights are something that people have.
It held, in contrast, that rights are something that organic entities have. In some
respects, fascism, Bolshevism, and corporatization have the sae intellectual
roots, neoHegelian ideas about the rights of orgaic entities. Tey come from
the same texts, Germn philosophy of the late nineteenth century. This was
proposed by progressives, who recognized, very clealy, that it was going to
destroy the freedoms of people in the United States, but it had to be done. It's
interestg to read people like Woodrow Wilson in this regard. He was a pro
gressive, in the ealy 20t
h
Century, and he said eorporatization was absolutely
necessary; but he was also very clear about it. He said that the old America, of
free independent people, is gone. From now on, people are going to be the ser
vants of corporate entities. It was nice to have a free society, but, goodbye.
Goodbye, because there was no aternative. And in a certain sense, that was
correct. Te market systems were terribly destructive, you couldn't let them
continue to function. They had to be administered, and business, of course,
wanted to administer them itself. So they administer them themselves internal
ly, through conglomerates of one sort or another, trusts, corporations, whatev
er. From a theoretical point of view any business firm, a mom and pop grocery
store for example, is a market failure. The business firm has a technical descrip
tion in modern economics: it's a local solution to market imperfections when
the transaction costs are too high. In ordinar laguage, the finn is a market
imperfecton because it is administering economic interactions interally, and
not through the market. When you go from a mom and pop grocery store to
General Electrc, you're talking about an enormous market imperfection. And
it's a recogition by the capitalists themselves that the markets are simply too
destuctive to function, so we have to admister and control them. That wa
the "tere is no alternative" idea of the early 20t
h
Century, and it simply con
tinues. There's an interesting teology about tade that has been developed,
and here economists have a lot to answer for. Trade is being held up as some
xiv WORKERS' COUNCILS
kind of holy thing that you have to maximize, but of course trade has no value
in itself. It's a vaue to the extent that it has positive welfare efects. Otherwise
it's not a value, it's not like feedom, for example. The claim is that the new
form of what is misleadingly called globalization increases trade, and that's
good. Well, the fact of the matter is that even in the way that they measure
trade, globalization doesn't increase it. So the growth in trade is not faster than
it was during the Bretton Woods period, say. Furthermore, if you take a look
at wht is called trade, you fnd that by any reasonable measure, tradc may in
fact be declining. The reason is that an enormous part of what is called trade
is centrally-managed. So intra-frm trade, trade within a single corporaton, is
considered trade. If General Motors moves parts fom Indiana to Illinois for
assembly, and ten back to Texas to sell, you don't call this trade. But you do
call it trade when you move it across the border to Mexco and back. And that's
no smal part; US trade with Mexico is probably more than 50% intra-fr.
And that's only a piece of it. When you do out-sourcing, that is, in order to
destroy unions and get the cheapest possible labor, and disposable labor, and
when you forget about environmental effects, and so on, a standard device is
out-sourcing. In that case you don't produce your own batteries, or something,
you out-source tem to some small company that doesn't have to obey work
stadards, or whatever it may be. Tis is often in foreign countries. A good
deal of what is called trade is the interaction through out-sourcing, and that is
centrally managed. Beyond tat, the whole economy, everywhere, is moving
towards oligopoly, which means several huge corporations dominating a par
ticular component of the economy. Corporations partially compete, but they
also partialy cooperate. If you look at the auto industry, you'll see tat it has
narrowed considerably from what it was 20 or 30 years ago. Furthermore, if
you look at the companies, you'll see that they partially own each other, and
they work on joint projects together, and they have the same representatives on
their Boards of Directors, and so on. All of this ends up being kind of a mer
cantiist system, in which what Adam Smith would have called 'trade' is a small
component of what is going on. You can't assign numbers to it, and the reason
for this is that corporations are totalitarian institutions, and they don't tell you
what tey are doing, any more than the Kremlin told you what it was doing.
Tere's a way to fmd out what corporations are doing, though; in the US,
Congress has subpoena power, and it can, if it wanted to, open the books. One
of the major efforts of union leaders in te 1950s was to open the books; tey
sad, "tell us what you're doing, don't be fascistic or Stalinst". Well, the unions
lost that one, but the right remains there. Te public has the right to force them
to open the books ad to discover what is goig on. Is there trade? Let's forget
about whether trade is good or bad, because it's not obvious, but the question
is it really happening? Or is what is happening to a large extent nothing
other than centrally-admiistered interaction with high-levels of managerial
INTERVIEWS xv
control in what amounts to a glohal mercantilist system? In parts of this sys
tem, like aircraft production, you can see this dearly. Tere's presently a dis
pute between Brazil and Canada, which is kind of comical, because they ae
arguing about subsidies to airline manufacturers. Okay, these are two little
midgets bickering about subsidies. I the meantime, the comercial aircraft
idustry is in the hands of two corporations, Boeing and Airbus. Both of them
are state-subsidized, and neiter of them could exist without massive subsidies.
Boeing was an offshoot of the United States Arforce, which is where much of
the techology is developed, so we all end up flying around in modifed army
transport planes. Now it's down to those two companies, and that is te biggest
civilian export. Automobile manufacturers are down to about half a dozen
frms, all of them inter-linked. And that is the direction that everything is going.
So if you care about what is actually happening, the economy is moving
towards totalitarian control, or mercantilistic control, and the claim is, as it has
been since the late 19t
h
Century, there is no alternative. And in a sense there
isn't, if the only alternative is markets, which are too destructve, so you have
to have administration. But then there's the obvious question: why does the
administration have to be totalitarian? You could say the same thing about gov
ermental structures. In some respects they may be more efficient when they
have totalitarian features, but that's not an argument for them.
RB: You've just done a trul radial analsis!
NC: None of ths is profound, anybody can understand this. As soon as you
decode a little bit of the propaganda, you can say yes, tat is what is right in
front of us.
RB: That's certainl the impressio one has in reading Workers' Councils, that there's
an obvious validit and a cear-headed presentato.
NC: It is obvious in the sense that chldren could understand it. It's not like
quantum physics. You don't have to have a profound understanding of deep
subjects in order to grasp what it's about, just ordinary common sense, a will
ingness to look at the facts that are available to us. Of course one quickly dis
covers that many of these facts are not available to us, because they are kept
secret. They are kept secret in principle withn quasi-totalitarian institutions.
RB: Another way that they are kept secret i that texts like thi: one whih talk about these
meas are so hard tofnd. And yet when we read a book like Workers' Councils, wefnd
it very understandble and usql.
NC: Tis particular book was last printed in the 1950s, and back then, who
read it? 25 people? And it is not filled with Marxist jargon. Pannekoek of
course is a Marxist, but you didn't have to know that, you could read it and
xvi WORKERS' COUNCILS
forget the Marxist framework. such, it's good, solid, working-class litera
ture.
Notes on Robert 1. Barsky ad Noam Chomsy Interview
1. For a sense of this orgaization, see
http://w.spartacus.schoolnct.co.uklUSAknights.htm
2. Zellig S. Haris, Te Tarufomation qCapitalist Socit, Lanham MD, Rowman and
Litt lefield, 1997.
3. To address this obvious lacuna, I have recently completed Zellg' Ameica: Linuistis,
Radicl Plitis and Zionism m m 1zum Centu, Cambridge; Lndon: T he MIT Press,
2003.
Robert F. Barsk ad Ken Coates
ROBERT BARSKY: The worl has changed cons idabr sinc the mid le qthe ?0'"
centr} when Workers' Councils was frst published-or has it? Rnekoek describes
problemsfcing workers organizations whih are still with u tody} and many qthe condi
tions which prevailed when thil text wa producd still reign) inot in our own countris) in
many regions q the 17 Worl. But does the method isocil organization proposed here
still seem toical to you?
KN COATES: The world of work has changed enormously since the mid
dle of te last century. Concentration means that geater powers of capital are
ranged against more fragmented, and even isolated work forces. This process
has been complex. It has entailed, amongst other things, a movement of man
ufacturing away from traditional centers to newly-industrial counties, com
monly employing very low paid workers, often in unsafe and primitive condi
tions. But even when conditions have been more advanced, the result has been
dire in the traditional centers, entailing a great increase in structural unem
ployment. In response, we have seen a growth of non-manual, part-time, and
short-term employment. A large scale shift into service industries has changed
the pattern of labor organization, generating a sharp growth in service unions.
The movement of capital into the service sector has threatened and is threat
ening public sector services. The scale of mechanization has commonly
reduced the size of individual work forces, and rendered the organzation of
trade unions more difficult, between individual plants, sectors of production,
and transnational outposts. Simply to describe the complexities of workers'
organization in moder companies thus requires a very complex matrix.
Accordingly, it is clear that the powers of capital today require a more inven
tive and far more cosmopolitan response from unions.
RB: In
)
t it the cse that some q these GTeative aproaches have cme}om outie the
unions
)
particlarr more recentry?
KC: 1bere has been a blossoming of voluntary organizations concerning them
selves wth te adverse impact of industry, whetber on the global envionment,
or on local social amenities, or on human and social rights. This fowering of
civil society has begun to make possible overall criticism of the present struc
ture of society, through, amongst other initiatives, the Porto Alegre process,
which has joined labor unions into its framework.
H: You have worked your whol le with the labor movement) but you were alo elected
to the Euroean Parliment) which must have jett a long way}om the sho foor; d you
still fnd yoursel cononted with the prinile issues which were q concr to you when frst
you started your union stugls?
XVll
xviii WORKERS' COUNCILS
KC: I was not re-elected to the Europea Parliament in 1999, although I did
previously work for ten years in that area. I spent the frst fve years as
Chairman of the Sub-Committee on Human Rghts, working within conven
tional Parliamentay structres across the whole range of human rights issues.
In my second term, I stepped down from that responsibility which has been
very onerous indeed, because I wished to devote myself much more actively to
the problem of mass unemployment i Europe. I had agitated for the estab
lishment of a 'Iemporary Committee on Employment, charged with the task of
preparing the Parliament's response to European unemployment. When tat
Committee was formed i 1994, I became its Rapporteu1 and drafted its two
reports, both of whch were carried by overwhelming majorities. But both were
ignored by the Council of Ministers, leaving the Parliament's opinions com
pletely sidelined. The proposals upon which we had agreed were broadly neo
Ke
y
esian within the fanlework which had been proposed by Jacques Delors,
the President of the European Commission. Ibat the European governments
flatly rejected all such proposals was a very clear indicaton in the middle 1990s
that neo-liberalism was in the driving seat i the European institutons, and
dIat the conventional postwar social democratic perspectives were now seri
ously challenged. That the challenge sometinles came form social democratic
governments themselves did not mae our political responses any easier.
H: Yu in fact used the fcilits and the clout to pursue work relating to civil societ, the
tpe r work one would expect to fnd in a parliament, but one which has been so prqound
l overshadowed r late by the combination r militarism an neo-liberalism.
KC: During all my ten years in the Parliament, ! tried to make use of its facil
ities in order to develop greater scope for European civil society. This is not the
sum of "n' national civil societies: the existence of strong pensioners' associa
tions in Englald or Greece does not in itself add up to a greater capacity by
pensioners to defend their interests at te European leveL JO try to assist in
more rapid convergence, ! proposed te convening of a European Pensioners'
Paliament. Under the sponsorship of the Socialist Group of MEPs, a full-scale
European Paliament of pensioners was convened, drawn from every countr
in the European Union. TIle pensioners were able to agree on a comprehensive
chater of joint demands, and the whole process greatly increased intracton
and networking beteen existing national movements. It was followed by a sec
ond Pensioners' Parliament under the auspices of the European Parliament
itself. As a result of these initiatives, disabled people approached me, and, with
some difcult, there were able to organize a Disabled Peoples' Parliament,
which had a very dramatic effect in strengthening the co-operation of organi
zations or people with disabilities all across the area of the European Union.
Once we had been blocked in our attempt to enforce job-creating policies,
INTERVIEWS xix
throughout the European Union, we convened two full-scale assemblies of
unemployed people, within the same general perspective.
H: Do youfel tht your approach to worker' concerns has evolved considrabl through
time, or do the same truirms apl? Are there texts, by, say, Nam Chomsky, Antonio
Gramsci, David Nbl or Bertrand Russell which remainfr you basic textsfr those inter
ested in these ifsues? How des Anto Pannekoek awork resonate a regard these other fg
ures?
KC: Obviously my approach to the development of the freedom of working
people has evolved, but there are certain constants which are very evident. Yes,
these may be embodied i certain texts. But it is a most remarkable text which
can refect the heaving mix of concerns which express themselves through liv
ing social movements. Pannekoek's work stands out well in this respect, with
the reservation that I mak out in my response to your next question. In the
Institute for Workers' Control, which I helped to establish during the 1960s,
our approach did not follow, in any conventional way, the dissemination of any
particular texts. Of course, we drew upon al the teachers you mention: but we
also derived most of our practice from the British worker's education move
ment. As a result, we sought to develop collectve responses by groups of work
ers who worked out their own ideas about how they might go forward. Such
groups were helped by workers' educationaists such as Michael Barratt Brown
and Tony Topham, who provoked groups of steel workers, miners, dockers,
and bus men into generating their own detailed proposals for industrial democ
racy in dleir industries. T hese proposals vary considerably, not only in relation
to the different industrial conditions in the areas concerned, but also in relation
to the range of ideas upon which particular groups of workpeople could draw.
Some of these ideas shared affinites with, say, the Guild Socialists; others were
closer to te industrial unions. But such study as took place was the better
informed because workers had themselves struggled directy with te problems
which had troubled the pioneers in an earlier generaton.!
H. Anton Pannekoek exhibit a deep suspicion about trade unions in thif text,farl that
the miht reproduce the ver structures the have been set up to combat. Wat do you think
about thif part 0 hif work?
KC: The suspicion of trade unions was very common, among trade unionists
themselves. You will recall Tom Mann's very famous outburst, at the begnning
of his life as a militant engineer:
"How long, how long, will you be content with the present half
hearted policy of your Unions? I readiy grat that good work has
been done i the past by the Unions, but, in Heaven's name, what
good purpose are they serving now? Al of them have large num
bers out of employment even when their partcular trade is busy.
x WORKERS' COUNCILS
None of the important societies have any policy other than that of
endeavoring to keep wages from falling. The true Unionist policy
of aggression seems entirely lost sight of: in fact the average union
ist of today is a man wth a fossilized intellect, either hopelessly apa
thetic, or supporting a policy that plays directly into the hands of
te capitalist exploiter."2
But although down the years new generations of trade union members have
echoed this frustration, it is equally true that down the years they have made
great gains, without passing beyond the capitalist forms of organization.
Indeed, the English meaning of the words "Workers' Control" captures a more
complex reality. When they succeed in controlling hiring and fring, workers
have not established their rule over the enterprise. But they have effectively
restricted the powers of the employer to do as he wishes. The whole history of
trade union agitation is the story of the encroachment of powers by the
workpeople's collectives, and the crcumscription of what used to be seen as the
employer's prerogatives. In this sense, trade unions have been a part of the his
torical separation of powers, and have limited the arbitrary capacity of employ
ers to goveru the work places as they wish. Tis process was actually fostered
by successive Governments before and during the First World War, in an effort
to encourage industrial peace. It advanced with giant strides during the Second
World War, when Ernest Bevin, one of te principal agitators between 1914
and 1918, became Minister of Labor in the coaition Government, and imposed
a regime of joint consultation on often recalcitrant employers. This was ful of
ambiguities, as was Bevin's later and much more expanded contribution, whch
saw n aiding in the reconstruction of the German trade union movement,
while he was the Brtish Foreig Secretary in the post-war Labor Government.
Wiseacres claimed that the structure of the Transport and General Workers'
Union had been transplanted into Germany as a result.
RB: How did you approach this proble in your own work?
KC: We had long discussions about ths. Could it grow over into full-scale self
management, in which workers could determne te objectves of the enter
prises in which they worked, and establish new forms of self-government?
Revolutionaries such as Lenin and Trotsky changed their views about the role
of trade unions with experience. At times, Trotsky shared Pannekoek's impa
tience. But at other times, as in his polemic with Thalheimer, he was strongly
insistent on workers' control as a negatve constriction of employer power,
firmly to be demarcated from workers' self-management. During a fanlOus
post-revolutionary controversy, Lenin made great play of the importance of
trade unions as educatonal bodies, at te same time that he developed a sharp
doctrine of separation of powers, with the intention of curbing bureaucratic
authoritarianism in the institutions of the revolution. The idea of the Workers'
INTERVIEWS xxi
and Peasants' Inspectorate accepted that the workers needed effectve instru
ments to control their own representatives. Not only was tis insight under
stood by the Yugoslavs when they set out to develop the institutions of self
management, but extensive experiments were made with the intention of act
ing upon it. Much of the interna history of trade unions has been about assert
ing and re-asserting this principle. At the very beginning of \Vebb's History, we
lear about how the trade unions controlled their own funds from peculation
by greedy treasurers, by keeping them in boxes with three locks, just as the
Church and Chapel funds had been safeguarded by previous generations. The
treasurer could only access the union's money, wth the co-operaton of those
auditors who kept the other keys, and ensured probity in the dispensation of
cash.
RB: In Englnd I met a representative fom a large booksellr who said that Noam
Chomsky' work u sold priaril to younger people (16-25 years qf age) which miht lead
us to sugest al sorts rf things about disillusionment with conteporar socit. Can you
iagine that eve despite the dff erences in tone) approach astl that thi, same goup
peol willfind Anton Pannekoek' work compelling?
KC: Chomsky is preaching democracy to people who have to make sense of
the oppressions of the 21st Century. Young people will need to have a strong
historical sense to cut throug the earlier arguments of Pannekoek, who was
addressing those problems of which we have been speakng. I think it is worth
the effort.
H: Yu have been working/or a long tie in the Bertrand Russell Peace Foundtion) and
in some ways have continued to work in ways consistent with his approac. Is it approriate
to consir what, if any relatios exist beteen the work iRussell and Pannekoek?
KC: I don't tink that Russell knew of Pannekoek, aldlOUgh this could be
checked out at the archives at McMaster University.3 Russell's own little book,
Road, to Feedom4, is still worth reading, and has a lively chapter on the syndi
calist revolt, which is mainly inspired by the CGT [Confderation Generale du
Travaill in France, the De Leonists in the United States, and the IW
[nternational Workers of the World]. It daws heavly on the work of G. D. H.
Cole in England.
RB: Someone who has i dct picked up the tpes rf questions the both adress is Smour
Melman, whose new book, After Capitalism/ dals with the needfr workplce rif or
to adress the US' march towards an economi model imanagerilism whih ominousl
resebls i important ways the USSR' "plnned economy." He said to me recentl that he
hopes to somedy write his memoirs, which he hopes to call I never changed my mind!.
I think that he' riemng here to hi basic apprah to issues, and the fundamental values
which guide his thinkin about fundmental issues conceing, fr example, workplac
xxii WORKERS' COUNCILS
deocracis. Have you "changed your mind" about the tpes of isues dicussed in here) and
i so) in which ways?
KC: No, I agree with Seymour Melman, and on the big tings I feel more con
vinced than ever I did that the domination of one man or woman by another
is a crime aganst our future. If aything, I've become more extreme in this
vew, but I have long believed that a truly human societ will be one in which
no-one has ever taken an order or performed an action without knowing why.
On the oter hand, what most people mean when they speak of "changing
their minds" is not modfying their deep convictions, but , simply, learning
about conjunctural matters. On the whole that is a good idea! "When circum
st ances change I change my mind. What do you do?" said]. M. Keynes.
Notes on Robert 1.Barsky and Ken Coates Intervew
1 . A brief guide to tis confcting mass of doctrines cn be found in Industrial
Deocrac in Great 1rmm MacGibbon ad Kee, 1967, eds. Ken Coates and Tony
lapham.
2. Ken Coates and Tony Topham, Te Makig (lthe Tansport and Gneral Workers '
UnUm, Blackwell, 1991 , volume 1 , part 1, p. 42.
3. htp://www.mcaster.ca/mssdocsimssell.hLm
4. Roads to Feedom: Socalim, Anarchism, and Syndicalism. London, 1 91 8.
5. Seymour Melman, Afler Capitalism: Fom Managclilir1n t Wrkplae Deocrac, N:
Knopf, 2001
Robert F. Bask ad Peter Hitchcock
ROBERT BARS b: This is an unusual text in some ways) a long pamphlt} a ped
gogil guide to 7l0dfig workes' reltions} a polemil essay) and a kind qf popular his
tory ithe workin class and its relations to land and mahine owners. You yourself have
worked a lot on working ds ton and non:ctions) tell me how you see the genre in which
Pannekoek wrtes) and how this er xt the substance ithe arument.
PETER HITCHCOCK: I think it would be interesting to explore the text as
a kind of fiction, as it refects on the fictive being of working-class subjectivity
for instance. Then agan there is the question of Chinese fctions (fctions about
China) and this is perhaps more pertinent on this occasion. Here Pamlekoek is
polemical to a degree that threatens the foundation of the argument. Part of the
problem is simply the form: the pamphlet mode allows for sweeping genera
ization, some of whic is deserving and would be supportable if necessary, but
there i also a sense that the critique of Japanese imperialism, for example, an
imperialism that directly affects China, can ony be made precisely because of
the elisions that it forces. Often tle survey proceeds i a highly deterministic
and functionalist manner (a few upper class folks study in Europe and voila, a
Japanese bourgeoisie is born!) or Pannekoek offers comparisons that ae eiter
empty or unsupportable ("The working classes in the country, as well as in the
towns, lived in a state of hopeless misery, of squalor and despair, surpassig the
worst conditions in Europe of olden tinles"). Tis does not mean, however, that
Pannekoek's provocation is completely unfounded. Dismissing claims that
Japanese expansionism was bor of popUlation pressures, Pannekoek responds
that incursions into China were largely economic, and focused on iron ore
extraction in the north and cotton production in and around Shaghai. Tis
much remais true in the links of imperialism and capitalism: strategic interests
tend to be the proftable ones.
H: Oe way in which this book still resonates is in its analsis ( the reltionshi beteen
these links you mention) between imperlism and capitalism. But in certain sectins he seems
to underine the importance ithe peasant populton) and when he does talk about it}
drws a sharp line beteen peasants in China and in Europe) just a he distirhes ver
str between the bourgeoisi i both places. How des this rather complx set ico71 par
irons play into the dvelopment qf hif version qf Marxism?
PH:
O
n this question I think Pannekoek bears comparison to his Chinese
counterparts who, like hi, were struggling hard over the differences and
uneven developments of class formation and antagonism on a world scale. In
fact, as Arif Dirlk has pointed out, Chinese Marxists before the rise of the
Chinese COlIlUnist Party were more likely to favor an aarcho-Marxism
much closer to Kropotkin than to Marxist-Leninism. That the latter would tri-
xiii
xxiv WORKERS' COUNCILS
umph has tended to obscure the influence of the former which might have pro
vided Pannekoek hiself with a provocation to explore the queston of com
parison in a deeper way. The whole hstory of "socialism with Chinese char
acteristics" pivots on the specific character of the Chinese peasatry, and this
specificity was much discussed long before the Russian Revolution made its
mark. Part of the signifcance of Pannekoek on this score is that he earnestly
acknowledges the differences even if he does not sufficiently elaborate the
implicatons tat proceed from tem. For those one would have to read Mao.
RB: You are particularl interested i the pliht i Chinese workers, and this area is sel
dom discussed when we consider Pannekoek's work. Why is this an important sectionfr
Pannekoek, and how might dbe i continued interest to people iterested in curent events i
the region?
PH: Te section devoted to China replays familar mantras but only because
they touc on certain historical truths. The decline and fall of the Qng was a
complex and messy process, fueled by ruling class arrogance, corruption, and
a naive isolationism. In the nineteenth century the Chinese military was clear
ly in need of massive modernization but even after humiliating defeats at the
hands of the British navy the nation state clung to older pastimes. The gross
exploitation of the Chinese by foreig colonial powers with their "concessions"
and price fxing of imports only exacerbated the social contradictons of
Chinese modernity. As Pannekoek notes, this opened the possibility of social
ist organizaton (he mentions Sun Yatsen in this regard) and a nationalist move
ment from below but it simultaneously paved the way for further intervention
in China by those willing to compete for its potential surplus value. When we
say that the days of high imperialism and colonial powers are gone this does
not mean that imperialism does not participate in today's struggles over surplus
value. It is a different kd of imperialism but one that is earnestly knocking on
China's door.
H: How des Pannekoek contibute to the long debates about the reltionshi beteen
China athe Sovit Union, and what i your sense does this brig to his argument?
PH: Not surprisingly, Pannekoek also casts a jaundiced eye on Soviet interest
in Chna after 1 917 and this makes for blanket statements rather tan
nuance. While no one doubts Soviet manipulation of China's emergig Left,
Pannekoek gives the impression that Mao and the early communists were sim
ply dupes with no agency of teir own: "The C.P. of Chia had been instruct
ed from Moscow that the Chinese revolution was a middle-class revolution,
that the bourgeoisie had to be the future rulng class, and that the workers sim
ply had to assist her against feudalism and bring her into power." Cynics will
say that even after the demise of the Soviet Unon tlle Chinese communists are
still following this model but the class, geopolitical, and indeed spatial coordi-
INTERVIEWS xxv
nates of modern Chna are not so easily drawn. Still, it remains the case that
japan's invasion owed a great deal to the factional warring of the republican
period in China when communist inspired peasant revolution wrestled wit the
Kuomintang nationalist-fueled modernization narratve across vast stretches of
eastern and southern China. Even though the Qng tred vainly to resuscitate
its fortunes by allying itself with the Japanese in Manchuria, Pannekoek is right
to focus on the peculiarities of China's urba bourgeoisie as a hmd-owning
class and thus more easily vilifed as those most likely to maintain peasant sub
jection. Japanese imperialism did indeed necessitate a united front but it was
only after Chiang Ka-shek's brief capture in the Xian incident of 1936 that this
necessity gained greater purchase.
RB: It seems important to dcuss how the Vst dealt with thisfribl allince between
the Soviet Unin and China, and what role can we ascibe, i Pannekoek : reading, to the
relatinshi between workers i the worl and nationalism?
PH: While the Soviets nurtured their relationship with the Chinese
Communist Party, the United States and the \Vest played the China card
towards the nationalists. The KMT drew on fears of communism to advance
its particular brand of "democracy" and its earlier atrocities went largely
unpunished. The gamble was clearly that natonalism was a small price to pay
if foreig capital could reassert itself through a form of nco-colonial trade. It
should be noted, however, that Pannekoek overlooks the fact that the Japanese
war machine was also being fueled by the West, including the United States,
and that this form of risk management contnued right up to Pearl Harbor.
RB: In this sense, though, Pannekoek s book is out i dte, although there are moments a
which wefnd marks fa prescint analsis. Surpri,ingl enough, its in th questns about
"class " that we fnd some r the more interestin preditns. And his conce with the con
ditions apropate fr the installatin i capitalism in China have alo bore the test i tme,
i the massive number i consumer goads bearing the 'ad in China' ensign is an indica
to.
PH: Hindsight, of course, tarnishes Pannekoek' s commentary sigficantly.
The world war demonstrably did not mean the rise of China as a new capital
ist world power: the communists won, and so the ironies of history decreed
that the defeated Japanese would assume that mante in Asia. One cannot
blame Pannekoek for this misdiagosis since it is in the nature of political pun
ditry that such shortfalls must occur. What is interesting, however, is
Pannekoek's vision of future class relations which, for all the wackiness and
muddleheadedness of his reading, now appears wonderfully prescient. Thus,
while China's war debt did not immediately make it subject to American influ
ence, the notion now that "American capitaL. will have the lead in building up
its industry" docs not seem farfetched (especially if one tracks foreign direct
xxvi WORKERS' COUNCILS
investment and joint venture activity) . Similarly, Pannekoek's note that China
has "fertile soil, capable of producing an abundance of products" is hyperbolic
(articularly in light of demographics) but his qualifcation "requing security
by wide scientific care and regulation of the water, by constucting dikes and
excavating and normalizing rivers" remains a pertinent issue (to which we
would have to add the question of hydropower and projects like the Three
Gorges Dam) . The class implications of such activities are for Pannekoek quite
pronounced: "The ideals and aims for which the working masses of China are
fighting will, of course, not be realized. Landowners, exploitation and poverty
will not disappear; what disappears are the old stagnant, primitive forms of
misery, usury and oppression. The productivity of labor will be enhanced; the
new forms of direct exploitation by industrial capital will replace the old
ones. The problems facing Chinese capitalism wil require central regulations
by a powerfl government. That means forms of dictatorship in the central gov
ernment, perhaps complemented by democratic forms of autonomy in the
small units of district and village." Pannekoek believed he was writing of a turn
ing point in history-one i which the goals of social transformation would
come sharply into view. For all sorts of reasons (including the Cold War,
Maoism, Americanization and globalization) historical crisis has taken a differ
ent route.
RB: Pannekoek points to elements rf the Chinee workers' characte, sugestin that it is
filled with proise fir revolutionary change. kar instance: "Wth the growth qf industry the
jight qfthe industrial workers will sprin up. Wth the strn spirit rf organization and great
solidrit shown so qen by the Chinese proletarians and artians) even a rue more rapid
than in Euroe rf a powerful working class moveent may be exected." In your work there)
have you had thi same sentimet) or i this another way in which Pannekoek was a bit too
otimis tic?
PH: Here Panekoek's optimistic will shines through, but we could have done
with a bit more intellectual pessimism. Nevertheless, the importance he notes
in Chinese cass formation remains a burnng issue, perhaps more so now.
Historicaly we mght now say that the biggest muzzle on working-class politi
cal action was provided, paradoxically, by "actually existing socialism." There
are many holes in such an argument, but even if it were the case the alibi is run
ning a little thin. Basically labor organization in the PRC was deemed super
fluous (by the Party) as long as significant surpluses were largely redistributed.
Tis did not stop class fommtion and antagonism (the Party understood that
the task was to make communism not simply to announce its achevement) but
with economic differences, comparatively small worker protest was not acute.
That is not the case today where extremes of poverty and wealth have come
much more clearly into view. Labor organization is still stifed and for now at
INTERVIEWS XVll
least the capitalists and the communists are smiling at eac other across the
table.
RB: So Pannekoek : analsif i still pertinent?
PH: For all the rhetorical blather and ideological shortcuts these passages read
like cneiform on capital's pillars. Perhaps the words will not outlast the form,
but the fact that they were etched at all reminds us that both are historical. As
we try to historicize a present in which capital divides and unites China and the
United States, the class war of which Pannekoek wrote is both anachronistic
and vital. What is out of time in worker councils is on time in terms of capital
relations, and that paradox provides different names for sel organization in the
current crisis, another uneven development, perhaps, that Pannekoek would
have apprecated.
J.J. Lebel ad Paul Mattickl
J. J. LEBEL: What relevance does Pannekoek book have in Europe tody? Do you think
that the ana1t memory and theory q the past experince q council communism, as
Pannekoek expresses them, can be "heard" and understood b workers here today?
PAUL MATCK: A book, such as Pannekoek's, is not in need of innnedi
ate relevance. It concerns itself with a historical period; with past occurrences
as well as possible future experiences, in which the phenomenon of workers'
councils appearing and disappearing points to a trend of development in work
ers' class struggle and its changing objectives. Like anything else, forms of class
strggle are historical in the sense that they make their appearance long before
their fl realization becomes an actual possibility. In an embryonic form, for
example, trade unions arose spontaneously as instruments of working class
resistance to capitalist exploitation at the very beginning of capitalism's devel
opment, only to disappear again because of objectively determined hindrances
to their further development. Yet, their temporay irrelevance did not hinder
their full unfolding under changed conditons, which then determined their
character, possibilities and liIitations. Similarly, workers' councils made their
appearance under conditions which precluded the release of all their revolu
tionary potentialities . Te content of the social upheavals in which the first
workers' councils arose was not adequate to their organizational form. The
Russian workers' councils of 1905 and 1 917, for instance, fought for a consti
tutional bourgeois democracy and for trade union goals such as the eight-hour
day and higher wages. The German workers' councils of 191 8 gave up their
momentarily-won political power in favor of the bourgeois National Assembly
and the illusory evolutionary path of German socal democracy. I either case,
the workers' councils could only eliminate themselves as their orgaizational
form contradicted their limited political and social goals. Whereas, in Russia, it
was the objective uureadiness for a sociaist revolution, in Germay it was the
subjective unwillingness to realize socialism by revolutionary means, which
accounted for the decay and, fnally, the forced destrction of the council move
ment. Nonetheless, it had been te workers' councils, not the traditional labor
organizations, whch secured the success of the revolutionary upheavals how
ever limited they proved to be. Although the workers' councls revealed that
the proletariat is quite able to evolve revolutionary instrumentalities of its OWl
either in combination with the traditional labor organizatons, or in opposition
to them-at the time of their formaton they only hd very vague concepts, or
none at all, of how to consolidate their power and use it in order to chage soci
ety. Thus tey fell back upon the political instrumentalities of the past. rIbe
question of whether or not the council idea, as elaborated by Pannekoek, could
be understood and taken up by the workers today, is a rather strange one,
XXVlIl
IJ. 'ERVIEWS xxix
because the council idea implies no more, but also no less, than the self organ
ization of the workers wherever and whenever this becomes an inescapable
necessity in the struggle for their immediate needs, or for farther-reaching
goals, which can either no longer be reached by, or are in fact opposed by, tra
ditiona labor organizations such as the trade unons and political parties. In
order to take place at all, a particular struggle within a factory, or an industry,
and the extension of the struggle over wider areas and larger numbers, may
require a system of workers' delegates, committees of action, or workers' coun
cils. Such struggles may or may not fnd the support of the existing labor organ
izations. If not, they will have to be carried on independently, by the fighting
workers themselves, and imply their self-organization. Under revolutionary cir
cumstances, this may well lead to a wide spread system of workers' councils, as
the basis for a total reorganization of the social structure. Of course, without
such a revolutionary situation, expressing a social crisis condition, the working
class will not concer itself with the wider implications of the council system,
even though it might organize itself for particular struggles by way of councls.
Pannekoek's description of the theory and practice of workers' councils relates
thus to no more than the workers' own experiences. But what they experience
they can also comprehend and, under favorable conditions, apply in their
struggle within and against the capitalist system.
lL: How do you think Pannekoekr book came about and in what relationshi to his prac
tice n Gerany or Holland} ? Do you think his book and his essay o trad unionism n
Living Marxis m} appl to present-day condits ?
VN: Pannekoek wrote his book on workers' councils during the Second World
War. It was a summing-up of his life' s experience of the theory and practice of
the international labor movement and of the development and transformation
of capitalism witin various nations and as a whole. It ends with the temporary
triumph of a revived, though changed, capitalism, and with the utter subjuga
tion of working class interests to the competitive needs of rival capitalist sys
tems preparing for new imperialistic conflicts. Unike the ruling classes, which
adapt themselves quickly to changed conditions, the working class, by still
adhering to traditional ideas and activities, finds itself in a powerless and appar
ently hopeless situation. And as socioeconomic changes only gradually change
ideas, it may still take considerable time before a new labor movement-fitted
to the new conditions-will arise. Athough the continued existence of capital
ism, in either its private or state-capitalist forms, proved that the expectation of
the growt of a new labor movement in te wake of the Second World War
was premature, the continued resilience of capitalism does not remove its
immanent contradictions and will therefore not release the workers from the
need to put an end to it. Of course, with capitalism still in the saddle, the old
labor organizations, parliamentary parties and trade unions, could also be
xxx WORKERS' COUNCILS
maintained. But they are already recognized, and recognize themselves, as part
and parcel of capitalism, destined to go down with the system on which teir
existence depends. Long before it became a obvious fact, it was clear to
Pannekoek that the old labor movement was a historical product of te rising
capitalism, bound to this paticular stage of development, wherein the queston
of revolution and socialism could only be raised but not aswered. At such a
time, these labor organizatons were destined to degenerate into tools of capi
talsm. Socialsm depended now on te rise of a new labor movement, able to
create the preconditions for proletarian self-rule. If the workers were to take
over the production process and determine te distribution of their products ,
they needed, even prior to this revolutionay transformation, to function and
to organize themselves in an entirely different manner than in the past. In both
forms of organization, the parliamentary parties and the trade unions, the
workers delegate their power to special groups of leaders and organizers, who
are supposed to act on their behalf, but actually only foster their own separate
interests. The workers lost control over their own organizations. But even if
this had not been so, these organizations were totally unft to serve as instru
ments for either the proletarian revolution or the construction of socialism.
Parliamentary parties were a product of bourgeois society, an expression of the
political democracy of laissez-faire capitalism and only meaningfl within this
context. They have no place in socialism, which is supposed to end politcal
strife by endig special interests and social class relations. As there is no room,
nor need for political paties in a socialist society, their future superfluity
already explains their ineffectveness as an instrument of revolutionary change.
Trade unions, too, have no functions u socialism, whic does not know of
wage relations and which organizes its production not with regard to specific
trades and industries but in accordance with social needs. As the emancipation
of te workng class can only be brought about by the workers themselves,
they have t o organize themselves as a class, i n order t o take and t o hold power.
Regarding present conditons, however, which are not as yet of a revolutionary
nature, the council form of working-cass activities does not directly betray its
wider-reacing revolutionary potentialities, but is a mere expression of the
accomplished integration of te traditional labor orgaizations into the capital
ist system. Parliamentary parties and trade unions lose their limited effective
ness when it is no longer possible to combie an improvement of workers' lv
ing standards with a progressive expansion of capital. Under conditons which
preclude a sufcient capitalist accumulation, that is , under conditions of eco
nomic cisis, the reformist activities of political paties and trade unions cease
to be operative and these organizations abstain from tleir supposed functions,
as they would now endanger the capitalist system itself. They will rather ty to
help sustain the system, up to the point of directy sabotaging the workers aspi
rations for better lving and working conditions. They will help capitaism
INTERVIEWS XXX)
overcome its crisis at the expense of the workers. In such a situation, the work
ers, unwilling to submit to the dictates of capitl, are forced to resort to activi
ties not sanctioned by official labor organizations, to so-called wildcat strikes,
factory occupations and o
t
her form of direct actions outside the control of the
established labor organizations. These self-determined activities, with their
temporary council structure, indicate the possibility of their radical application
under arising revolutionary sitatons, replacing te traditional organizational
forms, which have become a hindrance for both the struggle for immediate
needs and for revolutionary goals.
lL: Can you give a few prctical and comrete examles i how workers' councls fnctioned
(in Russia, Germany, Hungar etc.), and how thy dffredfrom taditional part or union
organizations? What are the basic dJrences? How d part and councl o union csh?
PM: As every strike, demonstration, occupation or other kinds of anticapital
ist activity which ignores the oficial labor organizations and escapes their con
trols, takes on the chracter of independent working class action, which deter
mines its own organization and procedures, may be regarded as a councl
movement; so, on a larger scale, te spontaneous organization of revolutionary
upheavals, such as occurred in Russia in 1905 and 1917, in Germay in 1918,
and later-against the state-capitalist authorities-in Hungay, Czechoslovakia
and Poland, avail themselves of workers' councils as the only form of working
cass actions possible under conditions in which all established instittions and
organizations have become defenders of the stats quo. These councis arise
out of necessity, but also because of the opportunity provided by te capitalist
production processes, which are already the "natural" forms of working class
activities and organization. Here the workers are "organized" as a class against
the capitalist class ; the place of exploitaton is also the vehicle for their resist
ance to capitalst oppression. "Organized" by their rulers in factories, indus
tries, armes, or in separate workng-class districts, workers turned these
"organizations" into their own, by utilizing them for their idependent endeav
ors and under their own leadership. The latter was elected from their midst,
and was at all times recallable. Thus the historically evolved divergence
between the institutionalized labor organizations and the working class at large
was done away with, and the apparent contradiction between organization and
spontaneity resolved. Until now, to be sure, workers' councils have found their
limitations in the limits of spontaneous actions under unfavorable conditions.
They have been the sporadic expression of sporadic movements, as yet inca
pable of turning their potential for becoming the organizational structre of
non-exploitative relations into reality. The basic difference between
t
he council
movement and te taditional labor organzations is, that whereas the latter
lose their functions in a decaying capitalism and have nothing to contibute to
the constuction of socalism, the former not only become the only form of
xx ii WORKERS' COUNCILS
effective working-class actions regardless of the state in which capitalism fnds
itself, but are, at the same time, the pre-fguration of the organizational struc
ture of socialist society.
lL: Do you see any similarity ('n intent, result, or form) beteen council communism and
present dy workes' strugls in the US and kuroe? Do you think any recent events idi
cate a signicant and qualitative evolution towards a dif rent tpe i socit? O d you
think tlte recet outJtanding strugles (ay '68, Lordstown, LIP etc) are Just more i the
same old programmed moGnizatis qf capitalism?
PM: There is, without doubt, a connection between the recent expressions of
self-determined working-class actions, such as the French movement of May
1968, the occupation of LIP, but also the rebellions of the workers in East
Germany, Poland and even Russia, and the "instinctive" as well as conscious
recognition that the forms of action represented by the concept and te reality
of workers' councils is the necessary requirement of workers' struggles under
prevailing conditions. Even unofcial strikes in the USA may be regarded as a
frst expression of a developing class consciousness, directing itself not only
against the obvious capitalist enemy but also against the capitalistically-inte
grated offcial labor movement, However, traditions are still powerfl and the
institutions nourished by them constitute pat of capitalism's resilience. It
seems to require far more catastrophic situations than those recently experi
enced to release the full power of spontaneous mass actions, overrunning not
just the defenders of capitalism but the system itself. In so far as recent and
fortcoming workers' struggles escaped or escape the infuence and control of
the capitalist authorities, which the leadership of the ofcial labor movement
also belong to, they were and will be movements that cannot be integrated into
the capitalist system and therefore constitute real revolutionary movements.
lL: i new geneal strikes (uch a May (68) or other mas revolutioar movements cm
q, do you thik the can evolve towards workers' council, away.om parties and unions?
How? What do you think can be done to get rqf partis and unions which prohibit
organiation and direct Gmocraq ?
PM: I a general crisis of capitalism there is always the possibility that the
social movements resulting from it will go beyond the obstacles placed in their
way by traditional forms of economic and political activity, and proceed in
accordance with new necessities which include the need for effective forms of
organization. However, just as capitalism wl not abdicate of its own accord,
the existing labor organizations wll try their utmost to keep contol of these
social movements and direct them towards goals favorable to themselves . In the
"best" case-should they fail to help secure the status quo-they will direct a
possible revolutionary upheaval into state-capitalist chanels, in order to main
tain social production relations which would not only allow for their further
INTERVIEWS xxxiii
existence, but would also transform their organizations into instrumentalities of
a modified capitalist system, and their bureaucraces into a new ruling class. In
brief, if anyting at al, they would attempt to tur a potential socialist revolu
ton into a state-capitalist revolution, with results such as are represented by the
so-caled socialist nations. They may succeed i such endeavors , however that
is the most pressing reason for both advocating and trying to set up workers'
councils in any revolutionary sitation, and for attempting to concentrate in
them all the power needed for working self-determnation. Social control
through workers' councils is one fture possibility among others. The proba
bility of its realization is perhaps less than the probability of a state capitaist
tansformation. But as the latter is not a solution to the problem inherent in
social exploitation relatons, a possible state-capitalist revolution would merely
postpone, but not eliminate, the need for another revolution ",-ith socialism as
its goal.
lL: Do you think counci are stil tody, the baic patterfor a comm:anift socet or must
they be updated to fit present dy conditions?
VN:Communism will be a system of workers' councils or it will not exist. The
"association of free and equal producers;' which determines its own production
and distribution, is thinkable only as a system of self-determination at te point
of production, and the absence of any other authority than the collective will
of the producers themselves. It means the end of the state, or any state-based
system of exploitation. It must be a planned production, without the interven
tion of exchange relations and the vicissitudes of the market system. The reg
ulation of the social character of production must discard fetshistic value and
price relations, and must be carried out in terms of the economy of time, with
direct labor-time as a measure of calculation, where calculation is still required.
A presupposition of such a development is the absence of a central government
wth political power of its own. The central institutions of the council system
are mere enterprises among others, without a specia apparatus to assert their
will outside the consent of other councils or of other enterprises. Ibe structure
of the system must be such as to combine central regulation with the self-deter
mination of the producers. Whereas, under the conditions of underdevelop
ment which faced the frst councils after a successful political revolution (the
reference is to Russia in 1917, it was practically impossible to realize a commu
nist society based on workers' councils; the prevailing conditions in the devel
oped capitalist nations allow much more for the actualization of socialism via
the council system. It is precisely the more advanced form of capitalism, with
its advanced technology, high productivity, and netork of communication,
which offers a material base for the establishment of communism based on a
system of workers' councils. The council idea is not a thing of the past, but the
most realistic proposition for the establishment of a socialist society. Nothing
xxxiv WORKERS' COUNCILS
which has evolved during the last decades has robbed it of its feasibility; on the
contrary, it has merely substantiated the non-utopian character of the workers'
councils and the probability of the emergence of a truly communist society.
Notes onJJ. Lebel and Paul Mattick Interiew
1. Tis interview was given in February 1975. It was never published. Initally it was
aimed to be part of a radio program on workers' councils which neer went on the air. A
French translation was added to the second French edition of Workers' Councs
(Spartacus, November 1982). Reprinted from Vol. 4 "Workers Councils"-Anton
Pannekock (ECHAGES), where it appeared as an appendi
waaKEas'
laUNllLS
PREFACE
Anton Pannekoek's original Dutch text was undertaken in 1 941 during the
occupation of Hollad by the Germans, ad completed after te War, i 1 946.
It was published in Dutch in 1 946 and then translated by the author, with some
modifications and additons, for serial publication from 1 947-49 in the
Australian monthy Souther Advocte fr Urkers' Couna The book form of the
English language version was used as the basis of the present text, athough
some minor corrections have been made to iprove readability. I wish to thank
Rachael Rakes, Jef Rector, John Yates and the members of the AK Press for
their devotion and excellent work.
Robert F. Barsky
3
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
j
I. The Task
1. LAOR
In the present and coming times, now that Europe is devastated and
mankind is impoverished by world war, it impends upon the workers of the
world to orgaize industry, in order to free themselves from want and exploita
tion. It will be their task to take into their own hands the management of the
production of goods. To accomplish this great and difficult work, it will be nec
essary to fully recognize the present character of labor. The better their knowl
edge of society and of the position of labor in it, the less dificulties, disap
pointments and setbacks they will encounter in this striving.
The basis of society is the production of all goods necessary to life. Tis
production, for the most important part, takes place by means of highly devel
oped techncs in large factories and plants by complicated machines. This
development of technics, from small tools that could be handled by one man,
to big machines hadled by large collectives of workers of different kind, took
place in the last centuries. Though small tools are still used as accessories, ad
small shops are stl numerous, they hadly play a role in the bul of te pro
duction.
Each factory is an organization carefully adapted to its aims; an organiza
tion of dead as well as of living forces, of instuments and workers. The forms
and the character of this organization are determined by the aims it has to
serve. What are these aims?
In the present time, production is dominated by capital. The capitalist, pos
sessor of money, founded the factory, bought the machines and the raw mate
ras, hires the workers and maes them produce goods that can be sold. That
is, he buys the labor power of the workers, to be spent in their daily task, and
he pays to them its value, the wages by which they can procure what they need
to live and to continually restore their labor power. The value a worker creates
in his daily work i adding it to the value of the raw materials, is larger than
what he needs for his living and receives for his labor power. The difference
that the capitalist gets in his hands when the product i sold, the surplus-value,
forms his profit, which, in so far as it is not consumed, is accumulated into new
5
6 WORKERS' COUNCILS
capital. The labor power of the working class thus may be compared with an
ore mine, that in exploitation gves out a produce exceeding the cost bestowed
on it. Hence the teml exploitation of labor by capitaL Capital itself is the prod
uct of labor; its bulk is accumulated surplus-value.
Capital is master of production; it has the factory, the machines, the pro
duced goods; the workers' work at its command; its aims dominate the work
and determe the character of the organization. Te aim of capital is to mae
profit. The capitalist is not driven by the desire to provide his fellow-men wit
the necessities of life; he is driven by the necessity of making money. If he has
a shoe factory he is not animated by compassion for the painful feet of other
people; he is animated by the knowledge that his enterprise must yield profit
and that he will go bankrupt if his profits are insufficient. Of course, the nor
mal way to make profit is to produce goods that can be sold at a good price,
and tey can be sold, normally, only when they are necessary and practcal
consumption-goods for te buyers. So the shoemaker, to produce profits for
himself, has to produce well-fittng shoes, better or cheaper shoes than others
make. Tus, normally, capitalist production succeeds in what should be te
aim of production, to provide mankind with its life necessities. But te many
cases, where it is more profitable to produce superfluous luxuries for the rich
or trash for the poor, or to sell the whole plant to a competitor who may close
it, show that the primary object of present production is profit for the capital.
This object determines the character of the organization the work in the
shop. First it establishes the command by one absolute master. If he is the
owner himself, he has to take care that he does not lose his capital; on the con
trary he must increase it. His interest dominates the work; the workers are his
"hands," and they have to obey. It determines his part and his function in the
work. Should te workers complain of their long hours and fatiguing work, he
poits to his task and his solicitudes that keep him busy till late in the night
after they have gone home without concerning themselves any more. He for
gets to tell, what he hardly understands himself, that all his often strenuous
work, all his worry that keeps hm awake at night, serves only the profit, not
the production itsef It deals with the problems of how to sel his products, how
to outival his competitors, how to bring the largest possible part of the total
surplus-vaue, into his own coffers. His work is not a productive work; his
exertions in fighting his competitors are useless for society. But he is the mas
ter and his aims direct the shop.
If he is an appointed director he knows that he is appointed to produce prof
it for the shareholders. If he does not manage to do so, he is dismissed and
replaced by another man. Of course, he must be a good expert, he must under
stand the technics of his branch, to be able to direct the work of production.
But still more he must be expert in profit-making. In the first place he must
understand the technics of increasing the net-proft, by fnding out how to pro-
THE TASK 7
duce at least cost, how to sell with most success and how to beat his rivas . Tis
every director knows. It deterines the management or business. It also deter
mines the organization within the shop.
The organization of the production within the shop is conducted aong two
lines, of technical and of commercial organization. The rapid development of
technics in the last century, based upon a wonderful growth of science, has
improved the methods of work in every branch. Better technics is the best
weapon in competiton, because it secures extra proft at the cost of the rivals.
This development increased the productivity oflabor, it made the goods for use
and consumption cheaper, more abundant and more varied, it increased the
means of comfort, and, by lowering the cost of living, i. e., the value of labor
power, enormously raised the profit of capital. This high stage of technical
development brought into the factory a rapidly increasing number of experts,
engineers, chemists, physicists, well versed by their training at universities and
laboratories in science. They are necessary to direct the intricate technical
processes, and to improve them by regular application of new scientifc discov
eries. Under their snpervision act skilled technicians and workers. So the tech
nical organization shows a carefully regulated collaboration of various kinds of
workers, a small number of university-trained specialists, a larger number of
qualified professionals and skilled workers, besides a great mass of unskilled
workers to do the manual work. Their combined efforts are needed to run the
machines and to produce the goods.
The commercial organzation has to conduct the sale of the product. It stud
ies markets and prices, it advertses, it trains agents to stimulate buying. It
includes the so-called scientific management, to cut down costs by distributing
men and means; it devises incentives to stimulate the workers to more strenu
ous efforts; it turns advertising into a kind of science taught even at universi
ties. It is not less, it is even more important than technics to the capitalist mas
ters ; it is the chief weapon in their mutual fight. From the view-point of pro
viding society with its lfe necessities, however, it is an entirely useless waste of
capacities.
But also the forms of technical organization are determined by the same
motive of profit. Hence the strict limitation of the better paid scientifc experts
to a small number, combined with a mass of cheap unskilled labor. Hence the
structure of society at large, with its low pay and poor education for the mass
es, with its higher pay-so much as higher education demands for the constant
fling of the ranks-for a scientifcally trained minority.
These technical offcials have not only the care of the technica processes of
production. Under capitalism tey have also to act as taskmasters of te work
ers. Because under capitalism production of goods is inseparably connected
with production of proft, both being one and the same action, the to charac
ters of the shop-officials, of a scientifc leader of production and of a com-
8 WORKERS' COUNCILS
manding helper of exploitation, are intimately combined. So teir positon is
ambiguous. On the one hand they are the collaborators of the manual work
ers, by their scientifc knowledge directing the process of transformation of the
materials, by their skill increasing the profts, they also are exploited by capital.
On te other hand they are the underlings of capital, appointed to hustle the
workers and to assist the capitalist in exploiting them.
It may seem that not everyhere the workers are thus exploited by capital.
In public-utility enterprises, for instance, or in co-operative factories. Even if we
leave aside the fact that te former, by their proft, often must contribute to the
public funds, thus relieving the taxes of the propertied class, the difference with
other business is not essential. As a rule co-operatives have to compete with pri
vate enterprises; and public utilities are controlled by the capitaist public by
attentive criticism. 'e usually borrowed capital needed in the business
demands its interest, out of te profts. As in other enterprises there is the per
sonal command of a director and the forcing up of the tempo of the work.
There is the same exploitation as in every capitalist enterprise. There may be
a difference in degree; part of what otherwse is proft may be used to increase
the wages and to improve the conditions of labor. But a limit is soon reached.
In this respect they may be compared with private model enterprises where
sensible broad-minded directors try to attach the workers by better treatment,
by giving them the impression of a privileged positon, and so are rewarded by
a better outut and increased proft. But it is out of the question that the work
ers here, or in public utilities or co-operatives, should consider themselves a
servants of a communit, to which to devote all their energy. Directors and
workers are living in the social surroundings and the feelings of their respective
classes. Labor has here the Same capitalist character as elsewhere; it constitutes
its deeper essential nature under the superficial differences of somewhat better
or worse conditions.
Labor under capitalism i its essential natre is a system of squeezing. The
workers must be driven to the utmost exertion of their powers, either by hard
constraint or by the kinder arts of persuasion. Capital itself is in a constraint;
if it cannot compete, if the profts are inadequate, the business will collapse.
Against this pressure the workers defend themselves by a contnual instinctive
resistance. If not, if they willingly should give way, more than their daily labor
power would be taken fom tem. It would be an encroaching upon their fnds
of bodly power, their vital power would be exhausted before its time, as to
some extent is the case now; degeneration, annlation of health and strength,
of themselves and their offspring, would be the result. So resist they must.
Thus every shop, every enterprise, even outside the times of sharp conflict, of
strikes or wage reductions, is the scene of a constant silent war, of a perpetual
struggle, of pressure and counter-pressure. Rising and falling under its influ
ence, a certain norm of wages, hours and tempo oflabor establishes itself, kee-
TE TASK 9
ing them just at the limit of what is tolerable and intolerable (if intolerable the
total of production is efected) . Hence the two classes, workers and capitalists,
wirile having to put up with each other in the daily course of work, in deepest
essence, by their opposite interests, are implacable foes, living when not fght
ing, in a land of armed peace.
Labor in itself is not repulsive. Labor for the supplying of his needs is a
necessity imposed on man by nature. Lie all other livng beings, man has to
exert his forces to provide for his food. Nature has given them bodily organs
and mental powers, muscles, nerves and brains , to conform to tis necessity.
Teir wants and their means are harmoniously adapted to one another in the
regular living of their life. So labor, as the norma use of their limbs and capac
ities, is a normal impulse for man and animal alie. In the necessity of provd
ing food and shelter there is, to be sure, an dement of constraint. Free sponta
neousness i the use of muscles and nerves, all in teir turn, in following every
whim, in work or play, lies at the bottom of human nature. The constraint of
his needs compels man to regular work, to suppression of the impulse of the
moment, to exertion of his powers, to patient perseverance and self-restraint.
But ths self-restraint, necessary as it is for the preservation of oneself, of the
family, of the community, affords the satsfaction of vanquishng impedients
in himself or the surrounding world, and gives the proud feeling of readri ng
self-imposed aims. Fixed by its social dmracter, by practice and custom in fam
ily, tribe or village, the habit of regular work grows into a new nature itself, into
a natural mode of life, a harmomous umty of needs and powers, of duties and
disposition. Thus in farmng the surrounding nature is transformed into a safe
home through a lifelong heavy or placid toil. Thus in every people, each in its
individual way, the old handicraft gave to the artisans the joy of applying their
skill and fantasy in the makig of good and beautifl things for use.
All this has perished since capital became master of labor. In production for
the market, for sale, the goods are commodities which besides their utility for
the buyer, have exchange-value, embodying the labor implemented; this
exchange-value determines the money they bring. Formerly a worker in mod
erate hours-leaving room for occasional strong exertion-could produce
enough for his living. But the profit of capital consists in what the worker can
produce in surplus to his living. The more value he produces and the less the
value of what he consumes, the larger is the surplus-value seized by capital.
Hence his life-necessities are reduced, his standard of life is lowered as much as
possible, his hours are increased, the tempo of his work is accelerated. Now
labor loses entirely its old character of pleasant use of body and libs. Now
labor turns into a curse and an outrage. And this remains its true character,
however mitigated by socil laws and by trade-union action, both results of the
desperate resistance of the workers against their unbearable degradation. What
they may attain is to turn capitalism from a rude abuse into a normal exploita-
1 0 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ton. Stll then labor, being labor under capitalism, keeps its innermost charac
ter of inhuman toil: the workers compelled by the threat of hunger to strain
their forces at foreign command, for foreign profit, without genuine interest, in
the monotonous fabrication of uninteresting or bad things, driven to the utmost
of what the overworked body can sustain, are used up at a early age. Ignorant
economists, unacquainted wth the nature of capitalism, seeing the strong aver
sion of the workers from their work, conclude that productve work, by its very
nature, is repulsive to man, and must be imposed on unwilling mankind by
strong means of constraint.
Of course, this character of their work is not always consciously felt by the
workers. Sometimes the original nature of work, as an impulsive eagerness of
action, giving contentment, asserts itself. Especially in young people, kept
rant of capitalism and fll of ambition to show their capacites as first-rate
workers, feeling themselves moreover possessor of an inexhaustible
labor-power. Capitalism has its well-advised ways of exploiting this disposition.
Afterwards, with the growing solicitudes and dutes for the family, the worker
feels caught between te pressure of the constrant and the limit of his powers,
as in tightenng fetters he is unable to throw off. And at last, feeling hs forces
decay at an age that for middle-class man is te time of full and matured power,
he has to suffer exploitation in tacit resignation, in continuous fear of being
thrown away as a worn-out tool.
Bad and damnable as work under capitalism may be, still worse is the lack
of work. Like every commodity, labor-power someties finds no buyer. The
problematic liberty of the worker to choose his master goes had in hand with
the liberty of te capitalist to engage or to dismiss his workers. In the continu
ous development of capitalism, in the founding of new enterprises and the
declne or collapse of old ones, the workers are driven to and fro, are accumu
lated here, dismissed there. So they must consider it good luck even, when they
are allowed to let themselves be exploited. Then they perceive that they are at
the mercy of capitaL That only with the consent of the masters they have access
to the machines that wait for their handling.
Unemployment is the worst scourge of the working class under capitalism.
It is inherent in capitalism. As an ever returning feature it accompanies the peri
odical crises and depressions, which during the entire reign of capitalism rav
aged society at regular intervas. They are a consequence of the anarchy of cap
italist production. Each capitalist as an independent master of his enterprise is
free to manage it at his will, to produce what he thinks profitable or to close
the shop when profits are failing. Contrary to the carefl organization wthin
the factory there is a complete lack of organization in the totality of social pro
duction. The rapid increase of capital through the accumulated profits, the
necessity to find profits also for the new capital, urges a rapid increase of pro
duction fooding the market with unsaleablc goods. Then comes the collapse,
THE TASK 1 1
reducing not only the profits and destoying the superfluous capital, but also
turing te accumulated hosts of workers out of the factories, throwing them
upon their own resources or on meagre charity. Then wages are lowered,
stries are ineffective, the mass of the unemployed presses as a heavy weight
upon te working conditions. Vhat has been gaied by hard figt in times of
prosperity is often lost in tinles of depression. Unemployment was always the
chef impediment to a continuous raising of the life standard of the working
class.
There have been economsts alleging that by the modern development of
big business this pernicious alternation of crises and prosperity would disap
pear. They expected that cartels and trusts, monopolizing as they do large
branches of industy, would bring a certain amount of organization into the
anarchy of production and smooth its irregularities. They did not take into
account that the primary cause, the yearning for proft, remans, driving the
organized groups into a fercer competition, now with mightier forces. The
incapacity of modern capitalism to cope with its anarchy was shown in a grim
ligt by the world crisis 1930. During a number of long years producton
seemed to have defnitely collapsed. Over the whole world millions of workers,
of farmers, even of intellectuals were reduced to living on the doles, which the
governments by necessity, had to provide: From this crisis of production the
present war crisis took its origin.
In this crisis the true character of capitalism and the impossibilit to main
tain it, was shown to mankind as in a searchlight. There were the millions of
people lacking the means to provide for their life necessities. There were the
millions of workers with strong arms, eager to work; there were the machines
in thousands of shops, ready to whirl and to produce an abundan.ce of goods.
But it was not allowed. The capitalist ownership of the meas of production
stood between the workers and the machines . This ownership, affinned unec
essary by the power of police and State, forbade te workers to touch the
machines and to produce all that tey themselves and society needed for their
existence. The machines had to stand and rust, the workers had to hang
around and suffer want. Why? Because capitalism is unable to manage the
mghty technical and productive powers of mankind to confonn to their orig
llal a, to provide for the needs of society.
To be sure, capitalislll llow is trying to intoduce some sort of organizaton
and planned production. Its insatiable proft-hunger cannot be satisfed within
the old realms ; it is driven to expand over the world, to seize the riches, to open
the makets, to subject the peoples of other continents. In a fierce compettion
each of the capitalist groups must try to conquer or to keep to temselves the
rchest portions of the world. Whereas the capitalist class in England, France,
Holland made easy profits by the exploitation of rich colonies, conquered in
fonner wars, German capitalism with its energy, its capacities, its rapid devel-
1 2 WORKERS' COUNCILS
opment, that had come too late in te division of te colonial world, could only
get its share by striving for world-power, by preparing for world-war. It had to
be the aggressor, the others were the defenders. So it was the first to put into
action and to organize all the powers of society for this purpose; and then the
others had to follow its example.
I this stuggle for life between the big capitalist powers the ineficiency of
private capitalism could no longer be allowed to persist. Unemployment now
was a foolish, nay, a criminal waste of badly needed manpower. A strict and
careful organization had to secure the full use of all the labor power and the
fightig power of the nation. Now the untenability of capitalism showed itself
just as grimly from another side. Unemployment was now tured into its oppo
site, into compulsory labor. Compulsory toil ad fightig at the frontiers where
the millions of strong young men, by te most refned means of destruction
mutilate, kill, exterminate, "wipe out" each other, for the world-power of their
capitalist masters. Compulsory labor in te factories where all the rest, women
and children included, are assiduously producing ever more of these engies of
murder; whereas the production of the life necessities is constricted to the
utmost minimum. Shortage and want in everything needed for life and the
falling back to the poorest and ugliest barbarism is the outcome of the higest
development of science and technics, is the glorious fruit of the thinking and
working of so many generations! Why? Because notithstanding all delusive
talk about community and fellowship, organized capitaism, too, is unable to
handle the rich productive powers of mankind to their true purpose, using
them instead for destruction.
Thus the working class is conronted with the necessity of itself taking the
production in hand. The mastery over the machines, over the means of pro
duction, must be taken out of te unworthy hands that abuse them. This is the
comon cause of all producers, of al who do the real productive work in soci
ety, te workers, the techncians, the farmers. But it is the workers, chief and
permanent sufferers from the capitalist system, and moreover, majority of the
populaton, on whom it impends to free themselves and the world from this
scourge. They must manage the means of production. They must be masters
of the factories, masters of their own labor, to conduct it at their own mill.
Then the machines will be put to their true use, the production of abundance
of goods, to provide for the life necessities of all.
This is the task of the workers in the days to come. This is the only road
to freedom, this is the revolution for which society is ripening. By such a revo
luton the character of production is entirely reversed; new principles will form
the basis of society. First, because the exploitaton ceases. The produce of the
common labor will beong to all those who take part in the work. No sur
plus-value to capital any more; ended is the claim of superfluous capitalists to
a part of the produce.
THE 'D\SK 1 3
More important still than the cessation of their share in te produce is the
cessation of their command over the production. Once the workers arc masters
over the shops, the capitalists lose their power of leaving in disuse the
machines, these riches of mankind, precious product of the mental and manu
al exertion of so many generations of workers and thinkers. With the capital
ists disappears their power to dictate what superfuous luxuries or what rubbish
shall be produced. When the workers have command over the machines they
will apply them for the production of all that the life of society requires.
This will be possible only by combining al the factories, as the separate
members of one body, into a wel organized system of production. The con
necton that under capitalism is the fortuitous outcome of blind competition
and marketing, depending on purchase and sale, is then the object of conscious
planning. Then, instead of the patial and imperfect attempts at organization of
modem capitalism, that only lead to fiercer fght and destruction, comes the
perfect organzation of production, growing into a world-wide system of col
laboraton. For te producing classes canot be competitors, only collabora
tors.
These three characterstics of the new production mean a new world. Te
cessation of the profit for capital, the cessation of unemployment of machines
and men, the conscious adequate regulation of production, the increase of the
produce through efficient orgaization, give to each worker a larger quantity of
product with less labor. Now the way is opened for a further development of
productivity. By the application of al technical progress the produce will
increase in such a degree that abundance for al will be joined to the disap
pearance of toil.
2. LAW AND PROPERT
Such a change in the system of labor implies a change of Law. Not, of
course, that new laws must frst be enacted by Parliament or Congress. It con
cerns changes in the depth of society [in the customs and practice of society] ,
far beyond the reach of such temporary things as Parliamentary acts. It relates
to the fundamental laws, not of one country only, but of human society, found
ed on man's convictions of Right andJustice.
Tese laws are not immutable. To be sure, the ruling classes at all times
have tried to perpetuate the existng Law by proclaiming that it is based on
nature, founded on the eternal rights of man, or sanctified by religion. Tis, for
the sae of upholdig their prerogatives and dooming the exploited classes to
perpetual slavery. Historical evidence, on the contray, shows that law contin
ually canged in line wit the changing feelings of right and wrong.
Te sense of right and wrong, the conscousness of justice in men, u not
accidental. It grows up, iresistibly, by nature, out of what tey exerience as
1 4 WORKERS' COUNCILS
the fundamentl conditions of their life. Society must live; so the relations of
men must be regulated in such a way-it is this that law provides for-that the
production of life-necessities may go on unimpeded. Right is what is essential
ly good and necessary for Not only useful for the moment, but needed gen
erally; not for the life of single individuals, but for people at large, for the com
munity; not for personal or temporal interests, but for the common and lasting
weal. If the life-conditions change, if the system of production develops into
new fomis, the relations between men change, their feeling of what is right or
wrong changes with them, and the law has to be altered.
Ths is seen most clearly in the laws regulating the right of property. I the
original savage and barbarian state the land was considered as belonging to the
tribe that lived on it, hunting or pasturing. Expressed in our terms, we should
say that the land was common property of the tribe tat used it for its living
and defended it against other tribes. The self-made weapons and tools were
accessories of the individual, hence were a kind of private property, though not
in our conscious and exclusive sense of this word, in consequence of the strong
mutual bonds amongst the tribesmen. Not laws, but use and custom regulated
their mutual relations. Such primitive peoples, even agricultural peoples in later
times (as the Russian peasants of before 1860) could not conceive the idea of
private ownership of a tract of land, just as we cannot conceive the idea of pri
vate ownership of a quantum of air.
These regulations had to change when the tribes settled and exanded,
cleared the forests and dissolved into separate individuals (i.e., families) , each
working a separate lot. They changed still more when handicraft separated
from agriculture, when from the casual work of all, it became the contnual
work of some; when the products became commodities, to be sold in regular
commerce and to be consumed by others than the producers. It is quite natu
ral that the farmer who worked a piece of land, who improved it, who did his
work at his own will, without interference from others, had the free disposal of
the land and the tools; that the produce was his; that land and produce were
his property. Restrictions might be needed for defense, in mediaeval tmes, in
the form of possible feudal obligations. It is quite natural that the artisan, as the
only one who handled his tools, had the exclusive disposal of them, as well as
of the things he made; that he was the sole owner.
Thus private owership became the fundamental law of a societ founded
on small-scale working-units. Without being expressly formulated it was felt as
a necessary right that whoever exclusively handled the tools, the land, the
product, must be master of them, must have the free disposal of them. Private
ownership of the means of production belongs as its necessary juridical attrib
ute to small trade.
It remained so, when capitalism came to be master of industry. It was even
more consciously expressed, and the French Revolution proclaimed liberty,
THE TASK 15
equality and property the fundamental Rights of the citizen. It was private own
ership of the means of production simply applied, when, instead of some
apprentices, te master-craftsman hired a larger number of servants to assist
m, to work with his tools and to make products for him to sell. By means of
exloiting the labor-power of the workers, te factories and machines, as pri
vate property of the capitalist, became the source of an immense and ever
growing increase of capital. Here private ownership performed a new functon
in society. As capitalst ownership it ascertained power and increasing wealt to
the new ruling class, the capitalists, and enabled them strongly to develop the
productivity of labor and to expand their rule over the earth. So this juridical
institute, notwithstanding the degradation and misery of the exploited workers,
was felt as a good and benefcent, even necessary institution, promising an
unlimted progress of society.
'Ibs development, however, gradually changed the inner character of the
social system. And thereby again the function of private ownership changed.
Wit the joint-stock companies the twofold character of te capitalist facto
ry-owner, that of directing the production and that of pocketing the
surplus-value, is splitting up. Labor and property, in olden times intimately
connected, are now separated. Owners are the shareholders, living outside the
process of production, idlig in distant country-houses and maybe gambling at
the exchange. A shareholder has no direct connection with the work. Hs prop
erty does not consist in tools for hi t work with; his property consists sim
ply in pieces of paper, in shares of enterrises of which he does not even know
the whereabouts. His function in society is that of a parasite. His ownership
does not mean that he commands and directs the machines ; this is the sole right
of the director. It means only that he may claim a certain amount of money
without having to work it. The property in hand, his shares, are certifcates
showing his right-guaranteed by law and government, by courts and police-to
partcipate in the profits; tites of companionship in that large Society for
Exploitaton of the World, that is capitalism.
The work in the factories goes on quite apart from the shareholders. Here
te director and te staff have the care all day, to regulate, to run about, to
think of everything, the workers are working and toiling from moring tll
evening, hurried and abused. Everybody has to exert himself to te utmost to
render the output as large as possible. But the product of their common work
is not for those who did the work. Just as in olden times burgesses were ran
sacked by gangs of wayside robbers, so now people entirely foreign to the pro
duction come forward and, on the credit of their papers (as registered owners
of share scrip) , seize the chief part of the produce. Not violently; without hav
ing to move as much as a finger they fmd it put on their baring account, auto
matically. Only a poor wage or a moderate salary is left for tose who toget
er did the work of production; all the rest is dividend taken by the sharehold-
16 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ers. Is tis madness? It is the new function of private ownership of the means
of production. It is simply the praxs of old inherited law, applied to the new
forms of labor to which it does no longer fit.
Here we see how the social fnction of a juridical institute, in consequence
of the gradual change of the forms of production, turns into the very reverse
of its original aim. Private ownership, originally a means to give everybody the
possibility of productive work, now has turned into the means to prevent the
workers from the free use of the instruments of production. Originally a means
to ascertain to the workers the fruits of their labor, it now turned into a means
to deprive the workers of the fruits of their labor, for the beneft of a class of
useless parasites.
How is it, then, that such obsolete law still holds sway over society? Frst,
because the numerous middle-cass and small-business people, the farmer and
independent artisans cling to it, in the belief that it assures them their small
property and their living; but wit the result tat often, with their mortgaged
holdings, they are the victims of usury and bank-capital. When saying: I am
my own master, they mean: I have not to obey a foreig master; communit in
work as collaborating equas lies far outside their imagination. Secondly and
chiefly, however, because the power of the State, with its police and military
force, upholds old law for the beneft of te ruling class, te capitalists.
In the workng cass, now, the consciousness of tis contradiction is arising
as a new sense of Right andJustice. The old right, through the development of
small trade into big business, has turned into wrong, and it is felt as a wong.
It contradicts the obvious rule that tose who do dIe work and handle the
equipment must dispose of it in order to arrange and execute the work in the
best way. The small tool, the small lot could be handled and worked by a sin
gle person with his family. So tat person had de disposal of it, was the owner.
The big machines, te factories, the large enterprises can only be handled and
worked by an organized body of workers, a community of collaborating forces.
So this body, the community, must have the disposal of it, in order to arrange
the work according to their common will. TItis common ownership does not
mean an ownership in the old sense of the word, as the right of using or mis
using at will. Each enterprise but part, the total productive apparatus of soci
ety; so the right of each body or community of producers is limited by the
superior right of society, and has to be carried out in regular connection with
the others.
Common ownership must not be confounded with public ownership. In
public ownership, often advocated by notable social reformers, the State or
anodIer politicl body is master of the production. Te workers are not mas
ters of dIeir work, they are commanded by the State ofcials, who are leading
and directng dIe production. Whatever may be the conditions of labor, how
ever human and considerate the treatment, de fndamental is that not the
THE TASK 17
workers themselves, but the officials dispose of the means of production, dis
pose of te product, mange the entire process, decide what part of the produce
shall be reserved for innovations, for wear, for improvements, for social expens
es, what part has to fall to the workers, what part to themselves . In short, the
workers still receive wages, a share of the product determined by the masters.
Under public ownership of the means of production, the workers are still sub
jected to and exploited by a ruling class. Public ownership is a middle-class pro
gram of a moderized ad disguised form of capitalism. Common ownership
by the producers can be the only goal of the working class.
Tus the revolution of the system of production is intimately bound up
with a revolution of Law. It is based on a change in the deepest convictions of
Right and Justice. Each production-system consists of the application of a cer
tain technique, combined with a certain Law regulating the relations of men in
their work, fxing their rights and duties. The technics of small tools combined
with private ownership means a society of free and equal competing small pro
ducers. The technics of big machines combined with private ownership, meas
capitalism. The technics of big machines, combined with common ownership,
means a free collaborating humanity. Thus capitalism is an intermediate sys
tem, a transitional form resulting from the applcation of the old Law to the
new technics. While the technical development enormously increased the pow
ers of man, the inherited law that regulated the use of these powers subsisted
nearly unchanged. No wonder that it proved inadequate, and that society fell
to such distress. This is th e deepest sense of the present world crisis. Mankind
simply neglected in time to adapt its old law to its new technical powers.
Therefore it now suffers ruin and destruction.
'lechnique is a given power. To be sure, its rapid development is the work
of man, the natural result of thinking over the work, of experience and exper
iment, of exertion and competition. But once established, its applcation is auto
matic, outside our free choice, imposed like a given force of nature. We cannot
go back, as poets have wished, to the general usc of the small tools of our fore
fathers. Law, on the other hand, must be instituted by man with conscious
desig. Such as it is established, it determines freedom or slavery of man
towards man and towards his technical equipment.
When inherited law, in consequence of the silent growth of technics, has
turned into a means of exploitation and oppression, it becomes an object of
contest between the social classes, the exploiting and the exploited cass. So
long as the exploited class dutifully acknowledges existing law as Right and
Justice, so long its exploitation remains lawful and unchallenged. When then
gradualy in the masses arises a growing consciousness of their exploitation, at
the same time new conceptions of Right awaken in tem. With the growig
feeling that existing law is contrary of justice, their wil is roused to change it
and to make their convictions of right and justice the law of society. This means
18 WORKERS' COUNCILS
that the sense of being wronged is not suffcient. Only when in great masses of
te workers this sense grows into such clear and deep convictions of Right that
they permeate the entire being, filling it with a firm determination and a fiery
enthusiasm, they will be able to develop the powers needed for revolving the
social structure. Even then this will be ony the preliminary condition. A heavy
and lengthy struggle to overcome the resistance of the capitalist class defending
its rule with the utmost power, will be needed to establish the new order.
3. SHOP ORGANIZATION
Tus the idea of their common ownership of the means of production is
begilming to take hold of the minds of the workers. Once they feel the new
order, their own mastery over labor to be a matter of necessity and of justice,
all teir thoughts and all their actions wll be consecrated to its realization.
They know that it cannot be done at once; a long period of fight will be
unavoidable. To break the stubborn resistance of te ruling classes the workers
will have to exert their utmost forces. the powers of mind and character, of
organization and knowledge, whic they are capable of mustering must be
developed. And first of all they have to make clear to themselves wht it is they
aim at, what this new order means.
Man, when he has to do a work, first conceives it in his mind as a plan, as
a more or less conscious design. This distinguishes the actions of man from the
instinctive actions of animals. This aso holds, in principle, for the common
struggles, the revolutionary action of social classes. Not entirely, to be sure;
there is a deal of unpremeditated spontaneous impulse in their outbursts
of passionate revolt. Te fighting workers are not an army conducted after a
neatly conceived plan of action by a staff of able leaders. They are a people
gradually rising out of submissiveness and ignorance, gradually coming to con
sciousness of tlleir exploitation, agan and again driven to fght for better liv
ing conditions, by degrees developing their powers. New feelings spring up in
their hearts, new thoughts arise in their heads, how the world might and should
be. New wishes, new ideals, new aims fill their mind and direct their will and
action. Their aims gradually take a more concise shape. From the simple strife
for better working conditions, in the begining, they grow ito te idea of a
fundamental reorgaization of society. For several generations already the ideal
of a world without exploitation and oppression has taken hold of the minds of
the workers. Nowadays the conception of the workers themselves master of the
means of production, themselves directing their labor, arises ever more strong
ly in their mnds.
This new organization of labor we have to investigate and to clarify to our
selves and to one another, devoting to it the best powers of our mind. We c
not devise it as a fantasy; we derive it from te real conditions and needs of
THE TASK 19
present work and present workers. It cannot, of course, be depicted in detail;
we do not know the future conditions that will determine its precise forms.
Those forms will take shape in the minds of the workers then facing the task.
We must content ourselves for the present to trace the general outlines only, the
leading ideas that wil direct the actions of the working class. Tey wll be as
the guiding stars that in all te vici ssitudes of victory and adversit in fght, of
success and falure in orgaization, keep the eyes steadiy directed towards the
great goal. Tey must be elucidated not by minute descriptions of detail, but
chiefly by comparing the principles of the new world with tlle known forms of
existng organizations.
When the workers seize the factories t o organize the work an immensity of
new and dificult problems arises before them. But they dispose of an immen
sity of new powers also. A new system of production never is a artificial struc
ture erected at will. It arises as an irresistible process of nature, as a convulsion
moving societ in its deepest entrails, evoking the mightiest forces and passions
in man. It is the result of a tenacious and probably long class struggle. Te
forces required for construction can develop and grow up in this fight only.
What are the foundations of the new society? They are the social forces
fellowship and solidarity, of discipline and enthusiasm, the moral forces of
self-sacrifice and devotion to the community, the spiritual forces of knowledge,
of courage and perseverance, tlle fnn organiation that binds all tese forces
into a unity of purpose, all of them are the outcome of the class fight. Tey
cannot purposely be prepared in advance. Their frst traces arise spontaneous
ly in the workers out of their common exploitation; and then they grow inces
santly through the necessities of the fight, under the infuence of experience
and of mutual inducement and instruction. They must grow because their full
ness brings victory, their deficiency defeat. But even after a success in fghting
attempts at new construction must fail, so long as the social forces are insufi
cient, so long as the new principles do not entirely occupy the workers' hearts
and minds. And in that case, since mankind must live, since production must
go on, other powers, powers of constraint, dominating and suppressing forces,
will take te production in their hands. So the fight has to be taken up ever
anew, till the social forces in the working class have reached such a height as to
render them capable of being the self-governing masters of society.
The great task of the workers is the organization of production on a new
basis. It has to begin with the organization within the shop. Capitalism, too,
had a carefully planned shop-organization; but the prnciples of the new organ
ization are entirely different. Te technical basis is the same in both cases; it is
the discipline of work imposed by the regula rnning of the machines . But the
social basis, the mutual relations of men, are the very opposite of what tlley
were. Collaboration of equal companions replaces the command of masters
and the obedience of servats. Te sense of duty, the devotion to the commu-
20 WORKERS' COUNCILS
nity, the praise or blame of the comrades according to efforts and achieve
ments, as incentives take te place of fear for hunger and perpetual risk of los
ing the job. Instead of the passive utensils and victims of capital, the workers
are now the self-reliant masters and organizers of production, exalted by the
proud feeling of being active co-operators i the rise of a new humanity.
Te ruling body i this shop-organzaton is the entirety of the collaborat
workers. They assemble to discus s matters and in assembly take their deci
sions. So everybody who tkes part in the work takes part in the regulation of
the common work. This is all self-evident and normal, and the method seems
to be identical to that followed when under capitalism groups or unions of
workers had to decide by vote on the common aflairs. But there are essential
diferences. In the unions there was usually a division of task between the offi
cias and the members ; the officials prepared and devised the proposals ad the
members voted. With their fatigued bodies and weary minds the workers had
to leave the conceiving to others; it was ony in part or in appearance that they
managed their own affairs. In the common management of the shop, however,
they have to do everything themselves, the conceiving, the devising, as well as
the deciding. Devotion and emulaton not ony play their role in everybody's
work-task, but are still more essential in the common task of regulating the
whole. First, because it is the al-importat common cause, which they canot
leave to others. Secondly, because it deals with the mutual relations n their
own work, in which they are all interested and all competent, which therefore
conmlands their profound considerations, and which thorough discussion must
settle. So it is not only the bodily, but still more the mental effort bestowed by
each in his participation in the general regulation that is the object of competi
tion and appreciation. The discussion, moreover, must bear another character
than in soceties and unions under capitaism, where there are always differ
ences of personal- interest. There in his deeper consciousncss everybody is con
cerned with his own safeguarding, and discussions have to adjust and to
smoot out these differences in the common action. Here, however, in the new
community of labor, all the interests are essentially the same, and all thoughts
are directed to the common ai of effective co-operative orgazation.
In great factories and plants te number of workers is too large to gather in
one meeting, and far too large for a real and thorough discussion. Here deci
sions can only be taken in to steps, by the combined action of assemblies of
the separate sections of the plant, and assemblies of central committees of del
egates. The functions and the practice of these committees cannot exactly be
ascertained in advace now; they are entirc1 y new, an essential part of tle new
economic structure. When facing the practical needs the workers will develop
the practical stmcture. Yet something of their character may, in general lines,
be derived by comparing them with bodies ad organizatons known to us.
THE TASK 2 1
In the old capitalist world central committees of delegates are a well-known
institution. We have them in parliaments, in all kinds of political bodies ad in
leading boards of societies and unions. They ae ivested with authority over
their constituents, or even rule over them as their masters. As such it is in line
with a social system of a working mass of people exploited and commanded by
a ruling minorty. Now, however, the task is to build up a forl of organization
for a body of collaborating free producers , actually and mentally controlling
their common productive action, regulating it as equals their own will-a
quite different social system. Again in the old world we have union councils
administering the current after the membership, assembling at greater
intervals, have fxed the general policy. What these councils then have to deal
with are the triles of the day, not vital questions. Now, however, basis and
essence of life itsef are concerned, the productive work, that occupies and has
to occupy everybody's mind continually, as the one and greatest object of their
thoughts.
The new conditons of labor make these shop-committees someting quite
different everything we know in the capitalist world. They are central, but
not ruling bodies, they are no governig board. Te delegates constitutig
them have been sent by sectional assemblies with special instructions ; they
return to these assemblies to report on the discussion and its result, and after
further deliberaton the same or other delegates may go up with new instruc
tions. In such a way they act as the connecting links beteen te personnels of
the separate sections. Neither are the shop-committees bodies of exerts to pro
vide the directing regulations for the non-expert multitude. Of course, experts
will be necessary, single or in bodies, to deal with the special technical and sci
entfic problems. The shop-committees, however, have to deal with the daily
proceedings, the mutual relations, the regulaton of the work, where everybody
is expert and at the same time an interested pary. Among other items it is up
to them to put into practice what special experts suggest. Nor are te
shop-commttees the responsible bodies for the good management of the
whole, wit te consequence that every member may shift his part of respon
sibilty upon the impersonal collectivity. On the contary, whereas this ma
agement is incumbent upon all in common, single persons may be consigned
special tasks which to fulfill with their entire capacity, in full responsibility,
whilst carry all the honors for the achievement.
members of the personnel, men and women, younger and older, who
take part in the work, as equal companions take their part in this shop-organi
zation, in the actual work as well as in the general regulation. Of course, there
will be much difference in the personal tasks, easier or more difcult according
to force and capactes, different in character according to inclination and abil
ities. And, of course, the diferences in general insight will give a preponder
ance to the advice of the most intelligent. At frst, when as an inheritance of
22 WORKERS' COUNCILS
capitalism there ae large diferences in education and training, the lack of good
technical ad general knowledge in the masses will be felt as a heavy deficen
cy. Then the small number of highly trained professional technicians and sci
entists must act as technical leaders, without thereby acquiring a commanding
or socially leading position, without gaing privileges other than the estima
tion of their companions and the moral authority that always attaches to capac
ity and knowledge.
The organzation of a shop is the conscious arrangement and connection of
all the separate procedures into one whole. All these interconnections of mutu
ally adapted operations may be represented in a well-ordered scheme, a mental
image of the actual process. As such it was present in the fst plannng and in
the later improvements and enlargements. This image must be present i the
minds, of al the collaboratng workers; tey all must have a thorough acquan
tance with what is their own common affair. Just as a map or a graph flxes and
shows in a plan, to everyone intelligible picture the conections of a compli
cated totality, so here the state of the tota enterprise, at every moment, in all
its developments must be rendered visible by adequate representations. In
numerical form this is done by bookkeeping. Bookkeeping registers and fxes
all that happens in the process of producton: what raw materials eter the
shop, what machines are procured, wht product they yield, how much labor
is bestowed upon the products, how many hours of work are given by every
worker, what products are delivered. It follows and describes te flow of mate
rials through the process of production. It allows continually to compare, in
comprehensive accounts, the results with te prevous estimtes in planning. So
the producton in the shop is made into a mentally controlled process.
Capitalist management of enterprises also knows mental control of the pro
duction. Here, too, the proceedings are represented by calculation and book
keeping. But there is this fundamental difference that capitalist calculaton is
adapted entirely to the viewpoint of production of proflt. It deals with prces
and costs as its fundamental data; work and wages are only factors in the cal
culation of the resulting profit on the yearly balance account. I the new sys
tem of production, on the other hand, hours of work is the fundamental datum,
whether they are stil expressed, in the begining, in money units, or in their
own true form. In capitalist production caculation and bookkeeping is a secret
of the direction, the office. It is no concern of the workers; they are objects of
exploitation, they are only factors in the calculation of cost and produce, acces
sories to the machines . In the production under common ownership the book
keeping is a public matter; it les open to all. The workers have aways a com
plete view of the course of the whole process. Only in this way they are able to
dscuss matters in the sectional assemblies and in the shop-committees, and to
decide on what has to be done. The numerical results are made visible, more
over, by statistical tables, by graphs and pictures that display the situation at a
THE TASK 23
glance. This information is not restricted to the persoIlel of the shop; it is a
public matter, open to al outsiders. Every shop is only a member in the social
production, and also the connecton of its doings with the work outside is
expressed in te book-keeping. Thus insight in the production going on in
every enterprise is a piece of common knowledge for all the producers.
4. SOCIAL ORGANIZATION
Labor is a social process. Each enterprise is part of the productive body of
society. The total social production is formed by their connection and collabo
ration. Like the cells that constitute a living organism, they can ot exist isolat
ed and cut off from the body. So the organization of the work inside the shop
is only one-half of the task of the workers. Over it, a still more important task,
stands the joining of the separate enterprises, their combination into a social
organization.
Whereas organization within the shop aready existed under capitalism,
and had only to be replaced by another, based on a new foundation, social
organization of all the shops into one whole is, or was until recent years, some
thng entirely new, without precedent. So utterly new, that during the entire
nineteenth century te establishng of ths organization, under the name of
"socialism" was considered the main task of the workng class. Capitalism con
sisted of an unorganized mass of independent enterprises-"a j ostlng crowd of
separate private employers," as the program of te Labor Party expresses 1t
connected only by the chance relations of market and competiton, resulting in
bankruptcies, overproduction and crisis, unemployment and an enormous
waste of materials and labor power. To abolish it, the working class should con
quer te poltical power and use it to organize idustry and production. This
State-socialism was considered, then, as te frst step into a new development.
I the last years the situaton hs changed in so far that capitalism itself has
made a beginning with State-run organization. It is driven not only by te sim
ple wish to increase productivity and profts through a rational planning of pro
duction. Russia there was the necessity of making up for te backwardness
of economic development by means of a deliberate rapid organization of indus-
by the bolshevist government. In Germany it was the fight for world power
that drove to State control of production and State-organzation of industry.
This fight was so heavy a task that only by concentrating into the hands of the
State the power over all productive forces could te German capitaist cass
have a chance of success. In national-socalist organization property and prof
it-tough strongly cut for State needs-remain with the private capitalist, but
the disposal over the means of production, their direction and management has
been taken over by the State offcals. By an effcient organizaton the unim
paired production of profits is secured for capital and for the State. This organ-
24 WORKERS' COUNCILS
iation of the production at large is founded on the same principles as the
organization within the factory, on the personal command of the general direc
tor of society, the Leader, the head of the State. Wherever Government takes
control over industry, authority and constraint take the place of te former
freedom of the capitalist producers. The political power of the State officials is
greatly strengthened by their economic power, by their command over the
meas of production, the foundation of society.
The principle of the work.ing class is in every respect the exact opposite.
The orgaization of production by the workers is founded on free collabora
tion: no masters, no servants. The combination of all te enterrises into one
social organization takes place after the same principle. The mechanism for this
purpose must be built up by the workers.
Given the impossibility to collect the workers of all te factories into one
meeting, they can only express their will by means of delegates. For such bod
ies of delegates in later times the name of workers' councils has come into use.
Every collaborating group or personnel designats the members who in the
council assemblies have to express its opinion and its wishes. These took an
active part themselves in the deliberatons of tis group, they came to the front
as able defenders of the views that carried the mjority. Now they are sent as
the spokesmen of the group to confront te views with those of other groups
in order to come to a collective decision. Though teir personal abilities play a
role i persuading the colleagues and in clearing problems, their weight does
not lay in their individual strength, but in the stength of the community that
delegated them. What carries weight are not simple opinions but still more the
will and the readiness of the group to act accordingly. Different persons vact
as delegates according to the different questions raised and the forthcoming
problems.
Te chief problem, the basis of all the rest, is the production itself. Its
organization has two sides, the establishment of general rules and norms and
the practical work itself. Norms and rules must be established for the mutual
relations i the work, for the rights and duties. Under capitalism the norm con
sisted i the command of the master, the director. Under State-capitalism it con
sisted in the mightier command of the Leader, the central goverent. Now,
however, al producers are fee and equal. Now in the economic field of labor
the same change takes place as occur in fonner centuries in the political field,
with the rise of the middle class. When the rule of the citizens came in place of
the rule of the absolute monarch, this could not mean tat for his arbitrary will
the arbitrary will of everybody was substituted. It meant that,
'
henceforward,
laws established by the common will should regulate the public rights and
duties. So now, in the realm of labor, the command of the master gives way to
rules fxed in common, to regulate the social rights and duties, in production
and consumption. To formulate them will be the frst task of the workers' coun-
THE TASK 25
cils. This is not a difcult task, not a matter of profound study or serious dis
cordance. For every worker these rules will immediately spring up in his con
sciousness as the natural basis of the new society: everyone's duty to take part
in te production in accordance with his forces and capacities, everyone's right
to enjoy his adequate part of the collective product.
How will the quantities of labor spent and the quantities of product to
which he is entitled be measured? a society where the goods are produced
directly for consumption there is no market to exchange them; ad no value,
as expression of the labor contained in them establishes itself automatically out
of the processes of buying and selling. Here the labor spent must be expressed
in a direct way by the number of hours. The administration keeps book
[records] of the hours of labor contained in every piece or unit quantity of
product, as well as of the hours spent by each of the workers. In the averages
over all the workers of a factory, and finally, Over all the factories of the same
category, the personal differences are smoothed out and the personal results are
intercompared.
In the fst times of transition when there is much devastation to be
repaired, the frst problem is to build up te production apparatus ad to keep
people alive. It is quite possible that the habit, imposed by war and famine, of
having the indispensable foodstuffs distributed without distinction is simply
continued. It is most probable that, in those times of reconstruction, when all
the forces must be exerted to the utmost, when, moreover, the new moral prin
cipals of common labor are only gradually forming, the right of consumption
will be coupled to the performance of work. The old popular saying that who
ever does not work shall not eat, expresses an instinctive feeling of justice. Here
it is not only the recognition that labor is the basis of all human life, but also
the proclaiming that now there is an end to capitalist exploitation and to appro
priating the fuits of foreign labor by property titles of an idle class.
This does not mean, of course, that now the total produce is distributed
among the producers, according to the time given by each. Or, expressed i
another way, that every worker receives, in the form of products, just the quan
tity of hours of labor spent i n working. A considerable part of the work must
be spent on the common property, on the perfection and enlargement of the
productive apparatus. Under capitalism part of the surplus-value served tis
purpose; the capitalist had to use part of his proft, accumulated into new cap
ital, to innovate, expand and moderize his technical equipment, in his case
driven by the necessity not to be outflanked by his competitors. So the progress
in technics took place in forms of exploitation. Now, in the new form of pro
duction, this progress is the common concern of the workers . Keeping them
selves alive is the most immediate, but building the basis of futre production
is the most glorious part of their task. They will have to settle what part of their
total labor shall be spent on the making of better machines and more effcient
26 WORKERS' COUNCILS
tools, on research and experiment, for faciitating te work and improving the
production.
Moreover, part of the total time and labor of society must be spet on
non-productive, though necessary activities, on general administration, on edu
cation, on medical service. Chidren and old people will receive their share of
the produce without corresponding achievements. People incapable of work
must be sustained; and especially in the first time tere will be a large number
of human wrecks left by the former capitalist world. Probably the rule will pre
vail that the productve work is the task of the younger part of te adults ; or,
in other words, is the task of everybody during tat period of his life when
both the tendency and the capacity for vigorous activity are greatest. By the
rapid increase of te productivty of Iabor this part, the time needed to produce
all the life necessities, will continually decrease, and an increasing part of life
will be available for other purposes and activities.
The basis of the social organization of production consists in a careful
administration, in the form of statistics and bookkeeping. Statistics of the con
sumption of all the different goods, statistics of the capacity of the industrial
plants, of the machines, of the soi, of the mines, of the means of transport, sta
tistics of the population and the resources of towns, districts and countries, all
these present the foundation of the entire economic process in well ordered
rows of numerical data. Statistcs of economic processes were already known
under capitalism; but they remained imperfect because the independence and
the limited view of the private business men ad they found only a liited
application. Now they are the starting point in te organizaton of production;
to produce the right quatity of goods, the quantity used or wanted must be
known. At the same time statistics as the compressed result of the numerical
registration of the process of production, the comprehensive summary of the
bookkeeping, expresses the course of development.
The general bookkeeping, comprehending and encompassing the adminis
trations of the separate enterprises, combines them al into a representation of
the economic process of society. In different degrees of range it registers the
entire process of transformation of matter, following it from the raw materials
at their origin, through al the factories, through all the hands, down to the
goods ready for consumption. In uniting the results of co-operating enterprises
of a sort into one whole it compares their efficiency, it averages the hours of
labor needed and directs the attention to the ways open for progress. Once the
organization of production has been carried out the administration is the com
paratively simple task of a network of interconected computing ofices. Every
enterprise, every contingent group of enterprises, every branch of production,
every township or district, for production and for consumption, has its ofce,
to take care of the administration, to collect, to treat and to discuss the figres
ad to put them into a perspicuous form easy to survey. Their combined work
THE TASK 27
makes the material basi of life a mentally dominated process. As a plain and
intelligible numerical image the process of production is laid open to every
body's views. Here mankind views and controls it Own life. \hat the work
ers and their councils devise ad plan in orgaized collaboration is shown in
character and results in the figures of bookkeeping. Only because they are per
petually before the eyes of every worker the directon of social production by
the producers themselves is rendered possible.
This organization of economic life is entirely diferent from the forms of
orgaization developed under capitalism; it is more perfect and more simple.
The intricacies and difficulties in capitalist organization, for which the much
glorified genius of big business men was needed, always dealt with their mutu
al struggle, with the arts and ticks of capitalist warfare to subdue or annihilate
the competitors. All this has disappeared now. The plain aim, the providing for
the life necessities of mankind, makes the entire structure plain and direct.
Administration of large quantities, fundamentally, is hardly mOre difficult or
more complcated than that of small quantities; only a couple of ciphers has to
be put behind the figures. The rich and multiform diversity of wants and wish
es that in small groups of people is hardly less than in large masses, now, by
their massal character, can be secured more easily and more completely.
The function ad the place numerical administration occupies in society
depends on the character of this society. Financial administration of States was
always necessary as part of the central government, and the computing ofcials
were subordinate servants of the kings or other rulers. \here i modern cap
italism production subjected to an encompassing central organizaton, those
who have the central administration in their hands will be the leading directors
of economy and develop into a ruling bureaucracy. vhen in Russia the revo
lution of 1917 led to a rapid expansion of industry and hosts of workers still
permeated by the babarous ignorance of the vilages crowded into the new fac
tories they lacked the power to check the rsing dominance of the bureaucracy
then orgnizing into a new ruling class. \en in Germany, 1933, a sternly
organized party conquered the State power, as organ of its central administra
tion it took in hand the organization of all the forces of capitalism.
Conditions are entirely diferent when the workers as masters of their labor
and as free producers organize production. The admiistration by means of
bookkeeping and computig is a special task of certain persons, just a ham
mering steel or baking bread is a special task of other persons, al equally use
ful and necessary. The workers in the computg offces are neither s ervants
nor rulers. They are not oficials in the service of the workers' councils, obe
diently having to perfor their orders. They are groups of workers, like other
groups collectvely regulating their work themselves, disposing of their imple
ments, performing their duties, as does every group, in continual connection
with the needs of the whole. They are the experts who have to provide the basi-
28 WORKERS' COUNCILS
cal data of the discussions and decisions in the assemblies of workers and of
councls. They have to collect te data, to present them in an easily intelligible
form of tables, of graphs, of pictures, so that every worker at every moment
has a clear image of the state of tings. Their knowledge is not a private prop
erty giving them power; they are not a body with exclusive adminstratve
knowledge that thereby somehow could exert a deciding influence. Te prod
uct of their labor, the numerical insight needed for the work's progress, is avail
able to all. This general knowledge is the foundation of all te discussions and
decisions of the workers and their councils by which the organization of labor
is perfored.
For the first time in history the economic life, in general and in detail, lies
as an open book before the eyes of mankind. The foundations of societ, under
capitalism a huge mass hidden in the dark depths, dimly lighted here and there
by statistics on commerce production, now has entered in to the full daylight
and shows its detailed structure. Here we dispose of a science of society con
sisti:ng of a well-ordeed knowledge of facts, out of which leading causal rela
tons are readily grasped. It forms te basis of the social organization of labor
just as the knowledge of the facts of nature, condensed they too ito causal
relations, forms the basis of the technical organization of labor. As a knowledge
of the common simple facts of daily life it is avalable to everyone and enables
him to survey and grasp the necessities of the whole as well as his own part in
it. It forms the spiritual equipment through which the producers are able to
direct the production and to control their world.
5. OBJECTIONS
The principles of the new structure of society appear so natural and self-evi
dent, that tere may seem to be litde room for doubts or objections. The
doubts come from the old traditions that fill the minds with cobwebs, so long
as the fresh storm wind of social actvity does not blow through them. The
objections are raised by the other casses that, up tl now are leading society.
So first we have to consider te objections of the bourgeoisie, the ruling class
of capitalists.
One might say that the objectons of the members of the capitalist class do
not matter. We cannot convice them, nor is this necessary. Their ideas and
convictions, as well as our own, are class ideas, determined by class conditions
different from ours by the difference in life conditions and in social function.
We have not to convince them by reasonng, but to beat them by power.
But, we should not forget that capitalist power to a great extent is spiritual
power, power over dIe lninds of the workers. TIle ideas of the ruling class dom
inate socety and permeate the minds of the exploited classes. They are fxed
there, fundamentally, by the inner stength and necessity of the system of pro-
THE TASK 29
duction; they are actually implanted there by educaton and propaganda, by
the influence of school, church, press, literature, broadcasting and fihn. As long
as this holds, te working class, lacking consciousness of its class position,
acquiescing in exploitation as the normal conditioIl of life does not think of
revolt and cannot fight. Mnds submissive to the doctrines of the Inasters c
not hope to win freedom. They must overcome the spiritual sway of capitalism
over their minds before they actually can throw off its yoke. Capitalism must
be beaten theoretically before it can be beaten materialy. Because then only the
absolute certainty of the tuth of their opinions as well as of the justice of their
aims ca give such confidence to the workers as is needed for victory. Because
then only hesitaton and misgivings will lame the forces of the foe. Because
then only the wavering middle groups, instead of fghting for capitalism, may
to a certan degTee conceive the necessity of social transformation and dIe ben
efit of the new order.
So we have to face the objections rased from the side of the capitalist class.
They proceed directly from its view of dIe world. for the bourgeoisie capital
ism is dIe only possible and natural system of society, or at least, since more
primitive forms preceded its most developed final form. Hence all the phe
nomena presented by capitalism are not considered as temporary but as natu
ral phenomena, founded on the eteral nature of man. The capitalist class sees
the deep aversion of the workers against their daily labor; and how they only
resig themselves to it by dire necessit. It concludes that man in the great mass
is naturally averse to regular productive work, and for that reason is bound to
reman poor-with the exception of te energetic, industrious and capable
minority, who love work and so become leaders, directors and capitalists. Then
it follows that, if the workers should be collectively masters of dIe production,
witout the compettive princple of personal reward for personal exertion, the
lazy majority will do as little as possible, trying to live upon what a more indus
trious minority performs ; and universal poverty would ievitably be the result.
All the wonderful progress, all the abundance capitalism has brought in the last
century wil ten be lost, when the stimulus of personal interest is removed;
and mand will sink back into barbarism.
To refte such objections it is suficient to point out that they form the nat
ural viewpoint from the oter side of society, from the side of the exploiting
class. Never in history were the old rulers able to acknowledge the capabilit
of a new rising class ; they expected an inevitable failure as soon as it should try
to manage the affairs ; and the new class, conscious of its forces, could show
these only in conquering and after having conquered power. Thus nOw the
workers grow conscious of the inner strengh of their class ; their superior
knowledge of the structure of society, of the character of productive labor
shows them the futility of the capitaist point of view. They will have to prove
30 WORKERS' COUNCILS
their capacites, certainly. But not in the form of standing a test beforehand.
Their test will be their fght and victory.
This argument is not directed to the capitalist class, but to my fellow work
ers. The middle class ideas stl permeating large masscs of them consist chiefy
in doubt and disbelief in their own forces. As long as a class does not believe
in themselves, they cannot expect that other groups should believe in them.
This lack of self-confdence, the chief weakness now, cannot be entrely
removed under capitalism with its many degrading and exhausting infuences.
In times of emergency, however, world crisis and impending ruin, compeling
the working class to revolt and fght, wll also, once it has won, compel it to
take control of production. Then the command of dire need treads under foot
the implanted timorous difdence of their own forces and the imposed task
rouses unexpected energies. Whatever hesitation or doubt may be in their
minds this one thing the workers know for certain: that they, better than the
idle people of property, know what is work, that they can work, and that they
will work. The futile objections of the capitalist class will collapse with ts class
itself.
More serious oj ections are raised from other sides. From such as consider
themseves and are considered as friends, as allies or spokesmen of the work
ing class. In later capitalism there is a widespread opinion, among Intellectuals
and social reformers, among trade union leaders and social democrats, that
capitalist production for profit is bad and has to dsappear, and that it has to
make place for some kind of socialist system of production. Organization of
producton, they say, i s te means of producing abundance for all. The capi
talist anarchy of the totality of production must be abolished by imitatng the
organized order within the factory. Just as in a well-directed enterprise te per
fect running of every detail and the highest eficiency of the whole is secured
by the central authority of the director and the staff, so in the stil more com
plicated social structure the right interaction and connection of all its parts can
only be secured by a central leading power.
The lack of such a ruling power, they say, is what must be oiected to the
system of organization by means of workers ' councils. They argue that nowa
days production is not the hndling of simple tools, easily to survey by every
body, as in the bygone days of our ancestors, but the application of te most
abstract sciences, accessible ony to capable and well instructed minds. They
say that a clear-sighted view on an intricate structure and its capable manage
ment demand talents that ony few are gifted with; that it fails to see that the
majority of people are dominated by narrow selfishness, and that they lack the
capacities and even the interest to take up these large responsibilities. And
should the workers in stupid presumption reject the leadership of the most
capable, and try to direct production and society by their own masses, then,
however industrious they may be, their failure would be inevitable; every fac-
THE TSK 3 1
tory would soon be a chaos, and decline would be the result. Tey must fail
because they cannot muster a leading power of sufcient authority to impose
obedience and thus to secure a smooth runng of te complicated organiza
tion.
Where to find such a central power? They argue, we have it already in State
government. Till now Government restricted its functions to political afairs; it
will have to extend them to economic affairs-as already it is compelled to do
in some minor cases-to the general management of production and distrbu
tion. For is not war against hunger and misery equally, and even more impor
tant than war ag-ainst foreig enemies?
Hthe State directs the economic activities it acts as the central body of te
communty. The producers are master of te producton, not in small groups
separately, but in such a way that in their totality, as the entire class, as the
whole people are master. Public ownership of the means of production, for
their most important part, means State ownership, the totality of the people
being represented by the State. By the democratic State, of course, where peo
ple choose their rulers. A socal and political organization where the masses
choose their leaders, everywhere, in te factories, in the unions, in the State,
may be called universal democracy. Once chosen, these leaders of course must
be strictly obeyed. For only in ts way, by obedience to the comdment of
able leaders of production, the organization can work smoothly and satisfacto
rily.
Such is the point of the spokesmen of State socialism. It is clear that tis
plan of social organization is entirely diflerent from a true disposal by the pro
ducers over the production. Only in name are the workers masters of their
labor, just as ony in name are the people masters of the State. I the so-called
democracies, so-called because parliaments are chosen by universal suffrage,
the goverents are not at all delegates designated the population as execu
tors of its wilL Everybody knows that in every country the govermnent is in
the hands of small, often hereditary or aristocratic groups of politicians and
high offcias. The parliaentarians, their body of supporters , are not selected
by the constituents as mandataries to perform their wilL The voters, practical
ly, have only to choose between two sets of politicians, selected, presented and
advertised to them by the two main political partes, whose leaders, according
to the result, either form te ruling cabinet, or as "loyal opposition" stand in
abeyance for their t um. The State oficials, who manage the afairs, are not
selected by the people either ; they are appointed from above, by the govern
ment. Even if shrewd advertising calls them servants of the people, in reality
they are its rulers, its masters. In the system of State socialism it is this bureau
cracy of oficials that, considerably enlarged, directs production. They dispose
of the means of production, they have the upper command of labor. They have
to take care that everything runs well, they administate the process of pro-
32 WORKERS' COUNCILS
duction and determine the parttion of the produce. Thus the workers have got
new masters, who assign to them their wages and keep at their own disposal
the remainder of the produce. This means that the workers are still exploited;
State socialism may quite as well be called State capitalism, according to the
emphasis laid on its different sides, and to the greater or smaller share of influ
ence of the workers.
State socialism is a design for reconstructing society on the basis of a work
ing class such as the middle class sees it and knows it under capitalism. In what
is called a socialistic system of production the basic fabric of capitalism is pre
served, the workers running the machines at the command of the leaders; but
it is provided with a new improved upper story, a ruling class of humane
reformers instead of profit-hungry capitalists. Reformers, who as true benefac
tors of mankind apply their capacities to the ideal task of liberating the work
ing masses from want and msery.
It is easily understood that during the 1 9t
h
century, when the workers only
began to resist and to fight, but were not yet able to win power over society,
this socialist ideal found many adherents. Not only among socially minded of
the middle class who sympathized with the suffering masses, but also among
the workers themselves. For here loomed up before them a vision of liberation
from their yoke by the simple expression of their opinion in voting, by the use
of the political power of their ballot to put into government their redeemers
instead of their oppressors. And certanly, if it were only a matter of placid dis
cussion and free choice between capitalism and socalsm on the part of the
masses, ten socialism would have a good chance.
But reality is different. Capitalism is in power and it defends its power. Can
anybody have the illusion that te capitalist class would give up its rule, its
domination, its profit, the very basis of its existence, hence its existence itself,
at the result of a vote? Or s till more, to a campaign of publicity arguments, of
public opinion demonstrated in mass meetngs or street processions? Of course
will fght, convinced of its right. We know that even for reforms, for every
reform in capitalism there had to be fighting. Not to the utmost, to be sure; not
or seldom by civil war and bloodshed. Because public opiion, in the bulk of
the middle class, aroused by the determined resistance of the workers, saw that
in their demands capitalism itself, in its essence, was not engaged, that proft as
such was not endangered. Because it was felt that, on the contray, capitalism
would be consolidated rather, reform appeasing the workers and attaching
them more frmy to the existing system.
If, however, the existence of the capitalist class itself, as a ruling and exploit
ing class is at stake, the entire mddle class stands behind iL If its mastery, its
exploitation, its profit is theatened, not by a sham revolution of outward
appearances, but by a real revoluton of the foundations of society, then we
may be sure that it will resist with all its powers. Where, then, is te power to
THE TASK :3
defeat it? The irrefutable argments and the good intentions of noble-minder
reformers, all these are not able t curb, stil less to destroy its solid force.
There is only one power in the world capable of vanquishing capitalism: the
power of the working class. The working class can not be freed by others ; it
can only be feed by itself.
But the fight will be long and difficult. For the power of the capitalist cass
is enormous. It is finnly entrenched in the fabric of State and government, hav
ing all their institutes and resources at its disposal, their moral authorty as well
as their physical means of suppression. It disposes of all the treasures of the
earth, and can spend unlimited amounts of money to recruit, pay and organi ze
defenders, and to carry away public opinion. Its ideas and opinions pervade the
entire society, fill up books and papers and dominate the mnds of even the
workers. Here lies te chief weakness of the masses. Against it the working
class, certainly, has its numbers, already forming the majority of the population
in capitalist counties . It has its momentous economic function, its direct hold
over the macines, its power to run or stop them. But they are of no avail as
long as their minds are dependent on and flled by the masters' ideas, as long
as the workers are separate, selfsh, narrow-minded, competing individuals.
Number and economic importance alone are as the powers of a sleeping giant ;
they must frst be awakened and activated by practcal fght. Knowledge and
unity must make them active power. Through the fght for existence, against
exploitation and misery, against the power of the capitalist class and dle State,
through the fight for mastery over the means of production, the workers must
acquire the consciousness of their position, the independence of thought, the
kowledge of society, the solidarity and devotion to their community, the
strong unity of cass that will enable them to defeat capitaist power.
We cannot foresee what whirls of world politics will arouse them. But we
can be sure that it is not a matter of years only, of a short revolutionary fight.
It is a historical process that requires an entire epoch of ups and downs, of
fghts and lulls, but yet of unceasing progress. It is an intrinsic trasformation
of society, not only because the power relatons of the classes are reversed,
because property relations are changed, because production is re-organized on
a new basis, but chiefly-decisive basis of all tese tings-because the working
class itself in its deepest chaacter is transformed. From obedient subjects they
are changed into free and self-reliant masters of their fate, capable to build and
manage their new world.
It was the great socalist humanitarian Robert Owen who has taught us that
for a true socialist society the character of man must change; and that it is
changed by environment and education. It was the great communist scientist
Karl Marx who, completing ile theory of his predecessor, has taught us that
mankind itself has to change its environment and has to educate itself, by fght
ig, by te class-fight against exploitation and oppression. The theory of State
34 WORKERS' COUNCILS
socialism by reform is a arid mechanica doctrine in its belief that for a social
revolution a change of political insttutions, of outer conditions of life is suffi
cient, without the inner tasformation of man that turns submissive slaves into
proud and spirited fighters. State socialism was the political program of
social-democracy, utopia, because it pretended to bring about a new system of
producton by simply converting people though propaganda to new political
opinions. Social-democracy was not able, nor was it willing to lead
t
he work
ing class into a real revolutionary fight. So it went down when the modern
development of big capitalism made socialism won by the ballot an obsolete
illusion.
Yet socialist ideas stil have their importance, though in a diferent way now.
They are widespread all over society, aong socially feeling middle class peo
ple as well as among the masses of the workers. They express the longing for
a world without exploitation, combined, in the workers, wth the lack of conf
dence in their own power. This state of mind will not disappear at once after
te frst successes have been won; for it is then that the workers will perceive
the immensity of their task, the still formidable powers of capital, and how all
the traditions and institutions of the old world are barring their way. When
thus they stand hesitating, socialism will poit to what appears to be an easier
road, not beset with such insurmountable dificulties and endless sacrifces. For
just then, in consequence of their success, numbers of socialy-mided reform
ers will join their ranks as capable allies and friends, puttng their capacites in
the service of the rising class, claiming, of course, important positions, to act
and to lead te movement after their ideas. If the workers put them in ofce, if
they install or support a socialist government, then the powerful existing
machinery of the State is available for the new purpose and can be used to abol
ish capitalist exploitation and establish feedom by law. How far more attrac
tive this mode of action than imlacable class wa! Yes, indeed; with the same
result as what happened in revolutionary movements in the 19t century, when
the masses who fought down the old regime in the streets, were
t
hereupon
invited to go home, to retur to their work and put their trust in the
self-appointed "provisional government" of politicians that was prepared to
take matters in hand.
The propaganda of the socialist doctrine has the tendency to throw doubts
into te minds of the workers, to raise or to strengthen distrust in their own
powers, and to dim the consciousness of their task and their potentialities. That
is the social function of socialism now, and at every moment of workers' suc
cess in the coming struggles. From te had fght for feedom brilliant ahead,
the workers are to be lured by te soft shine of a mild new servitude. Especially
when capitalism should receive a severe blow, a who distrust and fear the
unrestricted freedom of the masses, all who wish to preserve the distinction of
masters and servants, of higher and lower, will rally round this banner. The
THE TASK 35
appropriate catchwords will readily be framed: "order" and "authority" against
"chaos," "socialism" and "organization" against "anarchy." Indeed, an econom
ic system where the workers are themselves masters and leaders of their work,
to middle-cass tning is identical with aarchy and chaos. Thus the only role
socialism c play in fture wil be to act as an impediment stading in the way
of the workers' fght for freedom.
O summarize: the socialist plan of reconstruction, brought forward by
reformers, must fail, frst because they have no means to produce the forces to
vanquish the power of capitaism. Second, because only the workers them
selves can do that. Exclusively by their own fight they can develop into the
mighty power needed for such a task. It is this fight that socialism tries to fore
stall. Ad once the workers have beaten down capitalist power and won free
dom, why should they give it up and submit to new masters?
There is a theory to explain why indeed they should and they must. The
theory of actual inequality of men. It points out tat nature itself makes them
different: a capable, talented and energetic minority rises out of an incapable,
stupid and slow majority. Notwithstanding all theories and decrees instituting
formal and legal equality, the talented energetic minority takes the lead and the
incapable majority follows and obeys.
It is not for the frst time that a ruling cass tries to explai, and so to per
petuate, its rule as the consequences of an inbor difference between two kinds
of people, one destined by nature to ride, the other to be ridden. The landown
ing aristocracy of former centuries defended their prvileged positon by boast
ing their extraction from a nobler race of conquerors that had subdued the
lower race of common people. Big capitalists explain their dominating place by
the assertion that they have brains and other people have none. In the same
way now especialy the intellectuals, considering temselves the rightful rulers
of tomorrow, claim their spiritual superiority. They form the rapidly increasing
class of university-trained offcials and free professions, specialized in mental
work, in study of books and of science, and they consider themselves as the
people most gifted wth intellect. Hence they are destined to be leaders of the
production, whereas the ungifted mass shall execute the manual work, for
which no brains are needed. They are no defenders of capitalism; not capitl,
but intellect should direct labor. The more so, since now society is such a com
plicated structure, based on abstract and difcult science, that only the highest
intellectual acumen is capable of embracing, grasping ad handlig it. Should
the working masses, from lack of insight, fail to ackowledge this need of supe
rior intellectual lead, should they stupidly try to take te direction into teir
own hands, chaos and ruin will be the inevitable consequence.
Now it must be remarked that the term intelectual here does not mean pos
sessor of intellect. Intellectuals is the name for a cass with special functions in
social and economic life, for which mostly university training is needed.
36 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Intellect, good understanding, is found in people of all classes, among capital
ists and artisans, among famlers and workers. "Vhat is found i the "intellec
tuals" i not a superior intelligence, but a special eapacity of dealing with sci
entific abstractions and formulas, often merely of memorizing them, and com
bined, usual y, with a limited notion of other realms of life. In teir self-com
placency appears a narrow intellectualism ignorant of the many other qualities
that play an important role in all huma activities. A rich and varied multitude
of dispositions, different in character and in degree, is in man: here theoretical
power of abstraction, there practieal skill, here acute understarlding, tere rich
fantasy, here rapidity of grasping, there deep brooding, here patient persever
ance of purpose, there rash spontaneity, here indomitable courage in action and
fight, there all-embracing ethical philanthropy. All of them are necessary in
social life; in turns, according to circumstances, they occupy the foremost place
i the exigencies of practice and labor. It were sily to distinguish some of them
as superior, others as inferior. Their difference implies the predilection and
qualifcation of people for the most varied kinds of activity. Among them the
capacity for abstract or scientific studies, under capitalism often degenerated to
a limited trainig, takes its important place in attending to and directing the
technical processes: but only as one among many other capacities. Certainly
for tese people there is no reason to look down upon the non-itellectual
masses. Has not the historian Trevalyarl, treating the times of nearly three cen
turies ago, spoken as "the wealth of imagination, the depth of emotion, the
vigour and variety of intellect that were to be found among the poor . . . once
awakened to the use of their minds"?
Of course in all of these quaties some people are more gifted than others;
men and women of talent or genius excel their fellow beings. Probably they are
even more numerous tan it appears now under capitalism, with its neglect,
misuse and exploitation of human qualities. Free humanity will employ their
talents to the best use; and the consciousness to promote with their geater
force the common cause, will give them a greater satisfaction than any materi
al privilege i a world of exloitation could do.
Let us consider the claim of dIe intellectual cass, the domination of spiri
tual over manual work. Must not the mind rule over the body, the bodily activ
ities ? Certainly. Human mnd is the highest product of nature; his spiritual
capacities elevate man above the animals. Mind is the most valuable asset of
man; it maes him lord of the world. What distnguishes human work from the
activities of the aimals is this very rule of the mind, te thning out, the med
itating and planning before the performing. This domination of theory, of the
powers of the mind over practieal work grows ever stronger, through the
increasing complication of the process of production and its increasing depend
ence on science.
THE TASK 37
This does not mean, however, that spiritual workers should hold sway over
manual workers . ]be contradistinction between spiritual and manual work is
not founded in nature, but in society: it is an artifcial class-distincton. All
work, even te most simple, is spiritual as well as manual. For all kinds of
work, tilby repetition it has become automatic, thinking is necessar; this com
bination of thinking and acting is the charm of all human activity. Also under
the natural division of labor, as a consequence of differences in predilection and
capacity, this charm remains. Capitalism, however, has vitiated these natural
conditions. To increase proft it has exaggerated the division of labor to the
extreme of one-sided specializing. Three centries ago already, in the beginning
of the manufactury-system, te endless repetition of always the same limited
manipulations turned labor into a monotonous routine where, through undue
traiing of some limbs and faculties at the cost of others, body and mind were
crippled. In the same way capitalism now, in order to increase productivity and
profit, has separated the mental and the manual part of work and made each
of the object of specjaized training at the cost of other capacities. It made the
two sides that togeter constitute natural labor, the exclusive task of separate
trades and different social classes. The manual workers, fatigued by long hours
of spiritless work in dirty surroundings, are not able to develop the capacities
of their minds. The intellectuals, on te other hand, through their theoretical
training, kept aloof fom the practical work and the natural activity of the body,
must resort to articial substitutes. In both groups full human endowment is
crippled. Assuming tIllS capitalistic degeneration to be permanent human
nature, one of these classes now claims superiority and domination over the
oter.
By yet another line of argument the claim of the intelectual class for spiri
tual and, hence, social leadership is supported. Leaned writers have pointed
out that the entire progress of humanity is due to some few geniuses. It was this
limited number of discoverers, of inventors, of thinkers, that built up science,
that improved technics, that conceived new ideas and opened new ways, where
then the masses of their fellow-men followed and imitated them. All civilizaton
is founded upon this small number of eminent brains. So the future of
mankind, the further progress of culture depends on the breeding and selection
of such superior people and would be endangered by a general levelling.
Suppose te assertion to be true, the retort, with becoming irony, could be
that the result of these superior brains , tis pitiful world of ours, is indeed in
keeping with such a narrow basis, and noting to boast of. Could those great
precursors witness what has been made of their discoveries tley would not be
very proud. Were we not able to do better, we should despair of humanity.
But the assertion is not true. Whoever makes a detailed s tudy of any of the
great discoveries in science, technics or what else is surprised by the geat num
ber of names associated with it. In the later popular and abridged historcal text
38 WORKERS' COUNCILS
books, however, the source of so may superficial misconceptions, only a few
prominent names are preserved and exalted, as if theirs was the sole credit. So
these were coined exceptional genuses. In reality every great progress pro
ceeded from a social surrounding pregnant with it, where from all sides the new
ideas, the suggestions, the glimpses of insight sprang up. None of the geat
men, extolled in history, because they took the decisive and salient steps, could
have done so but for the work of a large number of precursors on whose
achievements his are based. Ad besides, tese most talented thinkers, praised
in later centuries as the authors of te world's progress, were not at all the spir
itual leaders of their time. They were often unknown to their contemporaies,
quietly workng in retirement; they mostly belonged to the subjected class,
sometimes even tey were persecuted by the rulers. Their present-day equiva
lents are not those noisy camants for intellectual leadership, but silent work
ers again, hardly known, derided perhaps or persecuted. Only in a socety of
free producers, who are able to appreciate the importance of spiritual achieve
ments and eager to apply them to the well-being of all, te creative genius will
be recognized and estimated by his fellow-men at te full value.
Why is it that from the life work of all these men of genius in the past not
ing better than present cpitalism could result? What they were able to do was
to lay the scientifc and technical foundations of high productivity of labor. By
causes beyond tem it became the source of immense power and riches for the
ruling miority that succeeded in monopolizing the fuits of tis progress. A
society of freedom and abundance for all, however, cannot be brought about
by any superiority of some few eminent individuals whatever. It does not
depend on the brains of the few, but on the caracter of the many. As far as it
depends on science and technics to create abundance, they are already suff
cient. vVhat is lacking are the social forces that bind the masses of the workers
ito a strong unity of organization. The basis of the new society is not what
knowledge they can adopt and what technics they can imitate from others, but
what community feeling and organized actvity they can raise in themselves.
This new character cannot be infused by others, it cannot proceed from obe
dience to any masters. It can only sprout from independent action, from the
fight for freedom, from revolt against te masters. All the genius of superior
idividuals is of no avail here.
The great decisive step in the progress of mankind, the transformation of
society now impending, is essentially a transformation of the working masses.
It c be accomplished only by the action, by the revolt, by the effort of the
masses themselves ; its essential nature is self-liberaton of mankid. From this
viewpoint it is clear that here no able leadership of an intellectal elte can be
helpfl. Ay attempt to impose i t could only be obnoxous, retarding as it does
te necessary progress, hence acting as a reactionary force. Objections from the
side of the intellectuals, based on the present inadequateness of the working
THE TASK 39
class, i practice will fnd their refutation when world conditions compel te
masses to take up the fight [or world revolution.
6. DIFFICULTIES
More essential dificlties in the reconstruction of society arise out of the
differences in outlook that accompany diferences in development and size of
the enterprises.
'Hchically and economically socety is dominated by big enterprise, by big
capitaL The big capitalists themselves, however, are only a small mority of
the properted class. They have behind them, to be sure, the entire class of ren
tiers and shareholders. But these, as mere parasites, cannot give a solid support
in the struggle of the classes. So big capital would be in an awkward position
were it not backed by the small bourgeoisie, by the entire class of smaller busi
ness men. In its domination of society it takes advantage of the ideas and the
moods growing out of te world of small trade, occupying the mnds alike of
masters and workers in these trades. The working cass has to give good con
sideration to tese ideas. Because its task and its goal, conceived on the basis
of the developments of big capitalism, are conceived and judged in tese circles
after the famliar conditions of small trade.
In small capitalistic business the boss as a rule is the owner, sometimes the
sole owner; or if not, the shareholders are some few friends or relatives. He is
his own director and usually the best technical expert. In his person the to
functions of technical leader and proft-making capitalist are not separated and
hardly to be distinguished even. His proft seems to proceed not from his cap
ital, but from his labor, not from exploitation of the workers, but from the
technical capacites of the employer. His workers, either engaged as a few
skilled assistants or as unskilled hands, are quite well aware of te generally
larger experience and exertness of the boss. What in large enterprise, with its
technical leadership by salaried oficials , is an obvious measure of practical effi
ciency-the exclusion of all property interests-would here take the retogressive
form of the removal of the best technical expert and of leaving the work to the
less expert or incompetent.
It must be clear that here there is no question of a real diffculty impeding
the technical organization of industry. It is hardly to be imagined that the work
ers in the small shop should want to expel the best expert, even the fonner
boss, if he is honestly willing with all his skill to co-operate in their work, on
the foot of equality. Is not ths contrary to basis and doctrine of the new world,
the exclusion of the capitalist? The working cass, when reorganizing society on
a new basis, is not bound t apply some theoretical doctrine; but, to direct its
practcal measures, it possesses a great leading principle. The principle, living
touchstone of practicability to the clear-sighted mnds, proclaims that those
40 WORKERS' COUNCILS
who do the work must regulate the work, and that al who collaborate practi
cal y in the production dispose of the means of production, with. the exclusion
of all property or capital interests. It is on the basis of this principle that the
workers will face all problems and dificulties in the organizaton of production
and will fnd a solution.
Surely the technically backward branches of production exercised in small
trade will present special, but not essential diffculties. Tc problem of how to
organze them by means of self-governing associations, and to connect them
with the main body of social organization must be solved mainly by the work
ers engaged in these branches, though collaboration from other sides may
come to their aid. Once the politcal and social power is firmy in the hands of
the working class and its ideas of reconstruction dominate the minds, it seems
obvious that everybody who is willing to co-operate in the coIl unity of labor
will be welcome and will find the place and the task appropriate to his capaci
ties. Besides, i consequence of the increasing community feeling and the desire
for eficiency in work, the units of production wl not remain the isolated
dwarfish shops of former times .
The essential dificulties are situated in the spiitual disposition, the mode
of thining produced by the conditions of smal trade "n all who are engaged
here, masters as well as artisans and workers. It prevents them to see the prob
lem of big capitalism and big enterprise as the real and main issue. It is easily
understood, however, that the conditions of small trade, the basis of their ideas,
cannot determine a transformation of society that takes its origin and its driv
ing force from big capitalism. But it is equaly clear tat suc a disparity of gen
eral outlook may be an ample source of discord and strife, of misunderstand
ings and difficulties. Dif culties in the fight, and difculties in the constructive
work. In small-trade circumstances social and mora qualities develop in anoth
er way than in big enterprises; organization does not dominate the minds in the
same degree. Whereas the workers may be more headstrong and less submis
sive, the impulses of fellowship and solidarity are less also. So propaganda has
to play a geater role here; not in the sense of impressing a theoretical doctine,
but in its pure sense of exposing wider views on society in genera, so that the
ideas are determined not by the narrow experience of their own conditions but
by the wider and essential conditions of capitalist labor at large.
Tis holds good still more for agriculture, with its larger number and
greater importance of small enterprises. There is a material difference, besides,
because here the limited amount of soil brought into being one more parasite.
Its absolute necessity for living room and foodstuff production enables the
owers of the soil to levy tibute from all who want to use it: what in political
economy is called rent. So here we have from olden times an ownership not
based on labor, and protected by State power and law; an ownership consisting
only in certificates, in titles, assuring claims on an often big part of the produce
THE TASK 41
of society. The farmer paying rent t o the landowner or interest t o the real-estate
bank, the citizen, whether capitaist or worker, paying in his house-rent high
prices for barren soil, they are all exploited by landed property. A century ago,
in the time of small capitalism, the difference between the two forms of income,
the idle income of the landowner as contrasted with the hard-won earnings of
business man, worker and artisan, was so strongly felt as undue robbery, that
repeatedly projects were proposed to abolish it, by natonalization of the soil.
Later on, when capitalist property ever more took on the same form of certifi
cates commanding income without labor, land reform became silent. Te
antagonism between capitalist and landowner, between proft and rent disap
peared; landed property is now simply one of the many forms of capitalist
property.
The farmer tlling his own soil combines the character of three social class
es, and his earnings are indiscriminately composed of wages for his own labor,
profit from directing his farm and exploiting the farm hands, and rent from his
ownership. Under the original conditions partly still living a tradition of an
idealized past, the farmer produced nearly all the necessaries for himself and
hi family on his own or on rented soil. In modern times agriculture has to pro
vide foodstuffs for the industrial population also, which gradually everywhere,
and increasingly in the capitalist countries, forms the majority. In return the
rural classes receive the products of industry, which they need for ever more
purposes. Tis is not entirely a home affair. The bulk of the world's need of
grain is supplied by large enterprises, on virgin soil in the new continents, on
capitalist lines ; while it exhausted the untouched fertility of those vast plains, it
depressed by its cheap competition the rent of European landed property, caus
ing agrarian crises. But also in the old European lands agrarian production
nowadays is production of commodities, for the market; the farmers sell the
chief part of their products and buy what they need for living. So they are sub
ject to the vicissitudes of capitalist competition, now pressed down by low
prices, mortgaged or ruined, then profteering by favorable conditions. Since
every increase of rent tends to be petrifed in higher land prices, rising product
prices make the former owner a renter, whereas the next owner, stating with
heavier expenses, suffers ruin in the case of falling prices. So the economic posi
tion of the agricultural class in general is weakened. On the whole their condi
tion and their outlook on moder society is similar in a way to that of small
capitalists or independent business people in industry.
There are differences, however, due to the limited amount of soil. Whereas
in industry or commerce whoever has a small capita can venture to start a
business and fight against compettors, the farmer cannot enter the lists when
others occupy the land he needs. To be able to produce he must frst have the
soil. In capitalist society free disposal of the soil is only possible as ownership;
if he is not landowner he can only work and apply his knowledge and capaci-
42 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ty by suffering himself to be exploited by the possessor of the soil. So owner
ship and labor are intimately connected in his mind; this lies at the root of the
often criticized property-fanaticism of the farmers. Ownership enables him to
gain his living during all his years by heavy toiling. By letting or selng his
property, hence living on the idle landowner's rent, ownership also enables him
in his old age to enjoy the sustenance which every worker should be entitled to
after a life of toil. The continuous struggle against the variable forces of nature
and climate, with technics only slighty beginning to be directed by moder sci
ence, hence stongly dependent on traditional methods and personal capacity,
is aggravated by the pressure from capitalist conditions. This struggle has cre
ated a strong stubborn individualism, that makes the farmers a special class
wth a special mentality and outlook, foreig to the ideas and aims of the work
ing class.
Still, modern development has worked a considerable change here also.
The tyrannical power of the great capitalist concerns, of landed estate banks
and railway magnates on whom the farmers depend for credit and for tras
port, squeezed and ruined them, and sometimes brought them to the verge of
rebellion. On the other hand, the necessity of securing some of the advantages
of large enterprise for small-scae business did much to enforce co-operation, as
well for the buying of fertilizers and materials as for procuring the necessay
foodstuffs for the accumulated city population. Here the demand for a uniform
standardized product, in dairy production for instance, exacts rigid prescripts
and control, to which the idividual farms have to submit. So the farmers are
taught a bit of community feeling, and their rugged individualism has to make
many concessions. But this iclusion of their work into a social entirety
assumes the capitalist form of subjection to a foreign master-power, thus sting
ing their feelings of independence.
A tese conditions determie the attitude of the rural cass to the workers'
reorganization of society. Te farmers, though as independent managers of
their own enterprises comparable to industrial capitalists, usually take part
themselves in te productive work, which depends in a high degree on their
professional skill and knowledge. Though pocketing rent as landowners, their
exstence is bound up with their strenuous productive activity. Their manage
ment and control over te soil in their character of producers, of workers, in
common with the laborers, is entirely in accordance with the principles of the
new order. Their contol over the soil in their chaacter of landowners is entire
ly contrary t these principles. They never learned, though, to distinguish
between these totally different sides of their position. Moreover, the disposal
over the soil as producers according to the new principle, is a social fncton,
a mandate of society, a service to provide their fellow-people with foodstuffs
and raw materials, whereas old tradition and capitalist egotism tend to consid
er it an an excusive personal right.
THE TASK 43
Such differences in outlook may give rise to many dissensions and difficul
ties between the producng classes of industry and of agculture. The workers
must adhere with absolute strictness to the princple of exclusion of all the
exploitation-interests of ownership; they admit only interests based on produc
tive work. Moreover, for the industrial workers, the majority of the population,
being cut off from the agrarian produce means starvaton, which they cannot
tolerate. For the highly industrial countries of Europe, certanly, the
transoceanic trafc, the interchange with other foodproducing continents, here
plays an important role. But there is no doubt tht in some way a common
organizaton of the industrial and the agricultural producton in each country
must be established.
The point is that between the industrial workers and the farmers, between
the city and the country, there are considerable differences in outlook and
ideas, but no real differences or conflicts of interest. Hence there wil be many
difficulties and misunderstandings, sources of dissent and strife, but there will
be no war to the knife as between working class and capital. Though so far
mosty the farmers , led by traditional political and narrow social slogans, as
defenders of property interests stood on the side of capital against the workers
and this may stil be so in future-the logics of their own real interests must
finally place them over against capital. Thi s, however, is not sufficient. As small
business men they may be satisfed to be freed from pressure and exploitation
through a victory of the workers with or without their help. But then, accord
ing to their ideas, it will be a revolution that makes them absolute and free pri
vate possessors of the soil, similar to former middle-cass revolutions. Against
this tendency the workers in intensive propaganda have to oppose te new
principles : production a social function, the community of all the producers
master of their work; as well a their firm will to establish this comunity of
industrial and agricultural production. Whereas the rural producers will be
their own masters in regulating and directing their work on their own respon
sibity, its interlocking with the industrial part of production wil be a common
cause of all the workers and teir central councils. Their continual mutual
intercourse will provde agculture with all technical and scentific means and
methods of organization available, to increase the eficiency and productivty
of the work.
The problems met with i the organization of agricultural production are
patly of the same kind as in industry. ! big enterprises, such as the large
estates for corn, wheat, and other mass producton with the aid of motorized
machines, the regulation of the work is made by the community of the work
ers and their councils. Where for carefl treatment in detail small production
units are necessary, co-operation wil play an important role. The number and
diversity of small-scale farms will offer the same kind of problems as small-scale
industry, and their managing will be the task of their sel-governing associa-
44 WORKERS' COUNCILS
tons. Such local communities of similar and yet individually different farms
will probably be necessary to relieve social management a a whole fom deal
ing and reckoning with every small unit sepaately. All these forms of organi
zation cannot be imagned before hand; they will be devised and built by the
producers when tey stand before the necessities of practice.
7. COUNCIL ORGANIZATION
Te socal system considered here might be called a form of cOIunism,
only that name, by the world-wide propaganda of the "Communist Party" is
used for its system of State socialism under paty dictatorship. But what is a
name? Names are ever misused t fool the masses, the familiar sounds pre
venting them from citically using their brains and clealy recognizing reality.
More expedient, therefore, than looking for the right name will it be to exam
ine more closely the chief chaacteristic of the system, the council organization.
The workers' councils are the form of self-goverment which i the times
to come will replace te forms of government of the old world. Of course not
for all future; none such form is for eternity. When life and work in COIU
nity are natral habit, when mankind entirely controls its ow life, necessity
gives way to feedom and the strict rules of justice established before dissolve
into spontaneous behavior. Workers' Councils are the form of organizaton
during the transiton period it which the working classes figting for domi
nance, is destroying capitalism and is organizing social production. D order to
know their true character it will be expedient to compare them wit the exist
ig forms of organization and government as fixed by custom a self-evident in
the minds of the people.
Communities too large to assemble in one meeting always regulate their
afairs by means of representatives, of delegates. So the burgesses of free
medieval towns governed themselves by town councils, and the middle class of
all modern countries, following the example of England, have their
Parliaents. When speaking of management of affairs by chosen delegates we
alway tnk of parliaments; so it is with parliaments especially that we have to
compare the workers' councis in order to discern their predominant features.
It stands to reason that with the large differences between te classes and
between teir aims, also their representative bodies must be essentially difer
ent.
At once tis difference strikes the eye: workers' councils deal with labor,
have to regulate production, whereas parliaments are political bodies, dis
cussing and deciding laws and State affairs. Politics and economy, however, are
not entrely unrelated felds. Under capitalism State and Parliament took the
measures and enacted the laws needed for the smooth course of production;
such a the providing for safety i traffc and dealings, for protecton of com-
TE TASK 45
merce and industry, of business and travel at home and abroad, for adminis
traton of justice, for coinage and uniform weights and measures. And it polit
ical work, too, not at first sight connected with economic activity, dealt with
general conditions in society, with the relations between the different classes,
constituting the foundation of the system of production. So politics, the actvi
ty of Parliaments may, in a wider sense, be called an auxiliary for production.
What, then, under capitalism, is the distinction between politics and econ
omy? They compare together as the general regulation compares with the
actual practice. The task of politics is to establish the social and legal conditions
under which productive work may run smoothy; the productive work itself is
the task of the ctizens. Thus there is a division of labor. The general regula
tions, tough necessary foundations, constitute only a minor part of social
activity, accessory to the work proper, and can be left to a minority of ruling
politcians. The productive work itself, basis and contents of social life, consists
in the separate activities of numerous producers, completely flling their lives.
The essential part of social activty is the personal task. Heverybody takes care
of his own business and performs his task well, society as a whole nms well.
Now and then, at regular intervals, on the days of parliamentary election, the
citizens have to pay attenton to the general regulatons . Only in times of social
crisis, of fundamental decisions and severe contests, of civil strife and revolu
tion, the mass of the citizens had to devote their entire time and forces to these
general regulations. Once the fundamentals decided, tey could retur to their
private business and once more leave these general affairs to te minority of
experts, to lawyers and politicans, to Parliament and Government.
Entirely different is the organization of common production by means of
workers ' councils. Social production. is not divided up into a number of sepa
rate enterprises each the restricted life-task of One person or group; now it
forms one connected entirety, object of care for the entirety of workers, occu
pying their minds as the common task of all. The general regulaton is not an
accessory matter, left to a small group of specialists ; it is the principal matter,
demanding the attention of all in conjunction. There is no separation between
politics and economy as life activities of a body of specialists and of the bulk of
producers. For the one community of producers politics and economy have
now coalesced into the unity of general regulation and practical productive
labor. Their entirety is the essential object for all.
This character is reflected in the practice of all proceedings. The councils
are no politicians, no government. They are messengers, carrying and inter
changing the opinions, the intentions, the will of the groups of workers. Not,
indeed, as indifferent messenger boys passively carrying letters or messages of
which they themselves know nothng. They took part in the discussions, they
stood out as spirited spokesmen of the prevailing opinions. So now, as dele
gates of the group, they are not only able to defend them in the councl rneet-
46 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ing, but at the same time they are suffciently unbiased to be accessible to other
arguments and to report to thei group opinions more largely adhered to. Thus
they are the organs of social intercourse and discussion.
The practice of parliaments is exactly the contrary. Here the delegates have
to decide without asking instructions from their voters, without binding man
date. Though the M.P., to keep their allegiance, may deign to speak to them
and to expound his line of conduct, he does so as the master of his own deeds.
He votes as honor and conscience dictate him, accordig to his own opinions.
Of course; for he is the expert in politics, the specialist in legislative matters and
canot let himself be directed by instructions from ignorant people. Their task
is production, private business, his task is politics, the general regulations. He
has to be guided by high political principles and must not be influenced by the
narrow selfishness of their private interests. In this way it is made possible that
in democratic capitalism politicians, elected by a majority of workers, can serve
the interests of the capitalist class.
the labor movement also the principles of parliamentarism took a foot
ing. In the mass organizations of te unions, or in such gigantic political organ
izations as te German Social-Democratic Party, the offcials on the boards as
a kind of govenlment got power over te members, and their annual congress
es assumed the character of paliaments. The leaders proudly called them so,
parliaments of labor, to emphasize their importance; and critical observers
pointed to the strife of factions, to the leaders, to the intrigue behind the scenes
as indications of the same degeneration as appeared in the real parliaments.
Indeed, they were parliaments in their fundamental character. Not in the begin
ning, when the unions were small, and devoted members did all the work
themselves, mostly gratuitously. But with the increase of membership there
came the same division of labor as in society at lage. The working masses had
to give all their attention to their separate personal interests, how to fnd and
to keep their job, the chief contents of their life and their mind; only in a most
general way they had, moreover, to decide by vote over their common class and
group interests. It was to the experts, the union oficials and party leaders, who
knew how to deal with capitalist bosses and State tribunals, that the detailed
practice was left. And only a minority of local leaders was suficiently acquaint
ed with these general interests to be sent as delegates to the congresses, where
notwithstanding the often binding mandates, they actually had to vote after
their own judgment.
In the council organization the dominance of delegates over the con
stituents has disappeared because its basis, the division of task, has disap
peared. Now the social organization of labor compels every worker to give his
entire attention to the common cause the totality of production. The produc
tion of the necessaries for-life as, the basis of life, as before entirely occupies the
mind. Not in the form, now, as care for te own enterprise, the own job, in
THE TASK 47
competition with others. Life and production now can be secured only by col
laboration, by collective work with the companions. So this collective work u
uppermost in the thoughts of everybody. Consciousness of conununity u the
background, the basis of all feeling and thinking.
This means a total revolution in the spiritual life of man. He has now
learned to see society, to know community. In foroler times, under capitalism,
his view was concentrated on the small part related with his business, his job,
himself and his family. Ths was imperative, for his life, his existence. As a dim,
unknown background society hovered behind his small visible word. To be
sure, he experienced its mighty forces that determined luck or failure as the
outcome of his labor; but guided by religion he saw them as the working of
superatural Supreme Powers. Now, on the contrary, society comes into the full
light, transparent and knowable; now the structure of the social process of
labor lies open before man's eyes. Now his view is directed to the entirety of
production; this is imperative, for his life, his existence. Social production is
now the object of conscious regulation. Societ is now a thing handled, manip
ulated by man, hence understood in its essental character. Thus the world of
the workers' councils transforms the mind.
To parliamentarism, the political system of the separate business, the peo
ple were a multitude of separate persons, at the best, in democratic theory, each
proclaimed to be endowed with the same natural rights. For the election of del
egates they were grouped according to residence in constituencies. In the times
of petty-capitalism a certain community of interests might be assumed for
neighbors living in the same town or village. In later capitalism this assumption
ever more became a senseless fiction. Artisans, shopkeepers, capitalists, work
ers livng in the same quarter of a town have different and opposed interests ;
they usualy give their vote to different parties, and chance majorities win.
llOugh parliamentary theory considers the ma elected as the representative
of the constituency, it is clear that all these voters do not beong together as a
group that sends him as its delegate to represent its wishes.
Council organization, i this respect, is quite the contrary of parliamen
tarism. Here the natural groups, the collaborating workers, the personnels of
the factories act as unities and designate their delegates . Because they have
common interests and belong together in the prais of daily life, they can send
some of them as real representatives and spokesmen. Complete democracy is
realized here by the equal rights of everyone who takes part in the work. Of
course, whoever stands outside the work does not have a voice in its regula
tion. It cannot be deemed a lack of democracy that i this world of self-rule of
the collaborating groups all tat have no concern with the work -such as
remained in plenty from capitalism: exploiters, parasites, rentiers do not take
part in te decisions.
48 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Seventy years ago Marx pointed out that between the rule of capitalism and
the final organization of a free humanity there will be a time of tansition in
which the working class is master of society but in which the bourgeoisie has
not disappeared, He called this state of things the dictatorshp of the prole
tariat. At tat time this word had not yet the ominous sound of modern sys
tems of despotism, nor could it be misused for the dictatorship of a ruling
party, as in later Russia. It meant siply that the dominant power over societ
was transferred from the capitalist to the working class. Mterwards people,
entirely confmed within the ideas of parliamentarism, tried to materialize this
concepton by taking away the franchise for political bodies from the proper
tied classes. It is clear that, violating as it did the instinctive feeling of equal
rights, it was in contrast to democracy. We see now that council organization
puts into practice what Marx theoretically anticipated but for what at that time
the practical form could not yet be imagined. When production is regulated by
the producers themselves the formerly exploiting class automatically is exclud
ed from taking part in the decisions, without any artificial stipulation. Marx's
conception of the dictatorship of the proletariat now appears to be identical
with the labor democracy of the council organization.
This labor democracy is entirely different from political democracy of the
former social system. The so-called political democracy under capitalism was a
mock democrac, an artful system conceived to mask te real domination of
the people by a ruling minority. Council organization is a real democracy, the
deocracy of labor, making the working people master of their work. Under
councl organizaton political democracy has disappeared, because politics itself
disappeared and gave way to social economy. The activty of the councils, put
in action by the workers as te organs of colaboration, guided by perpetual
study and strained attention to circumstances and needs, covers the entire field
of society. All measures are taken in constant intercourse, by deliberation in the
councils and discussion in the goups and the shops, by actions in the shops
and decisions in the councils. What is done under such conditions could never
be commanded from above and proclaimed by the will of a government. It pro
ceeds from the common will of all concerned; because it is founded on the
labor experience and knowledge of all, and because it deeply infuences the life
of all. Measures can be executed only in such a way that the masses put them
into practice as their own resolve and will; foreign constraint cannot enforce
them, simply because such a force is lacking. The councis are no governent;
not even the most central councils bear a governmental character. For they
have no means to impose teir wil upon the msses; they have no organs of
power. P social power is vested in the hands of the workers themselves.
Wherever the use of power is needed against distrbances or attacks upon the
existing order it proceeds from the collectivities of the workers in te shops and
stnds under their control.
THE TASK 49
Governments were necessary, during the entire period of civilization up to
now, as instuments of the ruling class to keep down the exploited masses.
They also assumed administrative functions in increasing measure; but their
chief character as power structures was determined by the necessity of uphold
ing class domination. Now that te necessity has vanished, the istrument, too,
has disappeared. What remains is administration, one of the many kinds of
work, the task of special kinds of workers; what comes in its stead, the life spir
it of organization, is the constant deliberation of te workers, in coron think
ing attending to their common cause. What enforces the accomplishment of te
decisions of the councils is their moral authority. But moral authority in such
a societ has a more stringent power than any command or constraint from a
goverment.
When in the preceding time of governments over the people politica power
had to be conceded to the people and their parliaments a separation was made
between the legislative and te executive part of government, sometimes com
pleted by the judicial as a tird independent power. Law-making was the task
of parliaments, but the application, the execution, the daily govering was
reserved to a small privileged group of rulers. In the labor community of te
new society ts distinction has disappeared. Deciding and performing are inti
mately connected; those who have to do the work have to decide, ,md what
they decide in coron they themselves have to execute in common. In the
case of great masses, the councils are their organs of deciding. Where the exec
utive task was entrusted to central bodies these must have the power of com
mand, they must be goverments ; where te executive task falls to the masses
themselves this character is lacking in the councils. Moreover, according to the
varied problems and objects of regulation and decision, different persons in dif
ferent combinations will be sent out and gather. In the feld of production itself
every plant has not only to organize carefully its own extensive range of activ
ities, it has also to conect itself horizontally with similar enterprises, vertical
ly with those who provide them with materials or use their products. In the
mutual dependence and interconnection of enterprises, in their conjunction to
branches of production, discussing and deciding councils will cover ever wider
realms, up to the central organization of the entire production. On the other
hand the organization of consumption, the distribution of all necessaries to te
consumer, will need its own councils of delegates of all involved, and will have
a more local or regional character.
Besides this organization of the material life of mankind there is the wide
realm of cultural activities, and of those not directly productive which are of
primary necessity for society, such as education of the children, or care for the
healt of al. Here the same principle holds, the principle of self-regulation of
these felds of work by those who do the work. It seems altogether natural that
in the care for universal health, as well as in the organization of education, all
50 WORKERS' COUNCILS
who take part actively, here the physicians, there the teachers, by means of
their assocations regulate and organze the entire service. Under capitalism,
where they had to make a job and a living out of te human disease or out of
drilling children, their connecton with society at large had the form either of
competitive business or of regulation and command by Government. In the
new society, in consequence of the much more intimate connection of health
with labor, and of education with labor, they will regulate their tasks in close
touch and steady collaboration of their organs of intercourse, their councils,
with the other workers' councis.
It must be remarked here tat cultural life, the domain of arts and sciences,
by its very nature is so intimately bound up with individual incliaton and
effort, that only the free initiative of people not pressed down by the weight of
incessant toil can secure its fowering. This trth is not refuted by the fact that
during the past centuries of class society princes and governments protected
and directed arts and sciences, aiming of course to use them as utensils for their
glory and the preservation of their d(mnation. Generally speaking, tere is a
fundamental disparity for the cultural as well as for all the non-productive
activties, between organization imposed from above by a ruling body and
organization by the free collaboration of colleagues and comrades. Centrally
directed organzation consists in regulation as much a possible uniform all
over the real; else it could not be surveyed and conducted from one centre.
In the self-regulation by all concered the initiative of numerous experts, all
poring over their work, perfecting it by emulating, imitating, consulting each
other in constant intercourse, must result in a rich diversity of ways and means.
Dependent on the central command of a government, spiritual life must fall
into dull monotony; inspired by the free spontaneity of massal human impulse
it must unfold into brilliant variety. The council principle affords the possibi
ty of fding the appropriate forms of organization.
Thus council organizaton weaves a variegated net of collaborating bodies
through society, regulating its life and progress according to their own free ini
tiative. And all that in the councils is discussed and decided draws its actual
power from the understanding, the will, the action of working mankind itself.
8. GROWH
When in the difcult fight against capital, in which the workers' councils
cae up and developed, victory is won by the working class, it takes up its
task, the organization of production.
We know, of course, that victory will not be one event, finishing the fight
and introducng a then following period of reconstructon. We know that social
fght and econornic construction will not be separated, but will be associated as
a scries of successes in fight and starts of new organization, interrupted perhaps
THE TASK 5 1
by periods of stagnation or social reaction. The workers' councils growing up
as organs of fight will at the same time be organs of reconstruction . . or cear
understanding, however, we will distinguish tese two tasks, as i they were
separate things, coming one after another. In order to see the true character of
the transformation of society we must teat it in a schema tical way, as a uni
form, continuous process startig "the day afer the victory."
As soon as the workers are master of the factories, master of society, they
will set the machines running. They know that this cannot wait; to live is the
frst necessity, and their own life, the lfe of society depends on their labor. Out
of the chaos of crumbling capitalism the first working order must be created by
meas of the councils. Endless dificulties will stand in their way; resistance of
all kinds must be overcome, resistance by hostility, by misunderstanding. by
igorance. But new unsuspected forces have come into being, the forces of
enthusiasm, of devotion, of insight. Hostility must be beaten down by resolute
action, misunderstanding must be taken away by patient persuading, ignorance
must be overcome by incessant propagada and teaching. By making the con
nection of the shops ever stronger, by including ever wider realms of produc
tion, by making ever more precise accounts and estmates in the planings, te
regulation of the process of production continually progresses. In this way step
by step social economy is growing into a consciously dominated organization
able to secure life necessities to all.
With the realization of this program the task of the workers' councils is not
fnished. On the contrary, ths is only the intoduction to their real, more exten
sive ad important work. A period of rapid development now sets in. As soon
as the workers feel themselves master of their labor, free to unfold their forces,
their first impulse will be the determinate will t do away with all te misery
and ugliness, to fmish with the shortcomings and abuses, to destroy all pover
ty and barbarism that as inheritances of capitalism disgrace the earth. A enor
mous backwardness must be made up for; wht the masses got lagged far
behind what tey might and should gt under exsting conditions. With the
possibility of fulflng them, their wants will be raised to higher standards ; the
height of culture of a people is measured by the extent and the quality of its life
exigencies. By simply using the available means and methods of working,
quantity and quality of homes, of food, of cloting for all can be raised to a
level corresponding to the existing productivity of labor. All productive force
that in the former society was wasted or used for luxury of the rulers can now
be used to satisfy the higher want of the masses. Tus, first innovation of soci
ety, a general prosperity will arise.
But also the backwardness in the methods of production wil from the
beginning have the attention of the workers . Tey will refuse to be harrowed
and fatigued with primitive tools and obsolete working methods. Lthe tecni
c methods and the macines are improved by the systematc application of all
52 WORKERS' COUNCILS
known inventions of technics and discoveries of science, the productivit of
labor can be increased considerably. Ths better techncs will be made accessi
ble to all; the including in productive work of the many who before had to
waste their forces in te bungling of petty trade, because capitalism had no use
for them, or i personal service of the propertied class, now helps to lower the
necessary hours of labor for all. So this will be a tme of supreme creative activ
ity. It has to proceed from the initiatve of the exert producers in the enter
prises; but it can take place only by continual deliberation, by collaboration, by
mutual ispiration and emulation. So the organs of collaboration, the councils,
are put into (unceasing) action. In this new constrction and organization of an
ever more excellent productive apparatus the workers' councils, as the con
necting nerve string's of societ, will rise to the full height of teir faculties.
Whereas te abundance of life necessities, the universal prosperity represents
the passive side of the new life, the innovation of labor itself as its aetive side
makes life a delight of glorious creative experience.
The entire aspect of social lfe changes. Also in its outer appearance, i sur
roundings and utensils, showing i their increasing harmony and beauty the
nobleness of the work that shaped them new. What Wiliam Morris said,
speaking of the crafts of olden times with their simple tools : that the beauty of
their products was due to work being a joy for man-hence it was extinguished
in the ugliness of capitalism-again asserts itself; but now on the higher stage of
mastery over te most perfect technics. William Morris loved the tool of the
craftsman and hated the machine of the capitalist. For the free worker of the
future the handling of the perfectly constrcted machine, providing a tension
of acuteness, will be a source of mental exaltation, of spiritual rejoicing, of intel
lectual beauty.
Techics make man a free master of his own life and destiny. Techncs, in a
painful process of growth during many thousands of years of labor and fight
developed to the present height, put an end to all hunger and poverty, to all
toiling and slavery. Technics put all the forces of nature at the service of
mankind and its needs. The growth of the science of nature opens to man new
forms and new possibilities of life so rich and maniold that they far surpass
what we C'ln imagine today. But technics alone cannot perform tht. Only tech
nics in te hands of a humanity that has bound itself consciously by s tong ties
of brotherhood into a working comnity controling its own life. Together,
indissolvably connected, technics as material basis and visible power, the com
munity as ethcal basis and consciousncss, they determine the cntire renovation
of labor.
And now, wit his work, man himself is changing. A new feeling is taking
hold of him, the feeling of security. Now at last the gawing solicitudes for life
falls off from mankind. During all the past centuries, from original savageness
tll during modern civilization, life was not secure. Man was not master over
THE TASK 53
his subsistence. Always, also in times of prosperity, and for the wealthiest even,
behind the illusion of perpetual welfare, in the subconsciousness lurked a silent
solicitude for the future. As a permanent oppression this anxiety was sunk in
the hearts, weighed heaviy upon the brain and hampered te unfolding of free
thing. For us, who ourselves live under this pressure, it is impossible to
imagine what a deep change in outlook, in world vision, in character, the dis
appearance of all aniety about life will bring about. Old delusions and super
stitions that in past times had to uphold mankind in its spirtual helplessness,
now are dropped. Now that man feels certain that he truly is master of his life,
their place is taken by knowledge accessible to all, by the intellectual beauty of
an all-encompassing scientifc world view.
Even more than in labor itself, the innovation of life wl appear in the
preparing of future labor, in the education and training of the next generation.
It is elear that, since every organization of society has its special system of edu
cation adapted to its needs, this fundamental change in the system of produc
tion must be accompanied immediately by a fundamental change in education.
In the original small-trade economy, in the farmer and artisan world, the fam
ily with its natural division of labor was the basic element of society and of pro
ducton. Here the children grew up and learned the methods of workig by
gadually taing teir part in the work. Afterwards, under capitalism, the fam
ily lost its economic basis, because productive labor ever more was transferred
to te factories. Labor became a social process with broader theoretcal basis;
so a broader knowledge and a more intellectual education was necessary for all.
Hence schools were founded, as we know them: masses of children, educated
in the isolated small homes without any organic connecton with labor, flock-
into the schools to learn such abstract knowledge as is needed for society,
here again witout direct connection with living labor. And different of course
according to social classes. For the children of the bourgeoisie, for the future
officials and intellectuals a good theoretical and scientfc training, enabling
them to direct and rule society. For the children of the farmers and the work
ing class an indspensible minimum: reading, writing, computing, needed for
their work, completed by history and religion, to keep them obedient and
respectful towards their masters and rulers. Learned writers of pedagogy text
books, unacquainted wth the capitalistic basis of these conditions which they
assume to be lasting, vainly try to explain and to smooth out the conflicts pro
ceeding from this separation of productive labor and educ.. 1tion, from the con
tadiction between narrow family isolation and the social character of produc
tion.
In the new world of collaborate production these contradictions have dis
appeared, and harmony between life and labor is restored, now on the wide
base of society at large. Now again education of the youth consists in learning
the working methods and their foundation by gradually taking part in the pro-
54 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ductive process. Not in family isolation; now that the material provision of life
necessities has been taken over by the community, besides its function as pro
ductive, the family loses that of consumption unit. Community life, correspon
ding to the strongest impulses witin the children themselves , will take much
larger place; out of the small homes they enter into the wide air of society. The
hybridical combination of home and school gives way to communities of chil
dren, for a lage part regulating their own life under careful guidance of adult
educators. Education, instead of passively imbibing teachings from above, is
chiefly personal activity, directed towards and connected with social labor.
Now te social feelings, as an inheritance of primeval times living in all, but
extremely strong in children, can develop without being suppressed by the
need of egotism of the capitalist stuggle for life.
Whereas te forms of educaton are determined by communty end
self-activity, its contents are given by the character of the production system,
towards which it prepares. This production system was ever more, especially
in the last century, based upon the application of science to technics. Science
gave ma master over the forces of nature; this mastery has made possible the
social revoluton and affords the basis of the new society. The producers can
be master of their labor, of production, only if they master these sciences.
Hence the growing generation must be instructed in the first place in the sci
ence of nature and its application. No longer, as under capitalism, will s cience
be a monopoly of a smal minority of intellectuals, and te uninstructed mass
es be restricted to subordinate activities. Science in its full extent will be open
to al. Instead of the division between one-sided manual and one-sided mental
work as specialities of two classes, now comes the hamonious combination of
manual ad mental work for everybody. This will be necessary also for the fur
ther development of the productivity of labor, depending as it does on the fr
ther progress of its foundations, science and technics. Now it is not merely a
minority of trained intellectuals, but it is al the good brains of the entire peo
ple, all prepared by the most careful education, that occupy temselves with the
creation of knowledge and its application in labor. Then may be expected a
tempo of progess in the development of science and teccs, compared to
which the much praised progress under capitalism is only a poor commence
ment.
Under capitaism there is a distinctive difference beteen the tasks of the
young and of the adults. Youth has to learn, the adults have to work. It is clear
that as long as labor is toiing in exploitative service [for a purpose in opposi
tion to the well-being and comfort of the workers] to produce the highest prof
it for capital, every capacity, once acquired, must be used up to the limits of
time ad force. No time of a worker could be wasted for learing ever new
thigs. Only an exceptional adult had te possibility, and still less had te duty
regularly to instruct himself durig his further life. the new society this df-
THE TASK 55
ference disappears. Now in youth the learning consists in taking part, in
increasing rate with the years, in the productive work. And now with the
increase of productivity and the absence of exploitation ever more leisure is
available to the adults for spiritual actvties. It enables them to keep apace with
the rapid development of the methods of work. This indeed is necessary for
them. To take part in the discussions and decisions is only possible if they can
study the problems of technics that continually incite and stimulate their atten
tion. The grand development of s ociety trough the unfolding of technics and
science, of security and abundance, of power over nature and life, can only be
ascertained by the growth of capability and knowledge of all the partners. It
gives new contents of thrilling activity to thei life; it elevates existence and
makes it a conscious delight of eager participation in the spiritual and practical
progress of the new world.
Added to these sciences of nature are now the new sciences of society that
were lacking under capitalism. The special feature of the new system of pro
duction is that ma now dominates the social forces which determine his ideas
and impulses . Practical domiation must fmd its expression in theoretical dom
ination, in knowledge of the phenomena and the determiing forces of human
action and life, of thinking and feeling. former times, when through igno
rance about society their social origi was unknow, their power was ascribed
to the superatural character of spirit, to a mysterous power of the mind, and
the disciplines dealing with tem were labeled spiritual sciences : psychology,
philosophy, ethics, history, sociology, aesthetics. As with al science their begin
nings were full of primitive mysticism and tadition; but contrary to the sci
ences of nature their rise to real scientific height was obstructed by capitalism.
They could not fnd a solid footing because under capitalism they proceeded
from the isolated human being with its individual mind, because in those times
of individualism, it was not known that man is essentially a s ocial being, that
all his faculties emanate from society and are determined by society. Now, how
ever, that society lies open to the view of man, as an organism of mutually con
nected human beings, and that the human mind is understood as their main
organ of interconnection, now they can develop into real sciences.
And the practical importance of these sciences for the new community is no
less than that of te sciences of nature. They deal with the forces lying in man,
determining his relations to his felow men and to the world, instgating his
actions in social life, appearing in the events of history past and present. As
mighty passions and blind impulses they worked in the great social fights of
mankind, now elating man to powerful deeds, then by equally blind traditions
keeping him in apathetic submissivity, always spontaneous, ungoverned,
unknown. 'The new science of man and society discloses these forces and so
enables man to control them by conscious knowledge. From masters drivng
56 WORKERS' COUNCILS
him through passive instincts they become servants, ruled by self-restraint,
directed by him towards his well-conceived purposes .
The istruction of the growing generaton in the knowledge of tese social
and spiritual forces, and its training in consciously directing tem will be one
of the chief educational tasks of the new society. Tus the young will be
enabled t o develop all endowments of passion and will-power, of intelligence
and enthusiasm, and to apply them in effcient activit. It is a education of
character as well as of knowledge. This careful education of the new genera
tion, theoretical and practical , in natural science and in social consciousness,
will form a most essential element in the new system of production. Only in
this way an. unhampered progression of social life will be secured. And in this
way, too, the system of production will develop to ever higher forms. Tus by
teoretical mastery of the sciences of nature and society, ad by their practical
application in labor and life, the workers will make the earth into a happy
abode of free mankind.
II. The Fight
1. TADE UNIONISM
The task of the working cass to take production in it' own hand and to
organize it first has to be dealt with. In order to carry on the fght it is neces
sary to see the goal in clear and distinct lines before us. But the fght, the con
quest of power over production is the chief and most difficult part of te work.
It u i this fight that the workers' councils will be created.
We cannot exactly foresee the future forms of the workers' fght for free
dom. They depend on social conditions and must change aong with the
increasing power of the working cass. It will be necessary, therefore, to survey
how so far it has fought way upward, adapting its modes of action to the
varying circumstances. Only by learning fom the experience of our predeces
sors and by considering it critically will we be able in our tur to meet the
demands of the hour.
In every society depending on the exploitation of a working class by a rul
ing class there is a continuous struggle over the division of the total produce of
labor, or in other words: over the degree of exploitation. Thus medieval times,
as well as later centuries, are full of incessant struggles and furious fights
between the landowners and the farmers. At the same time we see the fight of
the rising burgher class against nobility and monarchy, for power over society.
This is a different kind of class struggle, associated with the rise of a new sys
tem of production, proceeding from the development of technics, industry and
commerce. It was waged between the masters of the land and the masters of
capital, between the declining feudal and the rising capitalist system. In a seres
of social convulsions, of political revolutions and wars, i England, in France
and in other countries consecutively, the capitalist class has gained complete
mastery over. society.
The working class under capitalism has to carry on both kids of fght
against capital. It has to keep up a continual struggle to mitigate the heavy pres
sure of exploitation, to increase wages, to enlarge or keep up its share i the
total produce. Besides, with the gowth of its strength, it has to gain mastery
5 7
'\
58 WORKERS' COUNCILS
over society in order to overtrow capitalism and bring about a new system of
production.
Vhen for thc first time, in the beginning of the Industrial Revolution in
England, spinning and then weaving machines were intoduced, we hear of
revolting workers destroying the machines. They were not workers in the
modern sense, not wage earners. Tey were small artisans, independent before,
now starved by the competition of cheaply producing machines, and trying in
vain to remove the cause of their misery. Afterwards, when Lhey or their chil
dren became wage workers, themselves handlng the machines, teir positon
was different. It was the same for the hosts from the countryside, who, during
the entire 19t
h
century of growing industry, flocked into the towns, lured by
what to them appeared good wages. In moder times it is ever more the off
spring of the workers themselves that fill the factories.
Ior all of them the struggle for better working conditions is of immediate
necessit. The employers, under the pressure of competition, to enlarge their
profts, try to lower the wages and to increase the hours as much as possible.
At first te workers, powerless by the constraint of hunger, have to submit in
silence. Then resistance bursts forth, in the only possible form, in the refusal to
work, in the strike. In the strike for the first time the workers discover their
strength, in the strike arises their fightng power. From the strike springs up the
association of all the workers of the factory, of the branch, of the country. Out
of the strike sprouts the solidarity, the feeling of fraternity with the comrades
in work, of unity with the entire class : the fst dawn of what some day will be
the lifespending sun of the new society. The mutual help, at first appearing in
spontaneous and casual money collections, soon takes the lasting form of the
trade union.
For a sound development of trade-unionsm certain conditions are neces
sary. The rough ground of lawlessness, of police arbitrarity and prohibitions,
mosty inerited from pre-capitalistic times, must be smoothed before solid
buildings may be erected, Usually the workers themselves had to secure these
conditions. I England it was the revolutionary campaign of Chartism; in
Germany, half a century later, it was the fght of Social Democracy that, by
enforcing socal acknowledgent for the workers, laid the foundations for the
growth of te unions.
Now strong organizations are built up, comprising the workers of the same
trade all over the country, formng connections with other trades, and intern
tionally with unions all over Lhe world. The regular paying of high dues pro
vides the considerable funds from whic strikers are supported, when unwill
ing capitalists must be forced to grant decent working conditions, The ablest
among the colleagues, sometimes victims of the foe's wrath from former figts,
are appointed as salaried official, who, as independent and expert spokesmen
of the workers, can negotiate with the capitalist employers. By strike at the right
THE FIGHT 59
moment, supported by te entire power of the union, and by ensuing negotia
tions, agreements can be reached about better and more unforl wages and
about fair working hours, in so far as the latter are not yet fxed by law.
So the workers are no longer powerless individuals, forced by hunger to sell
their labor-power at any price. Tey are now protected by their union, pro
tected by the power of their own solidarity and cooperation; for every member
not only gives part of his earings for the colleagues, but is ready also to risk
hs job in defending the organization, their community. Thus a cerain equilib
rium is reached between the power of the employers and te power of the
workers. The working conditions ae no longer dictated by all-powerful capi
talist interests. The unions are recognized gradually as representatives of the
workers' interests; though ever again fghting is necessary, they become a
power that takes pat in the decisions. Not in all trades surely, and not at once
everywhere. Usually skilled cratsmen are the frst in building their unions.
The unskilled masses in the great factories, standing against more powerful
employers, mostly come later; thei unions often started from sudden outbursts
of great figts. And against the monopolistic owners of giant enterprses the
unions have little chance; these all powerfl capitalists wish to be absolute mas
ter, and in their haughtiness they hardly allow even servil e yellow shop unions.
Apart from this restriction, and even assuming trade unonism to be fully
developed and in contol of all industry, this does not mean that eploitation is
abolished, that capitalism is repressed. What is repressed is the arbitrariness of
the single capitalist; abolished are the worst abuses of exploitation. And ts is
in the interest of the fellow-capitalists, too-to guard them against unfair com
petition-and in the interest of capitalism at large. By the power of the unions
capitalism is normalized; a certain norm of exploitation is universally estab
lished. A norm wages, allowing for the most modest life exigencies, so tat
the workers are not driven again and again into hunger revolts, is necessary for
unnterrupted production. A norm of working hours, not quite exhausting the
vitality of the working class-though reduction of hours is largely neutralized
by acceleration of tempo ad more intense exertion-is necessary for capitalism
itself, to preserve a usable working class as the basis of future exploitation. It
was the working class that by its fight against the narrowness of capitalist geed
had to establish te conditions of normal capitalism. And ever again it has to
fight, to preserve the uncertain equilibrium. In this fght the trade unions are
the instruments ; thus the unions perform an indispensable function in capital
ism. Narrow-minded employers do not see this, but their broader-minded polit
ical leaders know quite well that trade unions are an essential element of capi
talism, that wthout the workers' unions as normalizing power capitalism is not
complete. Though products of the workers' fght, kept up by their pains ad
efforts, trade unions are at the same time organs of capitalist society.
60 WORKERS' COUNCILS
With te development of capitalism, however, conditions gradually grow
more unfvorable for the workers. Big capital grows, feels its power, and wsh
es to be master at home. Capitalists also have learned to understand the power
of association; they organize into employers' unions. So instead of the equality
of forces arises a new ascendancy of capitL Strikes are countered by lock-outs
that drain the funds of the trade unions. The money of the workers cannot
compete with the money of the capitalists. In the bargaing about wages and
working conditions the unions are more than ever the weaker party, because
they have to fear, and hence must try to avoid great fights that exhaust the
reserves and thereby endanger the secured existence of the organization and its
oficials. In the negotiations the union oficials often have to accept a lowering
of conditions in order to avoid fighting. To them ths is unavoidable and
self-evident, because they realize that by the changed conditions the relative
fghtig power of their organization has diminished.
For the workers, however, it is not self-evident tat they are silently to
accept harder working and living conditions. They want to fght. So a contra
diction of viewpoints arises. The oficials seem to have common sense on their
side; they know that the unions are at a disadvantage and that fight must result
in defeat. But the workers feel by instinct that great fighting powers still lie hid
den in their masses; if only they knew how to use them. They rightly realize
that by yielding, again and again, their position must grow worse, and that this
c be prevented only by fghting. So conficts must arise in the unions between
the officials and the members. The members protest against the new tariffs
[awards 1 favorable to the employer s ; te offcials defend the agreements
reached by long and difcult negotiatons and try to have them ratfied. So they
often have to act as spokesmen of capital iterests against workers' interests.
And because they are the infuential rlers of the unions throwing all the
weight of power and authority on this side, the unions in other hands may be
said to develop into organs of capital.
Te growth of capitalism, the increase of the number of workers, the urgent
necessity of association, make the trade unions gint organizations, needing an
ever increasing staff of officials and leaders. These develop into a bureaucracy
administering all business, a ruling power over the members, because all the
power factors ae in their hands. As the exerts they prepare and manage all
affairs; they administrate the fnances and the spending of money for diferent
purposes; they are editors of the union papers, by which tey can force thei
own ideas and points of view upon the members. Formal democrac prevails;
the members i n their assemblies, the chosen delegates in the congresses have to
decide, just a the people decide politics in Parliament and State. But the same
inuences that render Parliament and Government lords over the people are
operative in these Parliaments of Labor. They turn the alert bureaucracy of
expert officials into a kind of union govermnent, over the members absorbed
THE FIGHT 61
by thei daily work and cares. Not solidarity, the proletarian virtue, but disci
plie, obedence to the decisions is asked from them. Thus there arises a dif
ference in viewpoint, a contrast in opinions on the various questons. It is
enhanced by the difference in life conditons: the insecurity of the workers' job,
always threatened by depression forces and unemployment, as contrasted to
the security that is necessary for offcials to well-manage the union afairs.
It was the task and the function of trade unionism, by their joint united fght
to raise the workers out of their helpless misery, ad to gain for them an
acknowledged place i capitalst society. It had to defend the workers against
the ever increasing exploitation of capital. Now that big capital consolidates
more tan ever into a monopolistic power of banks and industria concers,
this former function of trade unionism is fished. Its power falls short com
pared to the formidable power of capital. The unions are now giat organiza
tions, with their acknowledged place in society; their position is regulated by
law, and their tariff [Court Award] agreements are gven legally bindng force
for the entire industry. Their leaders aspire at forming part of the power ruling
industrial conditions. They are the apparatus by means of which monopolistic
capita imposes its conditions upon the entire working class. To this now
all-powerful capital it normally, far more preferable to disguise its rule in
democratc and constitutional forms than to show it in the naked brutality of
dictatorship. The working conditions which it thinks suitable to the workers
will be accepted and obeyed much more easiy in the form of agreements con
cluded by the unions tha in the form of dictates arroganty imposed. Firsty,
because to the workers the illusion is left that they are masters of their own
interests. Secondly, because all the bonds of attachment, which as their own
creation, the creation of their sacrifices, their fight, their elation, render the
unions dear to the workers, now are subservient to the masters. Thus under
modem conditions trade unions more than ever are turned into organs of the
domination of monopolist capital over the working class.
2. DIRCT ACTION
As an instrument of fgt for the working class against capital the trade
unions are losing their importance. But the fght itself cannot cease. The
depressing tendencies grow stronger under big capitalism and so the resistace
of the workers must grow stronger, too. Economic crises grow more and more
destructive and undermine apparently secured progress. The exploitation is
intensifed to retad the lowering of the profit rate for rapidly increasing capi
tal. So again and again the workers are provoked to resistance. But against the
strongly increased power of capital the old methods of fght no longer can
serve. New methods are needed, and before long teir beginnings present
62 WORKERS' COUNCILS
themselves. They spring up spontaeously in the wild [outlaw] strike, in the
direct action.
Direct action means action of thc workers themselves without the interme
diary of trade union ofcals. A strike is called wild [outlaw or unofcial] as
contrasted to the strike proclaimed by the unon according to the rules and reg
ulations. The workers know that the latter is witout effect, where the officals
against their own will and insight are made to proclaim it, perhaps thnking a
defeat a healthy lesson for the foolish workers, and in every case trying to fin
ish it as soon as possible. Thus, when the pressure is too heavy, when negotia
tions with the directors drag along without effect, at last in smaller or larger
groups the exasperation breaks loose in a wild strike.
Fight of the workers against capital is not possible witout organization.
And organiation springs up spontaneously, immediately. Not of course in such
form that a new union is founded, with a board chosen and regulations for
mulated in ordered paragraphs. Sometimes, to be sure, it was done in this way;
attributing the ineficiency to personal shortcomngs of the old leaders, and
embittered against the old trade union, they founded a new one, with their
most able and energetic men at the head. Then indeed in the begirmng all was
energy and strong action; but in the long run the new union, if it remains small,
lacks power notwitbstanding its activity, and if it grows large, of necessity
develops the same characteristics as the old one. After such experiences the
workers at last wl follow the other way, of keeping the direction of their fight
entirely in their own hands.
Direction in their ow hands, also called their own leadership, means that
all initative and all decisions proceed from the workers themselves. Though
there is a strike committee, because al cannot be always together, everything is
done by the stikers; continually in touch with one another they distribute the
work, they devise all measures and decide on all actions directly. Decision and
acton, both collective, are one.
The first ad most important task is the propaganda to expand the strike.
The pressure upon capital must be intensified. Against the enormous power of
capital not only the individual workers, but also the separate groups are pow
erless. The sole power that is a match for capital is the firm unity of the entire
working class. Capitalists know or feel this quite well, and so the only induce
ment to concessions is the fear the strike might spread universally. The more
manifestly determinate the will of the strikers, the greater the numbers taking
part in it, the more the chance of success.
Such an extension is possible because it is not the strike of a tardy group,
in worse conditions than others, trying to rase itself to te general level. Under
the new circumstances discontent is universal; all the workers feel depressed
under capitalist superiority; fuel for explosions has accumulated everywhere. It
is not for others, i t is for themselves if they join the fight. As long as they feel
THE FIGHT 63
isolated, afaid to lose their job, uncertai what the comrades will do, without
firm unity, they shrink from action. Once, however, they take up the fght, they
are changed into new personalities; selfish fear recedes to the background and
forth spring the forces of community, solidarity and devotion, rousing courage
and perseverance. These are contagious ; the example of fighting activity rous
es in others, who feel in themselves the same forces awakening, the spirit of
mutual and of self-confidence. Thus the wild strike as a prairie fire may spring
over to other enterprises and involve ever greater masses.
Such cannot be the work of a small number of leaders, either union officials
or self-imposed new spokesmen, though, of course, te push of some few
intrepid comrades may give strong impulses. It must be the will and the work
of all, in common initiative. The workers have not only to do, but also to con
trive, to think out, to decide everything themselves. They cannot shift decision
and responsibiity to a body, a union, that takes care of them. They are entire
ly responsible for their fight, success or failure depends on themselves. From
passive they have turned into active beings, determinedy takig their destiny
into their own hands. From separate individuals each caring for himself, they
have become a solid, firmly cemented unit.
Such spontaneous strikes present yet another importat side; the division of
the workers into different separate unions is effaced. In the trade union world
traditions from former petty-capitalist times play an important role in separat
ing the workers in often competng, jealous and bickering corporations; in
some countries religious and political differences act as partition fences in
establishing separate lberal, catholic, socialist and other unions. ! the work
shop the members of different unions stand beside one another. But even in
strikes they often are kept asunder, so as not to have them infected wit too
much unity ideas, and te concordance in action and negotiation is solely kept
up by the boards and offcals. Now, however, i direct actions, these differ
ences of union membership become uneal as outside labels. For such sponta
neous fghts unity is the first need; and unity there is, else there could be no
fight. All who stand together in te shop, in the very same position, as direct
associates, subject to the same exploitation, against the same master, stand
together in common action. Their real community is the shop; personnel of the
same enterprise, they form a natural union of common work, common lot and
common interests. Like specters from the past the old distinctions of different
membership fall back, almost forgotten in the new living reality of fellowship
in comon fight. The vivid consciousness of new unity enhances the enthusi
asm and the feeling of power.
Thus in the wld stries some characteristics of the coming forms of fight
make their appearance: first the self-action, the self-initiative, keeping all actv
ity and decision u their own hands ; and then the unity, irrespective of old
memberships, according to the natural grouping of the enterprises. These
64 WORKERS' COUNCILS
fOllls come up, not trough shrewd planning, but spontaneously, irresistible,
urged by the heavy superior power of capital against which the old organiza
tons cannot fght seriously any more. Hence it does not mean tat now the
scales have turned, that now the workers win. Wild strikes mostly defeat;
their extent is too narrow. Only in some favorable cases they have success in
preventing a lowering in working conditions. Their importance is tlIat mey
demonstrate a fresh fghting spirit that cannot be suppressed. One of the deep
est instincts of self-preservation, of duty against family and comrades, the will
to assent oneself ever again springs up. There is a gain of increasing
self-reliance and cass-feeling. Tey are the harbingers of future greater fights,
when social emergencies, with heavier pressure and deeper distress , drive
the masses into stronger acton.
When wild strikes break out on a larger scale, comprising great masses,
entire braches of industry, towns or districts, the organization has to assume
new forms. Deliberation in one assembly is impossible; but more than ever
mutual understanding is necessary for common action. Strike committees are
formed out of the delegates of a the persollllels, for continual discussion of ci
cumstances. Such stike committees are entirely different from union boards of
offcias; mey show the characteristcs already of workers' councils. They come
up out of the fght, to give it unity of direction. But mey are no leaders i the
old sense, they have no direct power. The delegates, often different persons,
come to express the opinion and me will of me personnels [groups] that sent
them. For these persollllel stand for the action in which the will manifests itself.
Yet dIe delegates are no simple messengers of their mandatory groups; mey
took a foremost part in the discussion, mey embody the prevalent convictions.
In the committee assemblies te opinions are discussed and put to me test of
momentary cicumstances ; the results and me resolutions are brought back by
the delegates into the persolllel [group] assemblies. Through these intermedi
aries the shop personnels themselves take pat in the deliberations and deci
sions. Thus unity of action for great masses is secured.
Not, to be sure, in such a way that every group bows obediently to the deci
sions of the comlittee. Tere are no paragraphs to confer such power on it.
Unity in collective fighting is not te outcome of judicious regulation of com
petencies but of spontaneous necessities in a sphere of passionate action. The
workers themselves decide, not because such a right is given to mem in accept
ed rules, but because tey actually decide, by mei actions. It may happen that
a gTOUp cannot convnce other groups by arguments, but then by its action and
exanlple it caries them away Te self-determination of me workers over meir
fighting action is not a demand put up by theory, by arguments of practicabili
ty, but the statement of a fact evolving from practice. Often in great social
movements it occurred-and doubtless will occur again-that me actions did not
comply with the decisions. Sometimes central comlnittees made an appeal for
TE FIGHT 65
universal strike, and only small groups here and there followed; elsewhere the
comittees weighed scrupulously, without venturing a decision, and the work
ers broke loose in massal figt. It may be possible even that the same workers
who enthusiastically resolved to strike shrink back when standing before te
deed. Or, conversely, that prudent hesitation governs the decisions and yet,
driven by inner forces, a non-resolved strike irresistibly breaks out. Whereas in
their conscious tinking old watchwords and theories play a role and determine
argments and opinions , at the moment of decision on which weal and woe
depend, strong intuition of real conditions breaks forth, determinig the
actions. This does not mean that such intuiton always guides right; people may
be mistaken in their impression of outer conditions. But it decides ; it cannot be
replaced by foreign leadership, by guardians however clever, directing them. By
teir own experiences in fgt, in success and adversity, by their own efforts the
workers must acquire the capacities rightly to take care of their interests.
Thus the two forms of organization and fight stand in contrast, the old one
of trade unions and regulated strike, the new one of spontaneous stke and
workers' councis. This does not mean tat the former at some time will be sim
ply substituted by the latter as the only alternative. Intermediate forms may be
conceived, attempts to correct the evils and weakness of trade unionism and
preserve its right principles; to avoid the leadership of a bureaucracy of off
cials, to avoid the separation by narrow craft and trade interests, and to pre
serve and utilize the experiences of former fghts. Ths might be done by keep
ing together, after a strike, a core of the best fighters, in one general union.
Wherever a strike breaks out spontaneously this union is present with its
skilled propagandists and organizers to assist the inexperienced masses with
their advice, to instruct, to organize, to defend them. In this way every fight
means a progress of organization, not in the sense of fees-paying membership,
but in the sense growing class unty.
A example for such a union might be found in the great American union
"Industrial Workers of the World" (I.W.W. ) . At the end of last century in con
trast to the conservative trade unions of well-paid skilled labor, united in the
"Aerican Federation of Labor," it grew up out of special Amercan conditions.
Partly out of the fierce struggles of the miners and lumbermen, independent
pioneers in the wilds of the Far West, against big capital that had monopolized
and seized the riches of wood and soil. Partly out of te hunger stikes of the
miserable masses of immigrants from Eastern and Southern Europe, accumu
lated and exploited in the factories of the Easter towns and in the coal mines,
despised ad neglected by the old unions . The I.W.W. provided them with
experienced strike leaders and orgaizers, who showed tllem how to stand
agaist police terrorism, who defended them before public opinon and the
courts, who taught them the practice of solidarity and unity and opened to
them wider views on society, on capitalism and class fight. In such big fights
66 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ten thousands of new members joined the LW.W., of whom only a small frac
tion remained. This "one big union" was adapted to te wild growth of
American capitalsm in the days when it built up its power by subjecting the
masses of the independent pioneers.
Similar forms of fight and organization may be propagated and may come
up elsewhere, when in big strikes the workers stand up, without as yet having
the complete self-confdence of taking matters entirely in their own hands. But
only as temporary transition forms. There is a fundamental difference between
the conditons of future fight in big industry and those of America in the past.
There it was the rise, now it will be the downfal of capitalism. There the
rugged independence of pioneers or the primitive existence-seeking egoism of
imigrants were the expression of a middle class indivdualism that had to be
curbed under the yoke of capitalist exploitation. Now masses trained to disci
pline during a life time by machine and capital, connected by strong technical
and spiritual ties to the productive apparatus, organize its utilization on the new
basis of collaboration. These workers are thoroughly proletarian, all obstnacy
of middle class individualism having been worn off long ago by the habit of col
laborate work. The forces of solidarity and devotion hidden in them ony wait
for great fghts to develop into a dominating life principle. Then even the most
suppressed layers of the working class, who only hesitatingly join their com
rades, wating to lean upon their example, will soon feel the new forces of
community growing also in themselves. Then they will perceive that the fight
for freedom asks not only their adherence but the development of all their pow
ers of self-activity and s elf-reliance. Thus overcoming all intermediate forms of
partial self-determnation the progess will definitely go the way of council
organization.
3. SHOP OCCUPATON
Under the new conditions of cpitalism a new form of fight for better work
ing conditions came up, the shop occupation, mostly caled sit-down strike, the
workers ceasing to work but not leaving the factory. It was not invented by the
ory, it arose spontaneously out of practical needs ; theory can do no more than
afterwards exlain its causes and consequences. I the great world cisis of
1930 unemployent was so universal and lasting that there arose a kind of
class antagonism beteen the privileged number of employed and the unem
ployed masses. Any regular strke against wage cuttings was made impossible,
because the shops after being left by the stiers, immediately would be flood
ed by the masses outside. So the refusal to work under worse conditions must
needs be combined wit sticking to the place of work by occupying the shop.
Having sprung up, however, in these special circumstances, the sit-down
strike displays some characteristics that make it worth while to consider it more
THE FIGHT 67
closely as the expression of a further developed fighting form. It manifests the
formation of a more solid unity. In the old form of strike the working commu
nity of the personnel dissolved when leaving the shop. Dispersed over the
streets and homes between other people they were separated into loose indi
viduals. To discuss ad decide as one body they had then to assemble in meet
ing halls, in streets and squares. However often police and authorities tried to
hinder or even to forbid this, the workers held fast to their right of using them,
through the consciousness that they fought wit legitimate means for lawful
aims. The legality of trade union practice was generally recognized by public
oplllon.
When, however, this legalit is not recognized, when the increasing power
of big capital over State authorities disputes the use of hall and square for
assemblies, the workers, if they will fight, have to assert their rights by tang
them. In America every great strie was as a rule accompanied by a continu
ous fght with the police over the use of the streets and rooms for The
sit-down strike releases the workers from this necessity by their taking te right
to assemble at the adequate place, in the shop. At the same time the strike is
made tuly efcient by te impossibility of strike-breakers to take their placs.
Of course this entails new stif fghting. The capitalists as owners of the
shop consider occupation by the strikers as a violation of their ownership; and
on this juridical argument they call for the police t turn the workers out.
Indeed, from the strict puridical viewpoint, shop occupation is in confict wth
formal law. Just as strike is in confict with formal law. And in fact the eploy
er regularly appealed to this formal law as a weapon in the fght, by stigatiz
ing the strikers as contract breakers, thus givg him the right to put new work
ers in their places. But against this juridical logic stries have persisted and
developed as a form of fight ; because they were necessary.
Formal law, indeed, does not represent the inner reality of capitalism, but
only its outer forms, to which middle class and juridical opinion cling.
Capitalism in reality is not a world of equal and contracting individuals, but a
world of fighting classes. When the power of the workers was too small the
middle class opinion of formal law prevaied, the strikers as contract breakers
were turned out and replaced by others . Where, however, trade union fight had
won its place, a new and truer juridica conception asserted itself: a strike is not
a break, not a cessation, but a temporay suspendig of the labor contract, to
settle the dispute over working terms. Lawyers may not accept theoretically this
point of view, but society does, practically.
In the same way shop occupation asserted itself as a method in fight, where
it was needed and where the workers were able to take a stand. Capitalists and
lawyers might splutter over the violation of property rights. For the workers,
however, it was an action that did not attack the property rights but only tem
porarily suspended their effects. Shop occupation is not shop-expropriation. It
68 WORKERS' COUNCILS
is only a momentary suspension of te disposal by the capitalist. After the con
test has been settled, he is master and undisputed owner as before.
Yet, at the same time, it is more. I it, as i a light flash at the horizon, a
glimpse of future development springs up. By shop occupation the workers,
unwittingly, demonstrate that their fight has entered into a new phase. Here
their firm inte:uncton as a shop organizaton appears, a natural unity not to
be dissolved into single individuals. Here the workers become conscious of
their intimate connection wit the shop. To them it is not another man's build-
where only at his command they come to work for him till he sends them
away. To them the shop with its machines is a productive apparats they han
dle, an organ that only by their work is made a living part of society. It is noth
ing foreign to them; they are at home here, much more than the juridical own
ers , the shareholders who do not even know its whereabouts. I te factory the
workers grow conscious of the contents of their life, their productive work their
work-community as a collectivity that makes it a living organism, an element
of the totality of society. Here, in shop occupation a vague feeling arses that
they ought to be entirely master of production, that they ought to expel the
unworthy outsiders, the commanding capitalists, who abuse it i wasting the
riches of mankind and in devastating the earth. And in the heavy fight that will
be necessary, the shops again will play a primary role, as the units of organi
zaton, of common acton, perhaps as the supports and strongholds, pivot of
force and objects of struggle. Compared with the natral connection of work
ers and shops te conunand of capital appears as an artifical outside domina
tion, powerful as yet, but hanging in the air; whereas the growing hold of the
workers is firmly rooted in the earth. Thus in shop occupaton the future
casts its light in the growing consciousness that the shops belong with te work
ers, that together they form a harmonious unity, and that the fight for freedom
will be fought over, in, and by means of the shops.
4. POLITICL STRIKS
Not all the great strikes of te workers in the last century were fought over
wages and working conditions. Besides the so-called economic strikes, political
strikes occurred. Their object was the promotion or the prevention of a politi
cal measure. They were not directed against the employers but against State
government, to induce it to gve to te workers more political rights, or to dis
suade it from obnoxious acts. Tus it could happen that the employers agreed
with te aims and promoted the strike.
A certain amount of social equality and political rights for te workig class
is necessary in capitalism. Modern industial production is based upon intricate
tecics, product of highly developed knowledge, and demands careful per
sonal collaboration and capability of the workers. Te utmost exertion of
THE FIGHT 69
forces canot, as in the case of coolies or slaves, be enforced by rough physical
compulsion, by whip or outrage; it would be revenged by equally roug-mis
handling of the tools. The constaint must come from inner motives, from
moral means of pressure based upon individual responsibility. The workers
must not feel powerless embittered slaves ; tey must have the means to go
against inflicted wrongs. Tey have to feel themselves free sellers of ther
labor-power, exerting all teir forces, because, formally and apparently, they
are determining their own lot in the general competition. To maintain them
selves as a working cass they need not only the personal liberty and legal
equality proclaimed by middle class laws : Specal rights and liberties, too, are
necessary to secure these possibilities ; the right of association, te right of meet
ing in assembly, the rght to form unions, freedom of speech, freedom of press.
And all these political rights must be protected by universal sufrage, for the
workers to assert their infuence over Parliament and law.
Capitaism began by refusig these rights, assisted herein by the inherited
despotism and backwardness of existing goverments, and tried to make the
workers powerless victims of its exploitation. Only gradually, in consequencc
of ferce struggle against inhuman oppression, some rights were won. Because
in its frst stage capitalism feared the hostility of the lower classes, the artisans
impoverished by its competiton, and the workers starved by low wages, the
suffrage was kept restricted to the wealty classes. Only in later times, when
capitalism was frmly rooted, when its profits were large and its rule was
secured, the restrictions on the ballot were gradually removed. But only under
compulsion of stong pressure, often of hard fight fom the side of the workers.
Fight for democracy flls the history of home politics during the 19
t
century,
first in England, and then in all countries where capitasm introduced itself.
In England universal sufrage was one of the main points of the charter of
demands put up by the English workers in te Chartist movement, thei first
and most glorious period of Their agitation had been a strong induce
ment to the rulig land owner class to yield to the pressure of the simultaneous
Reform movement of the rising industrial capitalists. So through the Reform
Act 1 832 the industial employers got their share in political power; but te
workers had to go home empty-handed, and to continue their strenuous strug-
'Inen, at the climax of Chartism, a "holy month" was projected in 1839,
when all the work had to rest tl te demands were granted. Tus the English
workers were the frst to proclaim the political strike as a weapon in their fght.
But it could not be put into effect; and at an outburst (1842) it had to be bro
ken off without success ; it could not curb the power of the now com
bined ruling classes of landowners ad factory owners. Not till a generation
later, when after a period of unprecedented idustrial prosperity and expansion
the propaganda was once more taken up, now by the tade unions combined
in the "Iternational Workers' Association" (the "First International" of Marx
70 WORKERS' COUNCILS
and Engels), public opinion in the middle class was ready to extend, in con
secutve steps, te suffrage to the working class.
In France universal suffrage sice 1848 formed part of republican constitu
tion, dependent as such goverent always was on the support of the workers.
In Germany te foundation of the Empire, in the years 1 866-70, product of a
feverish capitalist development activating the entie population, entailed uni
versal suffrage as a warrant of continued contact wit the masses of the people.
But in many other countries the propertied class, often only a privileged part
of kept fast to its monopoly of political influence. Here the capaign for the
ballot, obviously the to political power and freedom, roused ever larger
parts of the working class to participation, to organization and to political actv
ity. Conversely, the fear of the propertied classes for political domination of the
proletariat stiffened their resistance. Formaly te matter looked hopeless for
the masses; universal suffrage had to be legally enacted by a Parliament cho
sen by te privileged minority, ,rd thus invited to destroy its own foundations.
This implies that only by extraordinary means, by pressure from outside, fal
ly by political mass strikes te aim could be achieved. How it happens may be
leared from the classical example of the Belgian suffrage strike in 1893.
In Belgium, trough a limited census-suffrage, government was perpetualy
in the hands of a small clique of conservatives of the clerical party. Labor con
ditions in the coal mines and factories were notoriously among the worst in
Europe ad led to explosions in frequent strikes . Extension of suffrage as a way
to social reform, frequently proposed by some few liberal parliamentarians,
always again was defeated by the conservative majority. Then te Workers'
Party, agitating, organizing and preparing for many years, decided upon a uni
versal strike. Such a strike had to exert political pressure during the parlia
mentary discussion on a new suffrage proposa. It had to demonstrate the
intense interest and the grim will of the masses, who abandoned their work to
give all attention to this fndamental question. It had to arouse all the indif
ferent elements among the workers and the small business men to take part in
what for all of them was a life interest. It had to show the narrow-minded rulers
the social power of the working class, to impress upon them that it refsed
longer to be kept under tutelage. At frst, of course, the parliamentary majori
ty took a stand, refused to be coerced by pressure fom outside, wishing to
decide after their own will and conscience; so it took the suffrage bil from the
rolls and ostensibly began to discuss other matters. But in te meantime the
strike went on, extended more than before, and brought production to a stand
still; traffIc ceased, and even dutifl public services became restive. The gov
ernental apparatus itself was hampered in its functions ; and in the business
world, with the growing feeling of uncertainty, opinion became loud that to
grant the demands was less dangerous than to provoke a catastrophe. So the
THE FIGHT 71
determiation of the parliamentarians began to crumble; tey felt that they had
to choose between yielding or crushing the strike by military force.
But could the soldiers be trusted in such a case? Thus their resistace had
to give way; will and conscience had to be revised, and at last they accepted
and enacted the proposals. The workers, by means of a politcal stike, had
reached their aim and won their fundamental politica right.
Mter such a success many workers and their spokesmen supposed that this
new powerful weapon could be used oftener to win important reforms. But
therein they were disappointed; the history of labor movement knows of more
failures than successes in political strikes. Such a strike tries to impose the will
of the workers upon a goverent of the capitalist class. It is somewhat of a
revolt, a revolution, and calls up in that class the instincts of self-defense and
the impulses of suppression. These instincts were repressed when part of the
bourgeoisie itself grew annoyed by the backwardness of politcal institutions
and felt the need of fresh reforms. Then the mass action of the workers was an
instument to moderize capitalism. Because te workers were united and ful
of entusiasm, whereas the propertied class in any case was divided, the strike
succeeded. It could succeed not because the weakness of the capitalist class,
but because of the strength of capitalism. Capitalism is strengthened when its
roots, by universal suffrage, securing at least political equality, are driven deep
er into the working class. Workers' suffrage belongs to developed capitalism;
because the workers need the ballot, as well as trade unons, to maintain them
selves in their fnction in capitalism.
Hnow, however, in mior points tey should suppose themselves able to
impose their wil against the real interests of the capitalists, they find this class
as a solid unity against them. They feel it as by instinct; ad not being carried
away by a great inspiring aim that dispels all hesitations, they remain uncertain
and divided. Every group, seeing that the strike is not universal, hesitates in its
turn. Volunteers of the other classes offer temselves for the most needed serv
ices and traffc though they are not really able to uphold production, their
activity at least discourages the strikers. Prohibition of assemblies, display of
armed forces, martial law may still more demonstrate the power of goverment
and the will to use it. So the strie begns to crmble and must be discontin
ued, often with considerable losses and disillusion for the defeated organiza
tions. D experiences like these the workers discovered that by its inner stength
capitalism is able to withstand even well organized and massal assaults. But at
the same time they felt sure that in mass strikes, if only applied at the right
time, they possess a powerful weapon.
This view was confirmed in the frst Russian Revolution of 1905. It exhib
ited an entrely new character in mass-strikes. Russia at that tiie showed only
the beginnings of capitalism: some few large factories in great towns, support
ed mostly by foreign capital wit State subsidies, where starving peasants
72 WORKERS' COUNCILS
foced to work as industrial hads. Trade unions and strikes were forbidden;
goverent was primitive and despotic. The Socialist Party, consisting of intel
lectuas and workers, had to fght for what middle-cass revolutions n\ Western
Europe had already established: the destruction of absolutism and the intro
duction of constitutional rights and law. Hence the fight of the Russian work
ers was bound to be spontaneous ad chaotic. First as wild strikes against mis
erable working conditions, severely suppressed by Cossacks and police, then
acquirig a political character, in demonstrations and the unfolding of red fags
in the streets, the struggle manifest itself. Wen the Japanese war of 1905 had
weakened the Czarist government and show up its iner rottenness, the rev
olution broke out as a series of wild-strike movements on a gigantic scale. Now
they famed up, springing like wildfre from one factory, one town to another,
bringing the entire industry to a standstil ; then they dissolved into minor local
strikes, dying away after some concessions from the employers, or smoldered
until new outbreaks came. Often there were street demonstrations and fghts
against police and soldiers. Days of victory came where the delegates of the fac
tories assembled unmolested to discuss te situation, then, joined by deputa
tions of other groups, of rebellious soldiers even, to epress their sypathy,
whilst the authortes stood passively by. Then again the Government made a
move and arrested the entire body of delegates, and the strike ended in apathy.
Till at last, in a series of barricade fights in the capital cities the movement was
crushed by military force.
I Western Europe political strikes had been careflly premeditated actons
for specially indicated aims, directed by the union or the Socialist Party lead
ers. I Russia the strie movement was the revulsion of heavily abused human
ity, uncontrolled, as a storm or a flood forcing its way. It was not te fght of
organized workers claiming along denied right; it was the rise of a down-trod
den mass to human consciousness in the only form of fght then possible. Here
there could be no question of success or defeat, the fact of an outbreak was
already a victory, no more to be undone, the beginning of, a new epocll. I out
ward appearance the movement was crushed and Czarist government again
was master. But in reality these strikes had struck a blow at Czarism from
which it could not recover. Some reforms were introduced, political, industrial
ao agrarian. But the whole fabric of the State with its arbitrar despotism of
incapable chinowniks could not be moderzed, it had to disappear. This revo
lution prepaed the next one, in which old barbarous Russia was to be
destroyed.
The frst Russian revolution has strongly influenced the ideas of the work
ers in Cental and Wester Europe. Here a new development of capitalism had
set in that made felt the need of new and more powerful methods of fght, for
defense ad for attack. Economic prosperity, which began in the nineties and
lasted till the frst world war, brought an unprecedented increase of production
THE FIGHT 73
and weath. Industry expanded, especially iron and steel industry, new markets
were opened, railways and factories were built in foreign countries and other
continents; now for the frst time capitalism spread al over the earth. America
and Germany were the scenes of the most rapid industrial development. Wages
increased, unemployment nearly disappeared, the tade unions grew into mass
organizations. The workers were filled with hopes of continual progress in
prosperity and influence, and visions loomed up of a coming age of industrial
democracy.
But then, at the other side of society, they saw anoter image. Big capital
concentrated production and finance, wealt and power, in a few hands and
built up strong industrial concerns and capitalist associations . Its need for
expansion, for the disposal over foreign markets and raw materials, inaugurat
ed the policy of imperialism, a polic of stronger tics to old, and conquest of
new colonies , a policy of growing antagonism between the capitalist classes of
different countries, and of increasing armaments. The ol d peaceful freetrade
ideals of the "little Englanders" were ridiculed and gave way to new ideals of
national greatness and power. Wars broke out i all continents , in the
Transvaal, in Chia, Cuba, and the Phillipines, in te Balkans ; England con
solidated its Empire, and Germany, claiming its share in world power, prepared
for world war. Big capital u\ its growing power ever more determined the char
acter and opinions of the entire bourgeoisie, filing it with its anti-democratic
spirit of violence. Though sometimes it tried to lure the workers by the
prospect of a share u the spoils, there was on the whole less inclination ta in
previous times to make concessions to labor. Every strike for better wages,
engaged in order to catch up with rising prices, met with stifer resistance.
Reactionary and aristocratc tendencies got hold of te ruling class; it spoke not
of extension but of restriction of popular rights, and treats were heard, espe
cially in continental countries, of suppressing the workers' discontent by vio
lent means.
Thus circumstances had changed and were changing ever more. The power
of the working class had increased through its organization and its political
action. But the power of the capitalist class had increased still more. This means
that heavier clashes between the to classes migt be expected. So the workers
had to look for oter and stronger methods of fight. What were they to do i
regularly even the most justifable strikes are met by big lock-out, or if their
parliamentary rights are reduced or circumvented, or if capitalist government
wl make war notwithstanding their urgent protests?
It is easily seen that under such conditions there was among the foremost
elements of the working class much thought and discussion on mass acton and
the political strike, and that the general strike was propagated as a means
against the outbreak of war. Studying the examples of such actions as te
Belgian and the Russian strikes, they had to consider the conditions, the pos-
74 WORKERS' COUNCILS
sibilities, and the consequences of mass-actions and political strikes in te most
highly developed capitalist countries with strong governments and powerful
capitalst classes. It was clear that strong odds were against them. What could
not have happened in Belgum and Russia would be the immediate result here:
the annihilation of their organizatons. If the combined trade unions, Socalist
or Labor Partes should proclaim a general strike, Goverment, sure of the sup
port of the entire ruling and middle class, doubtless would be able to imprison
the leaders, persecute the organizatons as endangering the safety of the State,
suppress their papers, by a state of siege prevent all mutual contact of the strik
ers, and by mobilizing military forces, assert its undisputed public power.
Aganst this display of power the workers, isolated, exposed to the threats and
calumnies, disheartened by distorted information from the press, would have
no cance. Their organizatons would be dissolved and break down. And the
organizations lost, the fruits of years of devoted struggle, all i s lost.
'Ibus the political and labor leaders asserted. Ideed, to them, with their
outlook entirely limited within the confines of present forms of organization it
must appear so. So they are fundamentally opposed to political strikes. This
means that in this form, as premeditated and well decided actions of the exist-
organizations, directed their leaders, suc political strikes ae not possi-
ble. As little as a thunderstorm in a placid atmosphere. It may be true that, for
special aims entirely within te capitalist system, a political strike remains
entirely within the bounds of legal order, so tat after it is over capitalism
resumes its ordinary course. But this tuth does not prevent the ruling class
from being angrily aroused against every display of workers' power, nor polit
ical strikes from having consequences far beyond their immediate aims. When
social conditions become intolerable for the workers, when social or politcal
crses are threatening them with ruin, it is inevitable that mass-actions and
gigantic strikes break forth spontaneously, as the natural foml of fght, notwith
standing all objections and resistance of the existing unions, irresistibly, like
thunderstorms out of a heavy electric tension in the atmosphere. And again the
workers face the question whether tey have any chance against the power of
State and capita1.
It is not true that with a forcible suppression of their organizations ais lost.
These ae only the outer form of what in essence lives within. To think that by
such Government measures the workers suddenly should cange into the self
ish, narrow-minded, isolated individuals of olden times! In their hearts all the
powers of solidarity, of comradeship, of devotion to the class remain living, are
growing even more intense trough the adverse conditions; and they will assert
tllemselves in other forms. If these powers are strong enough no force from
above can brea the unity of the strikers. Where they sufer defeat it is mainly
due to discouragement No government power can compel them to work; it can
only prohibit active deeds; it can do no more a than threaten and try to intim-
THE }'IGHT 75
idate them, by fear to dissolve their unity. It depends on the inner strength
of the workers, on the spirit of organization within them, whether that ca be
successful. Certainly thus the highest demands arc made on social and moral
qualities; but just for this reason these qualities will be strained to the higest
possible pitch and will be hadened as steel in the fre.
This is not the affair of one action, one strike. I every such contest the
force of dle workers is put to the test, whether their unity is strong enough to
resist the attempts of the ruling powers to break it. Every contest arouses new
s trenuous efforts to strengthen it so as not to be broken. And when, actually,
the workers remain steadfast, when notwithstanding all acts of intmidaton, of
suppression, of isolation, they hold out, when tere is no yielding of any goup,
then it is on the other side that the effects of the strike become manifest. Society
is paralyzed, production and traffic are stopped, or reduced to a miimum, the
fnctioning of all public life is hampered, the middle classes are alarmed ad
may begin to advise concessions. The authority of Goverment, unable to
restore the old order, is shaken. Its power always consisted in the solid organi
zation of u officials and services, directed by unity of purpose embodied in
one self-sure will, all of them accustomed by duty and conviction to follow the
intentions and instructions of the central authorities. When, however, it stands
against the mass of the people, it feels itself ever more what it really is, a ruling
minority, inspiring awe ony as long as it seemed all-powerfl, powerful only as
long as it was undisputed, as long as it was the only solidly organized body in
an ocean of unorganized individuals. But now the majority also is solidly
organized, not in outard forms but in inner unit. Stading before the ipos
sible task of imposing its will upon a rebellious population, Government grows
uncertain, divided, nervous, tryig different ways. Moreover, the strike
impedes the intercomunicaton of the authorites all over the country, isolates
the local ones, and throws them back upon thei own resources. Thus the
organization of State power begins to lose its inner strength and solidity.
N either can the use of aed forces help otherwise than by more violent
theats. Finally the army consists either of workers too, in different dress and
under the menace of stricter law, but not intended to be used against their com
rades ; or it is a minority over against the entire people. If put to the strain of
being commanded to fre at unarmed citizens and comrades, the imposed dis
cpline in the long run must give way. And dlen State power, besides its moral
authority, would have lost its strongest material weapon to keep the masses in
obedience.
Such considerations of the important consequences of mass strikes, once
that great social crises stir up the masses to a desperate fight, could mean of
course no more than the view of a possible futre. For the moment, under te
mollifying effect of industrial prosperity, there were no forces strong enough
to drive the workers into such actions. Against the threatening war their unions
76 WORKERS' COUNCILS
and parties restricted themselves to professing teir pacifsm and international
feelings, without the will and the daring to call upon the masses for a desper
ate resistance. So the ruling class could force the workers into its capitalist
mass-action, into world war. It was the collapse of the appearances and illusions
of self-satisfed power of the working class at the tme, now disclosed as irmer
weakness and insuficiency.
One of the elements of weakness was the lack of a distinct goal. There was
not, and could not be, any clear idea of what had to come afer successful
mass-actions. Te effects of mass strikes so far appeared destructive only, not
constructive. Ths was not true, to be sure; decisive inner qualities, the basis of
a new society, develop out of the fghts. But the outer forms in which they had
to take shape were unknown; nobody in the capitalist world at the time had
heard of workers' councils. Political strikes can only be a temporary form of
battle; after the strike constructive labor has to provide for permanency.
5. THE RUSSIAN RVOLUION
The Russian revolution was a important episode in the development of
the working class movement. Firstly, as already mentioned, by the display of
new forms of political strike, instruments of revolution. Moreover, in a higher
degree, by the frst appeaance of new forms of self-organization of the fghting
workers, known as soviets, i.e., councils. In 1705 they were hardly noticed as a
special phenomenon and they disappeared with the revolutionar activit itself
I 1917 they reappeared wt greater power; now their importance was grasped
by the workers of Western Europe, and they played a role here in the cass
struggles after the first world war.
The soviets, essentially, were simply strike committees, such as always arise
in wld strikes . Since the strikes in Russia broke out in large factories , and rap
idly expanded over towns and districts , the workers had to keep in continual
touch. In the shops the workers assembled and discussed regularly after the
dose of the work, or in times of tension even continually, the entire day. Tley
sent their delegates to other factories and t the central committees, where
information was interchanged, difficulties discussed, decisions taken, and new
tasks considered.
But here the tasks proved more encompassing tan in ordinary strikes. The
workers had to throw off the heavy oppression of Czarism; they felt that by
their action Russian society was changing in its foundations. TIley had to con
sider not only wages and labor conditions in their shops, but all questions relat
ed to society at large. They had to find their own way in these realms and to
take decisions on politcal matters. When the strike flared up, extended over
the entire county, stopped all industry and traffic and paralyzed the functons
of goverment, the soviets Were confronted with new problems. They had to
THE FIGHT 77
regulate public life, they had to take care of public security and order, they had
to provide for the indispensible public utilities and servces. Tey had to per
form governmental functions ; what they decided was executed by the workers,
whereas Government and police stood aloof, conscious of their impotence
against the rebellious masses. Then the delegates of other groups, of intellec
tuals, of peasants, of soldiers, who came to join the central soviets, took part in
the discussions and decsions. But all this power was like a fash of lightning,
like a meteor passing. When at last the Czarist government mustered its mili
tary forces and beat down the movement the soviets disappeared.
Thus it was in 1905. In 1917 the war had weakened government through
the defeats at the front and the hunger in the towns, and now the soldiers,
mostly peasants, took part in the acton. Besides the workers' councils in the
town soldiers' councils were formed in the army; the ofcers were shot when
tey did not acquiesce in the soviets taking al power into teir hands to pre
vent entire anarchy. Mter half a year of vain attempts on the part of politicians
and military commanders to impose new governments, the soviets, supported
by the socialist parties, were master of society.
Now te soviets stood before a new task. From organs of revolution they
had to become organs of reconstruction. The masses were master and of course
began to build up producton according to teir needs and lfe interests. What
they wanted and did was not determined, as always in such cases, by inculcat
ed doctrines , but by their own class character, by their conditions of life. What
were these conditions? Russia was a priitive agrarian country with only the
beginning of industrial development. The masses of the people were uncivi
lized and ignorant peasants, spiritually dominated by a gold glittering church,
and even the industrial workers were strongly connected with their old villages.
The village soviets arising everywhere were selfgovering peasant committees.
They seized the large estates of the former great landowners and divided them
up. The development went in the direction of small freeholders with private
property, and presented already the distictions between larger and smaller
properties, between infuential wealthy and more humble poor farlCrs.
In te towns, on the other hand, there could be no development to private
capitalist industry because there was no bourgeoisie of any sigifcance. TIle
workers wanted some form of socialist production, te only one possible under
these conditions. But their minds and character, only superficially touched by
the beginnings of capitalism, were hardly adequate to the task of themselves
regulating production. So their foremost and leading elements, the socalists of
the Bolshevist Paty, organized and hardened by years of devoted fight, their
leaders in the revolution became the leaders in the reconstruction. Moreover,
were these workig class tendencies not to be droV'tled by the flood of aspira
tions for private property coming from the land, a stong central goverment
had to be formed, able to restrain the peasants' tendences. In this heavy task
78 WORKERS' COUNCILS
of organizing industry, of organzing the defensive war against counter-revolu
tionary attacks, of subduing the resistance of capitalist tendencies among the
peasants, and of educating them to modern scientifc ideas instead of their old
beliefs, al the capable elements among the workers and intellectuals, supple
mented by such of the former officials and offcers as were wiling to co-oper
ate, had to combine into te Bolshevist Party as the leading body. It formed the
new government. The soviets gradually were eliminated as organs of self-rule,
and reduced to subordinate organs of the government apparatus. The name of
Soviet-Republic, however, was preserved as a camoufage, and the ruling party
retained the name of Communist Party.
The system of production developed i Russia is State socialsm. It is organ
ied production with the State as universal employer, master of the entire pro
duction apparatus. The workers are master of the means of production no
more than under Wester capitalism. They receive their wages and are exploit
ed by the Stte as the only mammot capitaist. So the name State capitalism
can be applied with precisely the same meaning. The entrety of te rulng and
leading bureaucracy of offcials is the actual owner of the factories, the pos
sessing class. Not separately, everyone for a part, but together, collectively, they
are possessors of te whole. Theirs the function and the task to do what the
bourgeoisie did in Western Europe and America: develop industry and the pro
ductivity of labor. They had to change Russia from a primtive babarous coun
ty of peasants into a modern, civized country of great industry. And before
long, in often cruelly waged cass war between the peasants and the rulers,
State-contolled big agrarian enterprises replaced the backward small farms.
The revolution, therefore, has not, as deceptive propaganda pretends, made
Russia a land where the workers are master and communism reigns. Yet it
meant progress of enOrmous significance. It may be compared with the great
French revoluton: it destroyed the power of monarch and feuda landowners,
it began by gving the land to the peasants, and it made the masters of indus
try rulers of the State. Just as then in France the masses fom despised
"canaille" becanle free citizens, recognzed even in poverty and economic
dependence as personalites with the possibility to rise, so now in Russia the
masses rose from unevolving barbasm into the stream of world progress,
where they may act as personalities. Poltical dictatorship a form of govern
ment can no more prevent this development once it has started than the mili
tary dictatorship of Napoleon hampered it in France. Just as then in France
from among the citizens and peasants came up the capitalists and the military
commanders, in an upward struggle of mutual competition, by good and by
bad means, by energy and talent, by jobbery and deceit-so now in Russia. All
the good brains among the workers and peasants' children rushed into te tech
nical and farming schools, becae engineers, oficers, techncal and military
leaders. Te future was opened to them and aroused immense tensions of ener-
THE FIGHT 79
gy; by study and exertion, by cunnng and intrigue they worked to assert their
places in the new ruling class-ruling, here again, over a miserable exploited
class of proletarans. And just as at that time in France a strong natonalism
sprang up proclaiming the new freedom to be brought to all Europe, a brief
dream of everlasting glory-so now Russia proudly proclaimed its mission, by
world revolution to free all peoples from capitalism.
For the working class the signfcance of te Russian revolution must be
looked for i n quite diferent diections. Russia showed to the European and
American workers, confned within reformist ideas and practice, frst how an
industrial working cla' by a gigantic mass action of wild strikes is able to
undermine and destroy an obsolete State power; and second, how in such
actions the strike committees develop into workers' councils, organs of fight
and of sef-management, acquiring political tasks and functions. In order to see
the infuence of the Russian example upon the ideas and actions of the work
ing class after the first world war, we have to go a step backward.
The outbreak of the war in 1914 meat an unexpected breakdown of the
labor movement all over capitalist Europe. The obedient compliance of the
workers under the military powers, the eager affliation, in all the countries, of
the union and sociaist party leaders to their goverents, as accomplices i
the suppression of the workers, the absence of any signifcant protest, had
brought a deep disappointment to all who before put their hopes of liberation
on proletaian socialism. But gradually among the foremost of the workers
came the insight that what had broken down was chefly te ilusion of an easy
liberation by parliamentary reform. They saw the bleeding and exploited
masses growing rebelious under the sufferings of oppression and butchery,
and, in alliance with the Russia revolutionaries, they expected the world-rev
olution to destroy capitalism as an outcome of the chaos of the war. They
rejected the disgraced name of socialism ad called themselves communists, the
old title of working class revolutionaries.
Then as a bright star in the dark sky the Russian revolution flaed up and
shone over the earth. And everywhere the maSSes were flled with anticipation
and became restive, listening to its call for the finishig of the war, for brot
erhood of the workers of all countries, for world revolution against capitalism.
Still clinging to their old socialist doctrines and organizations the masses,
uncertain under the flood of calumnies in the press, stood waiting, hesitating,
whether the tale might still come true. Smaller groups, especially among the
young workers, everywhere assembled in a growing communist movement.
They were the advance guard in the movements that after the end of the war
broke out in all countries, most strongly in defeated and exhausted Central
Europe. !was a new doctine, a new system of ideas, a new tactic of fght, tlus
communism that with the then new powerful means of government propagan
da was propagated from Russia. It referred to Marx's theory of destroying cap-
80 WORKERS' COUNCILS
italism by means of the workers' class fight. It was a call for fight aganst world
capital, mainy concentrated in England and America, tat exloited al peoples
and all continents. It summoned not only the industrial workers of Europe and
America, but also the subjected peoples of Asia and Aica to rise in common
fight against capitalism. Like every wa, this war could only be won by organ
ization, by concentaton of powers, and good disciple. In the comlllunist par
tes, comprising the most gallant and able fighters, kernel and staf were pres
ent already; they have to take the lead, and at their call the masses must rise
and attack the capitalist governments. In the political and economic crisis of the
world we canot wait until by patient teaching the masses have al become
communists. Nor is this necessary; i they are convinced that only communism
is salvation, i they put their trust in the Communist Paty, follow its directions,
bring it to power, then te Party as the new government will establish the new
order. So it dd in Russia, ad this example must be followed everywhere. But
then, in response to the heavy task and the devotion of the leaders, strict obe
dience and discipline of the masses are imperative, of the masses towards the
Paty, of the party members towards the leaders . What Marx had called the
dictatorship of the proletariat c be realized only as the dictatorship of the
Communist Party. In the Party the working class is embodied, the Part is its
representative.
In this form of communist doctine the Russian orign was clearly visible.
In Russia, wth its small industry and undeveloped working class, only a rot
ten Asiatic despotism had to be overtrown. In Europe and America a numer
ous and highly developed working class, trained by a powerful industry, stands
Over aganst a powerful capitalist class disposing of all the resources the
world. Henee the doctrine of party dictatorship and blind obedience found
strong opposition here. If in Germany the revolutionary movements after the
close of the war had led to a victory of the working class and it had joined
Russia, then the influence of this class, product of the highest capitalist and
industrial development, would soon have out-weighed the Russian character_ It
would have strongly infuenced the English and te American workers; ad it
would have carried away Russia itself aong new roads. But in Germany the
revolution failed; the masses were kept aoof by their socialist and union
lenders , by means of atrocity storics and promises of well-ordered socialist hap
piness, whilst their advance guards were exterminated and their best spokes
men murdered by the militay forces under te protection of the socialist gov
ernment. So the opposing goups of German communist could not carry
weight; they were expelled from the party. In their place discontented socialist
groups were induced to join the Moscow Iternatonal, attracted by its new
opportunist policy of parliamentarism, with which it hoped to wn power in
capitalist countries.
TE FIGH 81
Thus world revolution from a war cry became a phrase. The Russian lead
ers imagined word revolution as a big scale extension and imitation of the
Russian revolution. They knew capitalism only in its Russian form, as a for
eig exploitng power impoverishing te inhabitants, carrying all the profits out
of the country. They did not know capitalism as the great organizing power, by
its richness producing the bais of a stl richer new world. As became dear
from their writings, they did not know the enormous power of the bourgeoisie,
against which all the capabiities of devoted leaders and a disciplined party are
insufficient. They did not know the sources of strength that lie hdden in the
modern workng dass. Hence te primitive forms of noisy propaganda and
paty terrorism, not only spiritual, but also physical, against dissenting views .
It was an anachronism that Russia, newly entering the industria era out of its
primitive barbarism, should take command over the working class of Europe
and America, that stood before the task of transforming a highly developed
industrial capitalism into a stl higher form of organization.
Old Russia essentially, in its economic structure, had been an Asiatic coun
try. over Asia lived millions of peasants, in primitive small scale agriculture,
resticted to their village, under despotic far distant rulers, whom they had no
connection with but by the paying of taxes. In modern times these taxes
became ever more a heavy tribute to Wester capitalism. The Russia revolu
tion, with its repudiation of Czarist debts, was the liberation of the Russian
peasants from this form of exploitation by Western capital.
So it called upon all the suppressed and exploited Eastern peoples to follow
its example, to join the fight and throw off the yoke of their despots, tools of
the rapacious word capital. And far and wide, in China and Persia, in India
and Mrica the call was heard. Communist parties were formed, consisting of
radical intellectals , of peasants revolting against feudal landowners, of hard
pressed urban cooles and artisans, bringing to the hundreds of mllions te
message of liberation. A in Russia it meant for all these peoples the opening
of te road to moder industria development, sometimes, as in China, in
alliance wth a modernizing national bourgeoisie. In this way the Moscow
Interational even more tha a European became an Asiatic institution. This
accentuated its middle class character, and worked to revive in the European
followers the old traditions of middle class revolutions , with the preponderance
of geat leaders, of sounding catchwords, of conspiacies , plots, and milita
revolts.
Te consolidation of State capitalism in Russia itself was the determining
oasis for the character of te Communist Party. "hilst in its foreign propa
ganda it continued to speak of communism and world revolution, decried cap
italism, called upon te workers to join in the fight for freedom, the workers in
Russia were a subjected and exploited class, living mostly in miserable work
ing conditions, under a strong and oppressive dictatorial rule, without freedom
.. ____
82 WORKERS' COUNCILS
of speech, of press, of association, more strongly enslaved than their brethren
under Wester capitalism. Thus an inherent falsehood must pervade politics
and teachgs of that party. Though a tool of the Russian goverment in its for
eign politics, it succeeded by its revolutionary talk to take hold of all te rebel
lious impulses generated in enthusiastic young people in the crisis-ridden
Wester world. But ony to spill them in abortive sham-actions or in oppor
tunist politics-now against the socialist parties styled as traitors or social fas
cists, then seeking their alliance in a so-called red front or a people's front
causing its best adherents to leave i disgust. The doctrine it taught under the
nae of Marxism was not the theory of te overthrow of highly developed cap
italism by a highly developed workng class; but its caricature, product of a
world of barbarous primitivit, where fght against relgious superstitions
means spiritual, and modernized industrialism-economic progress-with athe
ism as philosophy, party-rule the aim, obedience to dictatorship as highest com
mandment. The Communist Party did not intend to make the workers inde
pendent fighters capable by their force of insight themselves to build their new
world, but to make them obedient followers ready to put the party into power.
So the light darkened that had illuminated the world; the masses that had
hailed it were left i blacker night, either in discouragement turing away fom
the fght, or struggling aong to find new and better ways . The Russian revo
lution first had given a mighty impulse to the fght of the working class, by its
mass direct actions and by its new counci forls of organization-this was
expressed in the widespread rise of the communist movement all over the
world. But when then the revolution settled into a new order, a new class rule,
a new form of government, State capitalism under dictatorship of a new
exloiting class, the Communist Part needs must assume an ambiguous char
acter. Thus in the course of ensuing events it became most ruinous to the work
ing cass fight, that can only live and grow in the purity of clear thought, plan
deeds and far dealings. By its idle talk of world revolution it hapered the
badly needed new orientation of means and aims. By fostering and teaching
under the name of discipline the vice of submssiveness, the cef vice the
workers must shake off, by suppressing each trace of independent critical
thought, it prevented the growth of any real power of the working class. By
usurping the name communism for its system of workers' exploitation and its
policy of often cruel persecution of adversaries, it made this name, till then
expression of loft ideals , a byword, an object of aversion and hatred even
among workers. In Germany, where the political ad economic crises had
brought the class antagonisms to te highest pitch, it reduced the hard class
fght to a puerile skirmish of armed youths against similar nationalist bands.
And when then the tide of nationalism ran hgh and proved stongest, large
pats of them, only educated to beat down their leaders' adversaries, simply
THE FIGHT 83
changed colors. Thus the Communist Party by its theory and practice largely
contributed to prepare the victory of fascsm.
6. THE WORKERS' REVOLUTION
The revolution by which the working class will win mastery and freedom,
is not a single event of limited duration. It is a process of organization, of
self-education, in which the workers gradually, now in progressing rise, then in
steps and leaps, develop the force to vanquish the bourgeoisie, to destoy cap
italism, and to build up their new system of collective production. Tis process
wil fill up an epoch in history of unknown length, on the verge of which we
are now standig. Though the details of its course cannot be foreseen, some of
its conditions and circumstances may be a subject of dscussion now.
Ths fght cannot be compared with a regular war between similar antago
nistic powers. The workers' forces are like an army that assembles during the
battle! They must grow by the fight itself, they cannot be ascertained before
hand, and they can only put forward and attain partial aims. Looking back on
history we discern a series of actions that as attempts to seize power seem to be
so many failures: from Chartism, along 1848, along the Paris Commune, up to
the revolutions in Russia and Germany in 1917-1918. But there is a line of
progress; every next attempt shows a higer stage of consciousness and force.
Looking back on the history of labor we see, moreover, that in the continuous
struggle of the working cass there are ups and downs, mosty connected wit
changes in industrial prosperity. I the frst rise of industry every crisis brought
misery and rebellious movements ; the revolution of 1848 on the continent was
the sequel of a heavy business depression combined with bad crops. Te indus
tial depression about 1867 brought a revival of politcal action in England; the
long crisis of the 1880' s, wit its heav unemployment, excited mass actons,
the rise of social-democracy on te continent and the "new unionism" in
England. But in the years of industrial prosperity u between, as 1850-70, and
1895-1914, all this spirit of rebellion disappeared. When capitalism flourishes
and in fevcrish activity expands its realm, whcn there is abundant employment,
and trade union action is able to raise the wages, the workers do not think of
ay cange i the socil system. The capitalst class growing i wealth and
power is full of sef-condence, prevais over the workers and succeeds in imbu
ing them with its spirit of nationalism. Formally the workers may ten stick to
the old revolutionary catchwords; but in their subconscious they are content
with capitalism, their vision is narrowed; hence, though their numbers are
growing, their power decines. Til a new crisis finds them unprepared and has
to rouse them anew.
Thus te question poses itself, whether, if previously won fighting power
again and again crumbles in the contentment of a new prosperity, societ and
84 WORKERS' COUNCILS
the working class ever will be ripe for revolution. To answer this question the
development capitalism must be more closely examined.
The alternation of depression and prosperity in industry is not a simple
swinging to and fro. Every next swing was accompanied by an exansion. After
each breakdown in a crisis capitalism was able to come up again by expanding
its realm, its markets, its mass of production and product. As long as capital
ism is able to expand farther over the world and to increase its volume, it can
give employment to te mass of the population. As long as thus it can meet the
first demand of a system of production, to procure a living to its members, it
will be able to maintain itself, because no dire necessity compels the workers to
make an end of it. If it could go on prospering at its highest stage of extension,
revolution would be impossible as well as unnecessary; then there were only
the hope that a gradual increase of general culture could reform its defciencies.
Capitalism, however, is not a normal, in any case not a stable system of pro
ducton. European, and afterwards Amercan capitalism could increase pro
duction so continuously and rapidly, because it was surrounded by a wide
non-capitalist outer world of small-scale production, source of raw materials
and markets for the products. An artificial state of things, this separation
between an active capitalist core and a dependent passive surrounding. But the
core ever expanding. The essence of capitalist economy is growth, activity,
expansion; every standstill means collapse and crisis. The reason is that profts
accumulate continuously into new capital that seeks for invesunent to bring
new proft, thus the mass of capital and the mass of products increase ever
more rapidly and markets arc sought for feverishly. So capitalism is the great
revolutionizing power, subvertng old conditions everywhere and changing the
aspect of the earth. Ever new milons of people from their secluded, self-suf
cient home production that reproduced itself during long centuries without
notable change, are drawn into the whirl of world commerce. Capitalism itself,
industrial exploitation, is introduced there, and soon from customers they
became compettors. I the 1 9th century from Englad it progressed over
France, Germany, America, Japan, then in the 20t
h
it pervades the large Asiatic
territories. And first as competing individuals, then organized in national States
the capitalists take up the fght for markets, colonies, world power. So they are
driven on, revolutionizing ever wider domains.
But the earth is a globe, of lmited extent. The discovery of it, fite
accompanied the rise of capitalism four centuries ago, te realization of its fnite
sie now marks te end of capitalism. The population to be subjected is limit
ed. The hundreds of millions crowding the fertile plains of China and India
once drawn within the confnes of capitalism, its chief work is accomplished.
Then no large human masses remain as objects for subjection. Surely there
rcmain vast wild areas to be converted into realms of huan culture; but thcir
exploitation demands conscious collaboration of organized humanity; the
THE FIGHT 85
rough rapie methods of capitalism-the fertlity-destroying "rape of the
earth" - are of no avail there. Then its further expansion is checked. Not as a
sudden impediment, but gradually, as a growing diffculty of seling products
and investing capital. Then the pace of deveopment slackens, production slows
up, unemployment waxes a sneaking disease. Then the mutual fght of the cap
italists for world domination becomes fercer, with new world wars impending.
So there can hardly be any doubt that an unlimited expansion of capitalism
offering lasting life possibilities for the population, is excluded by its inner eco
nomic character. And that the time will come that the evil of depression, the
calamties of unemployment, the terrors of war grow ever stronger. Then the
working cass, if not yet revolting, must rise and fight. Then the workers must
coose between inertly succumbing ad actively fighting to win freedom. Then
the will have to take up their task of creating a better world out of the chaos
of decaying capitalism.
Will they fight? Human hstory is an endless series of fghts ; and
Clausewitz, the well-known German theorist on war, concluded from history
that man is in his inner nature a warlike being. But others, skeptics as well as
fery revolutionists, seeing the timidity, the submissiveness, the indifference of
the masses, often despair of the future. So we will have to look somewhat more
thoroughly into psychological forces and effects.
The dominant and deepest impulse in man as in every livng being is his
instinct of self-preservation. It compels him to defend his life with all his pow
ers. Fea and submissiveness also are the effect of ths instinct, when against
powerful masters they afford the best chances for preservation. Among the var
ious dispositions in man those which are most adapted to secure life in the
existing circumstances will prevail and develop. ! the daily life of capitalim it
is impractical, even dangerous for a worker to nurture hs feelings of inde
pendence and pride; the more he suppresses them and tacitly obeys, the less
diffculty he will encounter in fmding and keeping his job. The morals taught
by the mnisters of the rulig class enhance this disposition. And only few and
independent spirit defy these tendencies and are ready to encounter the
incumbent difculties .
When, however, in ties of social crisis and danger all this submissivity,
this virtuousness, is of no avail to secure life, when only fghting can help, then
it gives way to its contrary, to rebelliousness and courage. Then the bold set
the example and the timid discover wit
h surprise of what deeds of heroism they
are capable. Then self-reliance and hgh-spiritedness awae in tem and gow,
because on their growth depend their chances of lie and happiness. And at
once, by instinct and by experience, they know tat ony colaboration ad
union can give strength to their masses. When then they perceive what forces
are present in themselves and in
t
heir comrades , when they feel the happiness
of U awakening of proud self-respect and devoted brotherhood, when they
86 WORKERS' COUNCILS
anticipate a fture of victory, when they see rising before them the unage of the
new society tey help to build, then enthusiasm and ardor grow to irresistible
power. Then the working class begins to be ripe for revolution. Then capital
ism begins to be ripe for collapse.
Thus a new mankind is arising. Historians often wonder when they see the
rapid changes in the character of people in revolutionary times. It seems a mir
acle; but it sliply shows how many trats lay hidden in them, suppressed
because they were of no use. Now they break forth, perhaps only temporarily;
but if their utility is lasting, they develop into dominant qualities, transforming
ma, ftting hm for the new circumstances and demands.
The frst and paramount change is the growth of community-feeling. Its
first traces came up with capitalism itself, out of the common work and the
common fight. It is strengthened by the consciousness and the experience that,
single, the worker ipowerless against capital, and that only frm solidarity can
secre tolerable life conditions. When the fight grows larger and fercer, and
widens into a fight for dominance over labor and society, on which life and
fture depend, solidarity must grow into indissoluble all-pervading unit. The
new community-feeling, extending over the entire working class, suppresses the
old selfshness of the capitalist world.
It is not entirely new. In prlineva times, in the tribe with its slnple mostly
communistic forms of labor the community-feeling was dominant. Man was
completely bound up with the tribe; sepaate from it he was nothing; i all his
actions the individual felt as nothing compared with the welfare and the honor
of the community. Inextricably one as he was with the tribe primitive man had
not yet developed into a personality. When afterwards men separated and
becae independent small-scale producers, cOIllunity feeling waned and gave
way to individuaism, that makes the own person the centre of all interests and
all feelings. In the many centuries of middle class rising, of commodty pro
duction and capitalism, the individual personalit-feelig awoke and ever more
strongly grew into a new character. It is an acquisition that can no more be lost.
To be sure, also in this time man was a social being; society dominated, and in
critical moments, of revolution and war, the communit-feeling temporarily
imposed itself as an unwanted moral duty. But in ordinary life it lay suppressed
under the proud fancy of personal independence.
What is now developig in the working class is not a reverse change, as lit
tle as life conditions are a retur to bygone forms. It is the coalescence of indi
vidualism ad community-feeling into a higher unity. It is the conscious sub
ordiation of al personal forces in the service of te community. In their man
agement of the mighty productive forces the workers as their mightier masters
will develop their personality to a yet higher stage. The consciousness of its
intiate connection with society unites personality-feeling with the all-power-
THE FIGHT 87
ful social feeling into a new life-apprehension based on the reaization of socie
ty as the source of man's entire being.
Community-feeling fom the frst is the main force in the progress of revo
lution. This progress is the growth of the solidarity, of te mutual connection,
of the unity of the workers. Their organization, their new growing power, is a
new character acquired through fight, is a change in their inner being, is a new
morality. What military authors say about ordinay war, namely, that moral
forces therein play a dominant role, is even more true in the war of the classes.
Higher issues are at stake here. Wars always were contests of similar compet
ing powers, and the deepest structure of societ remained the same, whether
one won or the other. Contests of classes are fghts for new priciples, and the
victory of the rising cass transfers the society to a higher stage of development.
Hence, compared with real war, te moral forces are of a superior kind: vol
untary devoted collaboration instead of blind obedience, faith to ideals instead
of fdelity to commanders, love for the class companions, for humanity, instead
of patriotism. Their essential practice is not armed violence, not killing, but
standng steadfast, enduring, persevering, persuading, organizing; their aim is
not to smash the skulls but to open the brains. Surely, armed action wil also
play a role in the fight of the classes; the armed violence of the masters cannot
be overcome in Toistoian fashion by patent suffering. It must be beaten down
by force; but, by force animated by a deep moral conviction.
There have been wars that showed sometg of this character. Such wars
as were a kind of revolution or formed part of revolutions, in the fight for free
dom of the mddle class. Where rising burgherdom fought for dominance
against the home and the foreign feudal powers of monarchy and landowner
ship-as in Greece in antiquity, in Italy and Banders in the Middle Ages, in
Holland, England, France in later centuries-idealism and enthusiasm, arising
out of deep feelings of the class-necessities, called forth geat deeds of heroism
and self-sacrifice. These episodes, such as in modern times we meet with in the
French revolution, or i Italy's liberation by Garibaldi's followers, count
among the most beautiful pages in human history. Historians have glorifed
and poets have sung them as epochs of greatness, gone for ever. Because the
sequel of the liberation, te practice of the new society, the rule of capital, the
contrast of ipudent luxry and miserable poverty, the avarice and greed of
the business men, the job-huntng of offcials, all this pageant of low sefishness
fell as a chilling disappointent upon the next generation. In middle-class rev
olutions egotism and ambition in strong personalities play an important role; as
a rule the idealists are sacrificed and the base characters come to wealth and
power. In the bourgeoisie everybody must try to raise himself by treading
down the others. The virtes of community-feeling were a temporary necessi
ty only, to gan dominance for their class; once this aim attained, they give way
to the pitless competitive strife of all against all.
88 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Here we have the fundamental diference between the former middle-class
revolutions and the now approaching workers' revolution. For the workers the
stong communit-feeling arising out of their figt for power and freedom is at
the same time the basis of their new society. The virtues of solidarity and devo
ton, the impulse to common action in frm unity, generated in te social strug
gle, are the foundations of the new economic system of common labor, and will
be perpetuated and intensified by its practice. The fight shapes the new
mankind needed for the new labor system. The strong individnalism i man
now finds a better way of asserting itself than in te craving for personal power
over others. In applying its fnll force to the liberation of the class it will nnfold
itself more fully and more nobly than in pursuing personal aims.
Community-feeling and organization do not suffice to defeat capitalism. In
keeping the working class in submission, the spiritua dominance of te bour
geoisie has the same importance as has its physical power. Ignorance is an
impediment to freedom. Old thougts and taditions press heavily upon the
brains, even when tonched already by new ideas. Then the aims are seen at
their narrowest, well-sonnding catchwords are accepted without criticism, illu
sions about easy successes, half-hearted measures and false promses lead
astray. Tus the importance of intellectual power for the workers is shown.
Knowledge and insigt are an essential factor in the rise of te working class.
The workers' revolution is not the outcome of rough physical power; it is a
victory of the mind. It will be the product of the mass power of the workers,
certainly; but this power is spiritual power i the frst place. The workers wil
not win because they have strong fsts; fsts are easily directed by cunning
brains, even against teir own cause. Neither w they win because they arc the
majorit; ignorant and unorganized majorites regularly were kept down, pow
erless, by well-instructed organized minorities. Mijority now will win only
because strong moral and intellectual forces cause it to rise above the power of
their masters. Revolutions in history could succeed becanse new spiritual
forces had been awakened in the masses.
Brute stupid physical force can do nothing but destroy. Revolutions, how
ever, are the constructive epochs in the evolution of manind. And more than
any former the revolution that is t render the workers master of the world
demands the highest moral and intellectual quaities.
Can the workers respond to these demands? How can they acquire the
knowledge needed? Not from the schools, where the children are imbibed wit
al the false ideas about society which te rulig class wishes them to have. Not
from the papers, owned and edited by the capitalists, or by groups striving for
leadership. Not from the pulpit tat always preaches servility and where John
Balls are extremely rare.
Not from the radio, where, unike the public discussions in former times,
for the citizens a powerful means of training their minds on public affairs-
THE FIGHT 89
one-sided allocations tend to stultify the passive listeners, and by their
never-easing obtrusive noise alow of no reposed thinking. Not from the flm
that-unlike the theatre, in early days the rising burgher class a means of
istruction and sometimes even of
f
ght-appeals only to visual impression,
never to thinking or intelligence. They all are powerful instruments of the rul
ing class to keep the working cass i spiritual bondage. With instinctive cun
ning and conscious deliberation they are all used for the purpose. And the
workng masses unsuspectingly submit to their influence. They let themselves
be fooled by artful words and outside appearances. Even tose who know of
class and fght leave the affairs to leaders and statesmen, and applaud them
when they speak dear old words of tradition. The masses spend teir free tme
in pursuing puerile pleasures unaware of the great social problems on which
their and their children's existence depends. It seems an insolvable problem,
how a workers' revolution is ever to come and to succeed, when by te saga
ciousness of te rulers and te indifference of the ruled its spiritual conditons
remain lacking.
But the forces of capitalism are working in te depths of society, stirring old
conditions and pushing people forward even when unwilling. Their inciting
effects are suppressed as long as possible, to save te old possibilities of going
on living; stored in the subconscious they only intensify te inner strains. Till
at last, in crisis, at the highest pitch of necessity they snap and give way in
action, in revolt. The action is not the result of deliberate intention; it comes as
a spontaneous deed, irresistingly. In such spontaneous action man reveals to
himself of what he is capable, a surprise to himself. And because the action is
always collective acton, it reveas to each that the forces dimly felt in himself,
are present in all. Confidence and courage are raised by the discovery of the
strong class forces of common will, and tey stir and carry away ever wider
masses.
Actions break out spontaneously, enforced by capitalism upon the urr .. . viling
workers. They are not so much te result as the starting poit of their spiritu
al development. Once the fght is taken up te workers must go on in attack
and defense; they must exert all their forces to the utmost. Now falls away the
indifference that was only a form of resistance to demands they felt themselves
unequal to respond to. Now a time of intense mental exerton sets in. Standing
over against the mighty forces of capitalism tey see that only by te utmost
efforts, by developing all their powers can they hope to win. What in every
fght appears in its frst traces now broadly unfolds; al te forces hidden in the
masses are roused and set in motion. Tis is te creative work of revolution.
Now the necessit of frm unity is hammered into their consciousness, now the
necessity of knowledge is felt at every moment. Every kind of ignorance, every
illusion about te character and force of the foe, every weakness in resisting his
tricks, ever incapacity of refuting his arguments and calumnies, is revenged in
90 WORKERS' COUNCILS
failure ad defeat. Active desire, by strong impulses fom within, now incites
the workers to use their brains. Te new hopes, the new visions of the future
inspie the mind, making it a living active power, that shuns no pains to seek
for truth, to acquire knowledge.
Where will the workers find the knowledge they need'? The sources are
abundant; a extenive scientific literature of books and pamphlets, explaining
the basic facts and theories of society and labor already exists and more will
follow, But they exibit the greatest diversity of opinon as to what is to be
done; and the workers themselves have t o choose and t o distinguish what is
true and right. They have to use their own brains in hard thinking and intent
discussion. For they face new problems, ever again, to which the old books c
give no solution. These can supply only general knowledge about socety and
capital, they present principles and theories, comprehending former experi
ence. Th.e application in ever new situations is our own task.
The insight needed ca not be obtained as instruction of an ignorant mass
by learned teachers, possessors of science, a the pouring of knowledge into
passive pupils. It can only be acquired by self-education, by the strenuous
self-activity that strains the brain in fell desire to understand the world. It
would be very easy for the working class if it had only to accept established
truth fom those who know it. But the truth they need does not exist anywhere
in the world outside them; they must build it up within temselves. Also what
is given here does not pretend to be established fmal truth to be leamed by
heart. It is a system of ideas won by attentive experience of society and the
workers' movement, formulated to induce others to think over and to discuss
the problems of work and its organization. There are hundreds of thinkers to
open new viewpoints, there are thousands of intelligent workers who, once
they give their attenton to them, are able, from their intimate knowledge, to
conceive better and in more detail the organization of their fght and the organ
ization of their work. What is said here may be the spark that kindles te fire
i their minds.
There are groups and parties pretending to be in the exclusive possession
of truth, who try to win the workers by thei propaganda under the exclusion
of all other opinions. By moral and, where they have the power, also by phys
icl constraint, they try to impose their views upon the masses. It must be clear
tat one-sided teaching of one system of doctrines can only serve, ad indeed
should serve, to breed obedient followers, hence to uphold old or prepare new
dominaton. Self-liberation of the working masses implies self-tinking,
self-knowing, recognizing truth and error by their own mental exertion.
Exertng the brains is much more diffcult and fatiguing than exerting the mus
ces ; but it must be done, because the brains gover the muscles; if not their
own, ten foreign brains.
THE FIGHT 9 1
So unlimited freedom of discussion, of expressing opinions is te breathing
air of the workers' fight. It is more tha a century ago that against a despotic
governent, Shelley, England's greatest poet of the 1 9
t
century, "the friend of
the friendless poor," vindicated for everybody the right of free expression of his
opinion. "A man has the right to unrestricted liberty of discussion." "A man has
not only the right to exress hs thoughts, but it is his duty to do so" . . . "nor
can any acts of legislature destroy that right." Shelley proceeded from philoso
phy procaiming the natural rights of man. For us it is owing to its necessity for
the liberation of the working class that freedom of speech and press is pro
claimed. To restrict the freedom of discussion is to prevent the workers from
acquiring the knowledge they need. Every old despotism, every modern dicta
torship began by persecuting or forbidding freedom of press; every restiction
of this feedom is the frst step to bring the workers under the domination of
same kind of rulers. Must not, then, the masses be protected against the false
hoods, the misrepresentations, the beguiling propaganda of their enemies? As
little as in education careful with olding of evl infuences can develop the fac
ulty to resist and vanquish them, as litte can the working class be educated to
freedom by spiritual guardianship. Where the enemies present themselves in
the guise of friends, and in the diversity of opiions every party is inclined to
consider the others as a danger for the class, who shal decide? The workers,
certainly; they must fght their way in this realm also. But the workers of to-day
migt in honest conviction condemn as obnoxious opinions that afterwards
prove to be the basis of new progress. Only by standing open to all ideas that
the rise of a new world generates in the minds of man, by testing and selecting,
by judging and applying them with its own mental capacities, can the working
class gain the spiritual superiority needed to suppress the power of capitalism
and erect the ne society.
Every revolution in history was an epoch of the most fervent spiritual activ
ity. By hundreds and thousands the political pamphlets and papers appeared as
the agents of intense self-education of the masses. the comng proletarian
revoluton it will not be otherwise. It is an illusion that, once awakened from
submissiveness te masses will be directed by one common clear insight and go
thei way without hesitation in unanimity of opiion. Hstory shows that in
such awakening an abundance of new thoughts in greatest diversity sprouts in
man, expressions all of the new world, as a roaming search of mankind in the
newly opened land of possibilities, as a blooming richness of spirital life. Only
in the mutual stuggle of all these ideas will crystallize the guiding principles
that ae essential for the new tasks. The first great successes, result of sponta
neous united action, by destroying previous shackles, do no more than fling
open the prison gates; the workers, by their own exertion, must then fmd the
new orientation towards further progress.
92 WORKERS' COUNCILS
This means that those great times will be full of the noise of party strfe.
Those who have the sae ideas for groups to discuss them for their own and
to propagate them for their comrades' enlightenment. Such groups of common
opiion may be called parties, though their character will be entirely different
from the political parties of the previous world. Under parliaentarism these
parties were the organs of diferent and opposite class interests. In the working
class movement they were organizations taking the lead of the class, acting as
its spokesmen and representatives and aspiring at guidance and dominance.
Now their function will be spiritual fght only. The working class for its practi
ca action has no use for them; it has created its new organs for acton, the
councls. In the shop organization, the council organzation, it is the entirety of
the workers itself tat acts, that has to decide what must be done. In the shop
assemblies and in the councils te different and opposite opinions are exposed
and defended, and out of the contest the decision and the unanimous action
has to proceed. Unity of purpose can only be reached by spiritual contest
between the dissenting views. The important function of the parties, then, is to
organize opinion, by their mutual discussion to bring the new growing ideas
into concse forms, to clarfy the, to exhibit the argument in a comprehensi
ble form, and by their propaganda to bring them to the notice of all. Only in
this way the workers in their assemblies and councils can judge their truth,
their merits, their practicability in each situation, and take te decision in clear
understanding. Thus the spiritual forces of new ideas, sprouting wildly in all
the heads, are organized and shaped so as to be usable instruments of the class.
This is the great task of party strife in the workers' fght for freedom, far nobler
than the endeavor of the old parties to win dominance for themselves.
The tansition of supremacy from one class to another, whieh as in all for
mer revolutions is the essence of the workers' revoluton, does not depend on
the haphazard chances of accidenta events. Though its details, its ups and
downs depend on the chance of various conditions and happenings that we
cannot foresee, viewed at large there is a defnite progressive course, whch
may be an object of consideration in advance. It is the increase of social power
of the rising class, the loss of social power of the decinng class. The rapid vis
ible changes in power form the essential character of socal revolutions . So we
have to consider somewhat more closely the elements, the factors constituting
the power of each of the contending classes.
The power of the capitalist class in the first place consists in the possession
of capital. It is master of all the factories, the machines, the mines, master of
the entire productive apparatus of society; so mankind depends on that cass to
work and to live. With its money-power it call buy not only servants for per
sonal attendance; when threatened it can buy in unliited number sturdy
young men to defend its domination, it can organize them into well-armed
fghting groups and give them a social standing. It can buy, by assuring them;
J
THE FIGHT 93
honorable places and good salaries, artists, writers and intellectals, not only
to amuse and to serve the masters, but also to praise them and glorify their
rule, and by cunning and learing to defend their domination against criticism.
Yet the spiritual power of the capitalist class has deeer roots thn the intel
lect it can buy. The middle class, out of which the capitalists rOse as its upper
layer, always was an enlightened class, self-reliant through its broad world con
ception, basing itself, its work, its production system, upon culture and knowl
edge. Its principles of personal ownership ad responsibility, of self-help and
individual energy pervade the entie society. These ideas the workers have
brought with them, fom their origin out of impoverished middle-class layers ;
and all te spiritual and physical means available are set to work to preserve
and intensify the middle-class ideas in the masses. Thus the domination of the
capitalist class is frmly rooted in the thinking and feeling of the dominated
majority itself.
The strongest power factor of the capitalist class, however, is its political
organization, State-power. Only by firm organization can a minority rule over
a majority. The unity and contnuity of plan and will in the central govern
ment, the discipline of the bureaucracy of offcals pervading society as the
nervous system pervades the body, and animated and directed by one common
spirit, the disposal, moreover, when necessary, over an armed force, assure its
unquestoned dominance over the population. Just as the strength of the
fortress consolidates the physical forces of the garrison into an indomitable
power over the country, so State power consolidates the physical and spiritual
forces of the ruling class into unassaable strength. The respect paid to the
authorites by the citizens, by the feeling of necessity, by custom and education,
regularly assure the smooth running of the apparatus. And should discontent
mae people rebellious, what can they do, unared and unorganized, against
the frmly organized and disciplined armed forces of the Government? With
the development of capitalism, when te power from a numerous middle class
ever more concentrated i a smaller number of big capitalists, the State also
concentrated its power and through its increasing functions took ever more
hold of society.
What has the working class to oppose to these formidable factors of power?
Ever more the working class constitutes the majority, in the most advanced
countries te large majority of the population, concentrated here in large and
giant industrial enterprises. Not legally but actualy it has the machines, the
productive apparatus of society in its hands. The capitalists are owners and
masters, surey; but they can do no more than command. If the working class
disregards their commands they cannot run the machines. The workers can.
The workers are the direct actual masters of the machines ; however deter
mined, by obedience or by self-will, they can run them and stop them. Theirs
is the most important economic fnction; their labor bears society.
94 WORKERS' COUNCILS
This economica power is a sleeping power as long as the workers are cap
tivated in middle-class thinking. It grows into actual power by cass conscious
ness. By the practice of life and labor they discover that they are a special class,
exploited by capital, that they have to fight to free themselves from exploita
tion. Their fght compels them to understand the structure of the economc sys
tem, to acquire knowledge of society. Notwithstanding all propaganda to the
contrary this new knowledge dispels the inherited middle-class ideas in their
heads, because it is based on the truth of daily experienced reality, whereas the
old ideas express the past realities of a bygone world.
Economic and spiritual power are made an active power through organiza
tion. It binds all the different wills to unity of purpose ad combines the single
forces into a mighty unity of acton. Its outer forms may differ and change as
to circumstances, its essence is its new moral character, te solidarity, the
strong community-feeling, the devotion and spirit of sacrifce, the self-inlposed
discipline. Organization is the life principle of the working class, the condition
of liberation. A minority rling by its s tong organization can be vanquished
only, and certainly will be vanquished, by organization of the majority.
Thus the elements constituting the power of the contending classes stand
over against one another. Those of the bourgeoisie stand great and mighty, as
existing and dominating forces, whereas those of the working class must devel
op, fom small beginnings, as new life growing up. Number and economic
importace grow automatically by capitalism; but the other factors, insight and
organization, depend on the efforts of the workers themselves. Because they
are the conditions of efcient fght they are the results of fght ; every setback
strains nerves and brains to repair it, ever success swells the hearts into new
zeaous confdence. The awakening of class-consciousness, the growing knowl
edge of society and its development, means the liberation from spiritual
bondage, te awakening from dulness to spiritua force, the ascension of the
masses to tre humanity. Their unitg for a common fght, fundamentally,
means already socia liberation; the workers, bound into the servitude of capi
tal resume their liberty of action. It is the awakening from submissiveness to
independence, collectively, in organized union challenging the masters.
Progress of the working class means progress in these factors of power. What
can be won in iprovement of working and living conditions depends on the
power the workers have acquired; when, either by insuffciency of their actions,
by lack of insight or effort, or by inevitable social changes their power, com
pared with the capitalist power, decnes, it will be felt in their working condi
tions. Here is the crteron for every form of action, for tactics and methods of
fight, for forms of organzation: Do tey enhance the power of the workers?
For the present, but, still more essential, for the future, for the supreme goal of
annihilating capitalism? I the past trade unionism has given shape to the feel
ings of solidarity and unity, and strengthened their fghting power by effcient
THE FIGHT 95
organization. When, however, in later times it had to suppress the fghting spir
it, and it put up the demand of discipline towards leaders against the ipulse
of class solidarity the growth of power was impeded. Socialist party work in the
past highly contributed to raise the insight and the political iterest of the
masses; when, however, it tried to restrict their activity wthin the confes of
parliamentarism and the illusions of political democracy it became a source of
weakness.
Out of thcse temporary weaknesses the working class has to lift its power
in the actions of the coming tmes. Though we must expect an epoch of crisis
and fght this may be alternated with more quiet times of relapse or consolida
ton. Te traditions and illusions may act temporarily as weakening influences.
But then also making them times of preparation, the new ideas of self-rule and
council organization by steady propaganda may take a broader hold on the
workers. Then, just as now, there is a task for every worker once he is seized
by the vision of freedom for his class, to propagate these thoughts among his
comrades, to rouse them from indiference, to open their eyes. Such propagan
da is essential for the fture. Practical reaization of an idea is not possible as
long as it has not penetrated the mids of the msses at large.
Fight, however, is always the fresh source of power in a rising class. We can
not foresee now what forms this fight of the workers for their feedom will
assume. At times ad places it may take the harsh form of cv war, so com
mon in former revolutions when it had to give the decisions. There heavy odds
may seem to be against the workers, since Government and the capitalsts, by
money ad authority, can raise armed forces in unlimited numbers. Indeed the
strengt of the working class is not situated here, in the bloody contest of mas
sacring ad killing. Teir real strength rests in the domain of labor, in their pro
ductive work, and in their superiorty in mind and character. Nevertheless,
even in ared contest capitalist superiority is not unquestioned. The produc
tion of arms is in the hands of the workers; the ared bands depend on their
labor. If restricted in number, such ban.ds, when the entire working class, unit
ed and unafraid, stands against them, W be powerless, overwhelmed by sheer
numbers. And if numerous, these bands consist of recruited workers too, accs
sible to the call of class solidarity.
The working class has to fnd out and to develop the forms of fght adapt
ed to its needs. Fight meas that it goes its own way according to its free choice,
directed by its class interests, independent of, hence opposed to the former mas
ters. I fight its creative faculties assert themselves in fnding ways and means.
Just as in the past it devised and practiced spontaneously its forms of action:
the strike, the ballot, the street demonstration, the mass meeting, te leaflet
propaganda, te politcal strie, so it will do in future. Whatever te forms may
be, character, purose and effect will be the same for all: to raise te own ele
ments of power, to weaken and dissolve the power of the foe. So far as experi-
96 WORKERS' COUNCILS
ence goes mass political strikes have the strongest effects; and in fture they
may be stll more powerful. In these strikes, born out of acute crises and strong
strains, the impulses are too ferce, the issues go too deep to be directed by
umons or parties, committees or boards of officials. They bear the character of
diect actions of the masses. The workers do not go into strike individually, but
shopwise, as personnel collectively decidig their action. Immediately strike
committees are instaled, where delegates of all the enterprises meet, assuming
already the character of workers' councls. They have to bring unity in action,
unity also, as much as possible, in ideas and methods , by continual interaction
between the fghting ilpulses of the shop-assemblies and the dscussions in the
council meetings. Thus the workers create their own organs opposing the
organs of the ruling class.
Such a political strike is a kind of rebellion, though in legal form, against
the Government, by paralyzing production and trafc trying to exert such a
pressure upon the goverment that it yields to the demands of the workers.
Goverment, from its side, by means of political measures, by prohibitig meet
ings, by suspending the freedom of press, by callng up armed forces, hence by
transforming its legal authority into arbitrary though actual power, tries to
break the determination of the strikers. It is assisted by the ruling class itself,
that by its press monopoly dictates public opinion and carries on a strong prop
aganda of calumny to isolate and discourage the strikers. It supplies volunteers
not only for somehow maitaning traffc and services, but also for armed
bands to terrorize the workers and to try to convert the strie into a for of
civil war, more congenial to the bourgeoisie. Because a strike cannot last indef
initely, one of the parties, with the lesser inner solidity, must give way.
Mass actions and universal strikes are the struggle of two classes, of two
organizations, each by its own solidity trying to cub and fnally to break the
other. This cannot be decided in one action; it demands a series of struggles
that constitute an epoch of socal revolution. For each of the contending class
es disposes of deeper sources of power that allow it to restore itself after defeat.
TIlOugh the workers at a time may be defeated and discouraged, their organi
zations destroyed, their rights abolished, yet the stirring forces of capitalism,
their own inner forces, and the indestructible will to live, once more puts them
on their feet. Neither can capitalism be destroyed at one stroke; when its
fortress, State Power, is shattered, demolished, the class itself still disposes of a
deal of its physical and spiritual power. History has instances how gov
ennets entrely disabled and prostrate by war and revolution, were regener
ated by the economic power, the mOIley, the intellectual capacity, the patient
skill, the class-consciousness-in the form of ardent national feeling-of the
bourgeoisie. But finally the class that forms the majorit of the people, tat sup
ports societ by its labor, that has the direct disposal over the productive appa
ratus, must win. In such a way that the firm organzation of the majority class
THE FIGHT 97
dissolves and crumbles State power, the strongest organization of the capitalist
class.
Where the action of the workers is so powerful that the very organs of
Goverrunent are paralyzed the councils have to fulfll political functions . Now
the workers have t provide for public order and securit, they have to take
care that social life can proceed, and in this the councils are their organs. What
is decided in the councils the workers perform. So the councils grow into
organs of social revolution; and with the progress of revolution their tasks
become ever more all-embracing. At the same time that the classes ae strug
gling for supremacy, each by the solidity of its organization tying to brea that
of the other class, society must go on to live. Toug in the tension of critical
moments it can live on the stores of provisions, production cannot stop for a
long time. This is why the workers, if their iImer forces of organization fall
short, are compelled by hunger to return under the old yoke. Tis is why, if
strong enough, if they have defied, repelled, shattered State Power, if they have
repulsed its violence, if they are master in the shops, they immediately must
take care of the production. Mastery i the shops means at the same time
organization of production. Te organizaton for fght, the councils, is at the
same time organization for reconstruction.
Of the Jews in olden times building the wals of Jerusalem it is said tat they
fought sword in one, trowel in the other hand. Here, differently, sword and
trowel are one. Establishing the organization of production is the strongest,
nay, the only lasting weapon to destroy capitalism. Wherever the workers have
fought their way into te shops and taken possession of the machines, they
inll ediately start organizing the work. Where capitalist command has disap
peared from the shop, disregarded and powerless, te workers build up pro
duction on the new basis. In their practcal action they establish new right and
new Law. They cannot wait til everywhere te fight is over; the new order has
to grow from below, from the shops, work and fight at the same time.
Ten at the same time the organs of capitalsm and Governent decline
into the role of unessential foreign and superfluous things. They may still be
powerful to harm, but they have lost the authority of useful and necessary insti
tutions. Now the roles , more and more manifestly to everybody, are reverted.
Now the working class, with its organs, the councils, is the power of order; life
and prosperity of the entire people rests on its labor, its organization. Te
measures and regulations decided in the councils, executed and followed by the
working masses, are acknowledged and respected as legitimate authority. On
the other hand the old governmental bodies dwindle to outside forces tat
merely try to prevent the stabilization of the new order. The armed bands of
the bourgeoisie, even when still powerful, ever more the character of unlaw
fl disturbers, of obnoxious destroyers in the rising world of labor. As agents
of disorder they will be subdued and dissolved.
98 WORKERS' COUNCILS
'Tis is, in so far as we now can foresee, the way by which State Power will
disappear, together with the disappearance of capitalism itself. In past tes dif
ferent ideas about future social revolution prevaied.
First the working class had to conquer the political power, by the ballot win
ning a majority in Parliament, helped eventually by armed contests or political
strikes. Then the new Government consisting of te spokesmen, leaders, and
politicians, by its acts, by new Law, had to epropriate the capitalist class and
to organize production. So the workers themselves had only to do half the
work, the less essential part; the real work, the reconstruction of society, the
organizing of labor, had to be done by the socialist politcians and officials.
This conception reflects the weakness of the workig class at that time; poor
and miserable, without economic power, it had to be led into the promised land
of abundance by others, by able leaders, by a bengnant Government. And
then, of course, to remain subjects; for freedom cannot be given, it can only be
conquered. This easy illusion has been dispelled by the growth of capitalist
power. 111e workers now have to realize that only by raising their own power
to the highest height can tey hope to win liberty; that political dominance,
mastery over society must be based upon economic power, mastery over labor.
The conquest of political power by the workers, the abolition of capitalism,
the establishment of new Law, the appropriation of the enterprises, the recon
struction of society, the building of a new system of production are not differ
ent consecutive occurrences. They are contemporary, concurrent in a process
of social events and transformations. Or, more precisely, they are identical.
They are the different sides, indicated with different names, of one great social
revolution: the orgaization of labor by working humanity.
III. The Foe
1. THE ENGLISH BOURGEOISIE
Knowledge of the foe, knowledge of his resources, of his forces and his
weaknesses, is the frst demand in every fight. The frst requisite to protect us,
when seeing his superior powers, against discouragement; after partial success,
against ilusions. Hence it is necessary to consider how, with the evolution of
socety, the present ruling class has developed.
This development was different in different countries. The workers of each
country are exploited and dominated by their own bourgeoisie [the property
owning and capitaist class 1 ; it is the foe they have to deal with. So it might
seem sufcient t study its chaacter only. But at present we see that the capi
talist casses of all countries and al continents grow together into one world
class, albeit in the form of two fercely fighting coalitions. So the workers c
not restrict teir attention to their direct masters. Already in te past, when tak
ing up their fight, they themselves immediately felt an international brother
hood. Now the capitalist classes of the entire world are their opponents, and so
they must know and understand them alL
Old capitalism is best seen in England. There for the first time it came to
power; from there it spread over the world. There it developed most of the
institutions and the principles imitated and followed afterwards in other coun
tries. Yet it shows a special character different from the others.
The English revolution, of the time of Pym and Cromwell, was not a con
quest of power by the capitalist class, won from a previously ruling feudal class
of landowners . Just as earier in Holland, it was the repulse of a kind to estab
lish absolute monarchical power. In other counties, by means of their standing
armies and of the oficials and judges appointed by them and obeying them, the
kings subdued the independent nobility as well as the privleged town govern
ments. Making use of the money power of rising capitalism, they could estab
lish strong central governments and turn the tumultuous nobles into obedient
courtiers and mitary ofcers, securing them their feudal rights and propertes,
and at the same time protectng commerce and industry, the source of the taxes
from the business people. Teir power was based on a kind of equilibrium
99
1 00 WORKERS' COUNCILS
between the rising power of capital and the declining power of land ownership.
In England, however, in consequence of te local self-rule of the counties , of
the traditional coalition of landowners and town-citizens in the House of
Commons, and of the lack of a standing army, the Stuart kings failed in their
striving for absolute monarchy. Though it broke out in defense of te medieval
rigts and privileges, the revolutionary fight, convulsig the depth of society,
to a great extent modernized institutions. It made Parliament, especially the
House of Conunons, the ruling power of te land.
The middle class, thus becoming the ruling class in England, consisted
ehiefly of the numerous cass of squires, independent landowners, the gentry,
forming the lower nobility; they were associated wit the infuential merchants
of London, and with the wealthy citizens ruling in the smaller towns. By means
of local self-government, embodied in their ofce of Justices of the Peace, they
dominated te countryside. The House of Cornons was their organ, by
means of which tey detennned the home and foreign policy of the country.
Government itself tey left mostly to the nobility ad the Iings, who were now
their instruments and steadily controlled by Parliament. Because England as an
island was protected by her feet, there was hardly any army; the ruling class
having learned to hate and fear it as an instument of governmental despotism,
jealously kept it insignificant. Neither was there a poliee to restrain personal lib
erty.
Thus te govermnent had no means to keep down by force new rising pow
ers. In other countries this keeping down of course could only be temporary,
till at last a violent revolution broke out and swept away the entire old system
of domination. In England, on the contrary, when after long resistance te rul
ing class in public opiion and social action felt the irresistible force of a rising
class, it had no choice but to yield. Thus by necessity originated the policy
grown into an English tradition, of resisting rising forces as long as it is possi
ble, in the end to yield before the breaking point is reached. The goveruing
class then retained its power by sharing it with the new class, accepting its lead
ing fgures into its midst, often by knighting them. The old forms remained,
even though the contents changed. No revolution, as a cleansing thunderstorm,
did away with the old traditions and the old wigs, with tlle meaningless cere
monials and te antquated forms of tinking. Respectflly the English people
look up to the aristocratic families ruling with suc sensible poliey.
Conservatism permeates all forms of social life. Not te contents; by the unlin
ited personal liberty labor and life develop freely according to practical needs.
The idustrial revolution broke into the careless life of old England of the
18
t
century, an irresistible new development and a destructive catastrophe.
Factories were built, provided with the newly invented spilming machines, driv
en by water, and then by steam power, soon to be followed by weaving, and
then by machine factories. Te new class of factory owners aose and grew rich
THE FOE 101
by the exloitation of the new class of miserable workers, formed out of the
impovershed artisans beaten down by the superiorit of te new machines.
Under the indifference of the old authorities that were entirely inactive ad
incapable of coping wit the new situation, industial capitaism grew up in a
chaos of free competition, of the most horrible working conditions, of utter
neglect of te simplest exigences of health and careless waste of the nation' s
vigor.
A ferce struggle ensued, in a complicated triangular way. Repeatedly the
workers broke out into revolts against the miserable working conditions com
bined with cruel oppression from the old political institutons, against the
employers, as well as against te govering land owner class. And at te same
time the new industrial bourgeoisie growing in weath and social infuence, vin
dicating its share in government, organized itself ever more strongly. Under
this double pressure the landowers were forced to yield; in the Reform Act of
1832 modernizing te constituences, the capitalist cass of factory owners got
their representation in Parliament. And in 1846, by a special repeal of the com
laws that raised the price of wheat by import duties, they succeeded in throw
ing off the heavy tribute to the landowners. Thus the way was free for pro
ducing and accumulating capital in unlimited quantty. The working class,
however, stormed in vai against the ramparts of the State stronghold, now for
tifed by an additional garrison of defenders. The rulers had, it u true, no
forces to suppress the working class movement by violence. Capitalist society
resisted by its inner toughness, by its deep-seated solidity, instinctively felt by
the entire middle cas to be a rising form of production destined to conquer
the world. It yielded by steps, by granting suc reforms as were unavoidable;
so in ever new fghts the workers obtained the rigt of association, te ten hour
day, and fmally, gradually, the franchise.
The English bourgeoisie was undisputed master; its Parliament was the
sovereigu power of the realm. The frst and strongest industrial and capitalist
class of the world, it dominated world commerce and world markets. During
the ente 19t
h
century it was master on the seven seas and powerfl in all con
tinents. Riches flowing fom all sides, from industry, from commerce, fom the
colonies, accumulated in its hands. The other classes shared in its enormous
profits. In the first place te landowner cass, the ruling nobility, from olden
times was strongly affliated to business and commercal life. It was not feudal
at all, not of mediaeval descent-the feudal class had exterminated itself in civil
wars-but of middle class origin, owing its elevation to wealth, services, to mere
favor, the more jealous therefore of the outer appearances and ceremonies of
prerogative. Now in the new system of unimited profit-production it coalesced
with the industrial capitalists into one powerful ruling and exploiting class.
Where an aristocracy finds its place in capitalist society, its special pursuit,
besides government ofices, is the profession of arms. So the standing of the
1 02 WORKERS' COUNCILS
landowner class is shown by the power of militarism. In Prussian Germany the
supremacy of the landed nobilit was expressed in the ascendancy of military
above civil forms. There, eve under modern capitalism, civilians were
despised as second rate, and the highest ambition for a wealthy business man
or a deserving scientist was to don the uniform of reserve oficer, "the king's
coat." In England, with its small and chiefly colonial army, the same process
took place in the navy. For continental wars there was an army recruited from
the lowest classes, called "scum of the eart" by their honored chief, the Duke
of Wellington; fighting in the stff linear tactics of hirelings at a time when in
France and Germany enthusiastic popular armies practiced te free skirmish
ing method of fighting; only as late as 1 873 flogging of the soldiers was abol
ished. Military office was not esteemed, and the spirit of militarism wa entire
ly absent. Civilian life was supreme above military forms ; when the profes
sional daily duties were absolved, the English officer put on cvilian dress, to
be simply a gentleman-te word expressing a civilian code of honor not
known in other countries. Thus the absence of continental militarism is an indi
cation of how completely the landowning aristocracy in England is absorbed
into the entirety of the capitalist class.
The working class aso got its part. Not all of course; only its most influ
entia groups, "skilled labor," tat by its trade unions was able to display fght
ing power. From its profits secured by world monopoly the capitalist class could
grant tem a share sufficient to turn them into contented adherents of the exist
ing order. They separated fom the miserable unskilled masses that filled the
slums. Every thought that another system of prduction might be possible or
necessary, disappeared. So capitalism was entirely secure; the solidity of a sys
tem of exploitaton depends on the lack of capacity of the exploited cass to dis
cern its exploitation. Among te workers the middle class doctrine prevaled
tat everybody is master of his own fate. Tey took over all middle class ideas
and taditions, even the reverence paid to the upper classes and their cere
momes.
During the long years of exploitation and gradual development capita in
private hands could increase along with the need for larger installations,
brought about by the progress of technics. There was no need for organization
of capital; baking operations found sufcient scope in interchanging and lend
ing money for facilitating intercourse. There was also little organization of the
industrial enterprises into large combines; the employers, themselves disposing
of sufficient capital, remained independent owners of their shops. Hence a wil
ful individualism was te saient character of the Engish bourgeoisie. Hence
also little concentration in the realm of production; numerous independent
small shops kept up alongside of the lage factories. Thus in the coal industry
the demands of securit and health put up by the workers and by the Sankey
THE FOE 1 03
Commission, ever again were frustrated by the small mine owners not having
the means to moderize their backward installations.
Entire freedom in social lie allows every new idea to be tried out and to be
put into practice, every impulse of will ; whereas the lack of this liberty causes
the impeded wishes and inapplicable ideas to develop into consistent theoreti
cal systems. So, contrasted to the broadly worked-out theoretical character of
science and activity on the continent, the English became men of practical
deeds. For every problem or dificulty a immediate practical solution was
sougt without regard to further consequences, in technics as well as in poli
tics. Science played a small part in the progress of technics. This is also a cause
of much backwardness in English business life.
In this way England in te 19t
h
century became the model country of old
capitalism with its free competition, careless ad improvident, full of hard ego
ism against the weak, persons as well as peoples, full of obsolete institutions
and senseless old forms, fll of downtrodden misery viewed with indifference
alongside the display of luxury. Already such books as William Booth's
"Darkest England" and Robert Blatchford's "Dismal England" indicate a state
of dirty neglect not tolerated in other civilized countries , entirely left to te
individual initiative of single philanthrophists. In the later years only, and i
the new century, social reforms began to play a noticeable role; and, especially
after the first world war, a stronger concentration of capital set in.
In this way at the same time, however, the English bourgeoisie developed
that master character that was the envy of all capitalists of other countries, who
in vain tried to imitate it. For many centuries it ha been living in a state of
complete freedom and unchallenged power. Trough its monopoly of industry
and commerce in the 19t
h
century it felt itself master of the world, the only
cosmopolitans, at home i every continent and on every ocean. It never
learned to fear; never was it faced by a superior foe attacking from outside or
a revolution threatening from within, suggesting the idea of mortality. With
unlimited self-assurance it confonts every neW difculty, sure to overcome it,
by force if it can, by concessions if it must. foreign politics, in the founding
and defense of its world power, the English ruling class showed the capacity of
ever again adapting itself to new situations, of defing its most solemn procla
mations of yesterday by te opposite practice of tomorrow, of "shaking hands
wit murderers" where it was necessary, and, in seeming generosity, of making
allies of vanquished opponents of whom it feels that they cannot be perma
nently kept down. All this not by a wide knowledge and foresight; on the con
trary, it is a class rather igorant, narrow-minded and conservative-hence
much blundering before fnally the new arrangement is found-but it has the
self-sure instinct of power. The same instinctive sagacity to solve its problems
by practical conduct was used in home politics to keep the working class in
spiritual and actual dependence; here with equal success.
104 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Modern development, certanly, caused the English bourgeoisie to lose a
good deal of its exceptional position in the world; but ever again it knew how
to resign and to adapt itself to te rise of other equal powes. Already in the lat
ter part of the 19t
h
century German industry made its appearance as a serious
competitor in the world market, whilst afterwards Japan came to oust the prod
ucts of British industry. Britain's financial supremacy was lost to America in the
first world war. But its main character, acquired in an unchallenged rule of so
many centuries was unshaken. m home politics also it knew how to adapt its
rule to the demands of the working cass, by introducing a system of social
reforms and provisions. The English bourgeoisie had te good luck that the
formation of the Labor Party, transferring all workers' votes from Liberal
politicians to Labor leaders entirely filled with middle class ideas, rendered the
working class an active agent in consolidating capitalist rle-though it had to
pay for it te price of a modernizing refonn of some of the worst abominations
of capitaism. In leaders of the Labor Party it found able Cabinet Ministers,
entirely devoted to the maintenance of the capitalist system, therein represent
ing, when these temporarily had to prevail, the pacifist tendencies.
Ths caracter of the English bourgeoisie is essential in determining the
forms of the prospective rise of te working class. What must be overcome, the
power of the bourgeoisie, weakness of the workers, is not physical force but
spiritual dependence. Doubtless physical force may play its role, too, at critical
moments; English capitalism, in defense of its existence, will be able to bring
up, when necessary, stong powers of violence and restaint. But the weakness
of the English working class consists chiefy in its being entirely dominated by
middle class ideas . Self-centered individualism, the conviction that everybody
has to forge hs own fate, respect for traditional social relations, conservatism
of thought, are firmly rooted in it by the uncallenged power of capitalism, at
home and all over the world. Strong shocks will be needed to str the petrifed
brains ; and capitalist development is at work already. When political catasto
phes or the irresistible rise of mighty competitors undermine the world power
of the English bourgeoisie, when the privileged position of the English work
ers has gone, when their very existence is endangered, then also for them the
only way will be the fight for power over production.
The fundaental ideas of council organizaton are not entirely foreign to
the English workers. At the end of the first world war the shop steward move
ment arose, establishing a direct contact of shop representatives in preparing
fighting actons, independent of the unions. Already earlier "guild socialism"
presented many cognate conceptions; and "industria unionism" put up the
demand of control of production, by the workers, linked, though, with the
ideas of the unions as the ruling bodies. The character of the English bour
geoisie and the freedom of all social relations make it probable that practical
momentay solutions of the conflicts will be sought for, rather than fundaren-
THE FOE 1 05
tal decisions. So as an instance, we might conceive that as a temporary com
promise, freedom of speech and discussion in the shop is established, and the
capitalist's old right of hiring and firing is restricted by the workers' right to
decide on the seniority issues of the personnel; this would keep the road open
to further progress. In such a course of development, when at last the partial
concessions should amount to an important loss of power, attempts of the cap
italist cass to regain supremacy by serious decisive class war cannot be avoid
ed. Yet it seems possible that, i anywhere, in England te mastery of the work
ers over production may be won by successive stes along intermediary fors
of divided rule; each step unsatisfactory, and urging further steps until com
plete freedom is reached.
2. THE FRENCH BOURGEOISIE
The development in France took place along quite different lines. m a great
political revolution the bourgeoisie, combined with the farmers, overthrew the
absolute monarchy with all its mediaeval forms, and deprived the nobility and
the church of its landed property. explicit acts and laws the Revolution abol
ished all feudal privileges, proclaimed the "rights of man," with private proper
ty as their main foundation, and asserted legal equality of all citizens.
Constrained to a pitched revolutionar fight the bourgeoisie made a sharp divi
sion between itself, garbed as the third estate, as the entire people, ad the
defeated feudal classes, now completely excluded from politica power. ! had
to do the govering work entirely by itself. There was a clear consciousness of
the middle class caracter of its institutions, formulated in precise paragraphs;
the rights of Parliament, differently from English custom, were exactly circum
scribed. These formulations of Parliamentary constitution then served as a
model for other countries. Political freedom, in Englad a practcal fact, in
France was conscious theory. The need of explaning and formulating it creat
ed a wealth of political literature, in books and speeches, full of lucd expres
sion of prnciples. But what was lacking was the immediate feeling of complete
mastership. Practice at the same time was imperfect; the French bourgeoisie
had frst to suffer military despotism, and then, in gradual steps, in a series of
smaller political revolutions, in 1830, 1848, 1870, had to win complete power
over the State.
these revolutions, fought chiefly by the popular classes, the petty
burghers, the artisans, the workers, these learned to distinguish teir own class
interests, as contrasted to capitalist interests. The workers aspired to a further
revolution that should break the new class power of capitalism, but in the
amed conflicts, i 1848 and 1871, they were defeated and butchered; partly by
their own class fellows, hired by the bourgeoisie, partly by the aid of the petty
burgherdom, shopkeepers, farers, who all cae t the rescue as defenders of
106 WORKERS' COUNCILS
private property. Thus it was shown that the bourgeoisie had a firm grip on
society, that the working class was not yet ripe for mastery, and that a further
development of capitalism was needed.
Though in these ferce class fights the bourgeoisie had been victorious, it
did not come out without injury. It had lost its self:confidence. It knew that
ever it would have to defend itself against the growing power from beneath,
that ever its rule would be threatened by the working class. So it sought for pro
tection by a strong State Power. Te centralization of all political power in the
Government at Paris, introduced already by the Conventon and by Napoleon,
was intensified in the 19t
h
century. Together with the absence of a ruling aris
tocracy it gave a political aspect to France quite different fom England.
Moreover, economic development took a different course. Mter a strong
growth about the middle of the century industrial development slackened. The
countryside gave no strong surplus of population flowing to the towns to pro
vide labor power for a growing industry. The savings of small business men,
collected in the bans, were not used as industrial capital in founding new
enterprises, but mostly invested in governmental loans . Certainly in regions
wit rich coal and ore deposits a strong iron and steel industry developed, with
powerfl capitalists at the head, often in family relation with the landed aris
tocracy. Besides, in the big towns, especially in Paris, as the centre of fahion
for the entire European bourgeoisie, the old small-scale industry of luxuries,
founded on personal skill and taste of a numerous class of wage-earning arti
sans, strongly developed. But the chief character of French capitalism, espe
cially after 1870, ever more became the prevalence of financial capital as
supreme power.
The banks, under the lead of the central "Banque de France," collected the
money of small capitaists, shareholders and farmers into a huge mass of bank
capital. Wherever governments in Europe or other continents wanted loans
they were procured by the French banks ; the bonds and shares were recom
mended ad urged upon the clients as a good investment. Thus the small-prop
erty-class in France consists mainly of rentiers, stock-holders, living upon the
exploitation of foreign peoples, receiving their income from the taxes squeezed
by foreign governents out of their subjects. The loans of these governments
usually had to serve for buying war materials or building railways. So bank
capital worked in close collaboration with the lords of the steel industry, usu
ally imposing the condition that the money was to be spent in the afflliated
French steel works . Thus the savings of the French renders went to the coffers
of the steel capitalists, and the interest for the renders was provided by foreign
taxpayers.
This predominant character of French capital determined French politics,
foreign, as well as home. Foreign politics served to protect the interests of bank
capital and the rentiers, by alliances fortifying its international power and its
THE FOE 107
influence over smaller backward countries. By military power when necessary,
it secured the payments from unwilling debtor-governments; or it converted
some barbarian cieftain into a dependent prince, providing him with
Europea arms to subjugate and exploit the formerly free tribes; which was
called bringing order and civilization.
The problem of home politics in big capitalism is always how to make par
liaments chosen by universal suffrage, hence dependent on the votes of small
business men, of farmers and of workers, instruments of the interests of big
capital. In counties with a rapid industrial development this is not difficult.
The entire bourgeoisie is carried away, its business prospers through the fer
vent economic acton, and te workers, too, fully occupied as they are, and able
to win good wages, are conciliated. Big capital, with assured self-confdence
proclaims its interests to be te common interests of society at large. It is quite
different, however, with bank capital. Its exploitation of foreign peoples and
capturing of the savings of their own people, through violence and deceit, bears
the character of usury and robbery. Its interests must be served behind the
scenes, by secret arrangements with influential politicians. For its purposes cab
inet ministers must be installed or deposed, party leaders must be won over,
members of parliament must be maipulated, papers must be bribed-all dirty
intrigues that cannot bear the light of day. The politicians, mostly lawyers or
other intellectuals , forced by the party-machnes upon the farmers and citizens
as their representatives, consider politics as business, aiming at high and remu
nerative offces as their share in the spoils. Parliamentarianism everwhere in
modern times is degenerating because it has to put up the semblance of the
common good while serving capitalist interests. But where fnancial capital
rules, it must deteriorate into sheer corruption. For fnancial capita, as repre
sented by the French banks, has no direct connection with labor. Its politics ,
not founded on the actual fight of a class in command of production, must live
on false slogans, on deceitful promises and sounding rhetoric.
Because in Paris during most of the 19
t
century small scale enterprises
were dominant, the working class, not sharply separated fom the mass of the
small independent artisans and employers, could not develop a clear-cut class
consciousness, though it was fled wth an ardent republican and democratic
figting spirit. Seeing the capitalists rise by the protecton of government, by
using the political power for shameless personal enrichment, whereas they
themselves were forcibly kept down, the workers considered State Power as the
chef cause of their exploitation and their misery. So their feelings of free indi
viduality, inheritance of the Great Revolution developed into some kind of
anarchism, the doctrine that only by complete aboltion of the State and its con
straining power mankind can be free as an agglomeration of independent col
laborating individuals.
108 WORKERS' COUNCILS
When, in later years, with the gradual development and concentration of
industry, trade unions arose, these, just as in England, took the central place i
the social ideas of the working cass. Not so much as practical means of partic
ipating i prosperity, but rather, French capitalism lacking industrial and com
mercal world power, as the theoretical basis of a better society. So towards the
end of the centry syndicalism became the teory of socal reconstruction
occupying te minds of the workers not only in France, but spreading over
Spain, Italy and oter countries aso. Syndicats is simply te French name for
trade unions. In the doctrine of syndicalism, "labor the basis of te new world,"
means that the syndicat, the union will be its organization unit. The union, it
says, is the fee creation of the workers, thei feld of self-goverent, whereas
in te State the officials and politcians, and in the political parties te intellec
tuals dominate. A political revoluton that should make te State master of pro
duction would mean a more oppressive slavery for the workers. Liberation of
the workers by revolution is only possible as a destruction of State and
Government. It must be brought about by a universal strike, a common action
of all its workers. In its place shall come the free association of all the unions ;
the unions wil be the bodies to organze and direct production.
These principles clearly expound their dependence on the forms of French
capitalism. Since the contents of politics stood at a wide distance from the pro
ductive work of society with its struggle of real class interest, the working cass
held itself at a wide distance from politics. Since politcs was a dirty business of
personal intrigue, the workers disdained to get med up with politics. Their
practice, proclaimed as class wa, theoretically for abolishing exploitaton, prac
tcally for better working conditions, was comprised entirely withn the field of
production, where it acted by means of the syndicates. Syndicalism did not
intend to yield or to submit to bank capital; in the syndicalist slogas of
ati-patriotism, antimilitarism, and universal strike, it expressed its refusal to be
carried away in the militaristic policy of bank capital. But this wa only a neg
ative form of opposition, not a positive form of fght; it underrated the power
ful hold of capital through the power of nationalistic ideas. In the principle: that
every member of the syndicat may individually take part i politics by votg
"according to his philosophic or political ideas" is expressed the primitive help
lessness of a class tat contents itself with trying to exclude from its immediate
struggle differences of opinon on society at large. The insight was lacking that
against big capital in industry solid big organizations needs must arise, involv
ing a bureaucracy of leading ofICials. And that production directed by the syn
dicats means production under the direction of union leaders and not by
self-management of the workers.
Practically syndicalism went down when at the outbreak of the frst world
war its leaders joined thei Governent and submitted to teir capitalist cass.
This prepared the transition to overt reformist policy after the war, when in
THE FOE 109
international collaboration the differenccs in theory between the English,
Gennan and French unions receded behind thei common practice. In tese
later yeas also the differences in character of capitalism in different countries,
strongly emphasized before, became less maked in the growth of industry
everywhere, in the merging of fnancial and industrial capital, in their common
imperialist policy of subduing foreign peoples and of preparing for fUlure wars
for world supremacy.
Te power of the French bourgeoisie consists, as everywhere, i its eco
nomic and fnancial power, its spiritual power and its State power. Diferent
from the English bourgeoisie, its economc power is not in te fst place mas
tery over industy and world commerce, but money power; with this money it
buys propaganda and anned force, and dominates politics. The spiritual power
of French capitalism is based on the traditon of the Great Revolution and the
social institutions created by it. The proud feeling of having thrown off des
potism and, an example for others, establshed legal freedom and equality, lives
as a strong traditon i the entire people. Only by nursing these feelings, by
acknowledging the democratc forms, by respecting the feedom in public opin
ion, can capital rule over te masses who take the outer appearances for reali
ty. And should they become rebellious, they find a strong centralized State
Power over them. The basic weakness of the French working class, notwith
standing its gallant fghts in the past, rests on the slowness of modern economic
development, the masses of the farmers, the citizens, the workers being ds
persed over numerous petty enterprises. French capitalism lagged behind the
old power of English and the rising power of Gennan and Aerican capital
ism; no fresh stream of impulses pushed the classes into strong action and ener
getic fight.
3. THE GERM BOURGEOISIE
At the end of the Middle Ages a proud, free and martial burgherdom, rich
through its commerce from Italy and the East to Northern and Western
Europe, filled the fourishing German towns. Then by the discovery of
America and India world trade shifted to the shores of the Atlantic. The eco
nomic decline found its sequel in iternecine wars and invasions by foreign
powers, ransackng and murdering, entirely destroyng the old wealth. The
ThirtyYears' War left Germany a devastated and impoverished country, with
out commerce and industry, cut off from the economic development of the
West, dvided into a hundred small independent States under petty princes,
powerless outside their domain, arbitrary despots at home. The largest among
them, the rsing Prussian monarchy, was dominated completely by te landed
aristocracy, the 'Junkers," who kept the miserable farmers in servitude, masters
of the army as a instrument of conquest. The French revoluton and the rise
1 1 0 WORKERS' COUNCILS
of the English industry gave a first impulse to the German poets and philoso
phers, exponents of the nascent aspiratons of burgherdom. Through the
Napeolonic domination the rise of nationalism had a reactionary character
fmding its theoretical expression in the solemn confession of servility; the
French revolution proclaimed the rights of man, we proclaim the duties of man.
Towards the middle of the 19t
h
centry industry began to develop, and with
it a first spirit of freedom, of crticism against the narrow-minded suppression
by absolutism and police arbitrariness. The rising bourgeoisie prepared to
extort political rights from the Prussian monarchy, which meant a revolution
by the help of the working masses. But then, in 1 848, it saw the working class
proclaim its radical demands, and even fight the propertied classes in a fierce
cass struggle, at the Paris barricades. So it shrank back; the way of revolution,
of winnig freedom and power for itself by winning political freedom for the
masses, was barred. When in the following industy developed ever
more, the German bourgeoisie alongside of saw the working class organ-
izing into an idependent power. So it was pinched between an old ruling
power above, monacy, aristocracy and army, and a rising new power
beneath, workers already talking communism. Because it wanted police pro
tection in eery strike, because it felt the working class to be its genuine eco
nomc antagonist, it could not venture a serious Hght against State Power. And
should it eventually talk of revolution, then the aristocratic rulers would not
hesitate to rouse the workers against their employers by promising social laws
restricting the arbitrariess in the factory, and by even hinting at a "social
monarchy," protecting te working class against capitalism.
So the German bourgeoisie learned fear. Fear for the power above, fear for
the power beneath determined its social character. Never it kew that proud
feeling that only self-won freedom can waken in a social class.
Other causes aided to develop this character. Unlike France and England
that many centuries ago already had acquired their rational unity, Germany
was still divded in several dozens of insigniHcant Statelets. It was an annoying
and cumbersome impediment to the development of idustry and commerce;
so many different goverments and laws and rules, diferent systems of taxes
and coinage, custom duties at the several frontiers, every petty government
plaguing business through stupid ofcials, and powerless to protect it on for
eign markets. The German bourgeoisie deeply resented the lack of a powerful
united State. A free and united Germany had been its hope at the outset of
1848; but the courage had failed to join in the Hght of the people. And now it
perceived that there was another way to acquire, not freedom, but unity: by
means of Prussian militarism. Tbe Prussian aristocrac had made its army an
excellent instrument of conquest. In a series of wars, a revolution from above,
the surrounding Powers were defeated or overawed, and the small German
States were subjected and combined into a powerfl German Empire. And now
THE FOE I I I
the bourgeoisie changed its policy, left its parliamentary spokesmen alone to
make speeches against militarism, ad enthusiastically hailed the "iron c
cellor" and the Prussian king as its heroes.
"Despotism under Bismarck," wrote the English historian Trevelyan "had
become an active principle m te van of progress; it was no longer timdly hos
tile to the mercantile class, to the press, education and science, but harnessed
them all to the coach of government." Formerly, i other countries, progress
i.e., te deveopment of capitalism-was always linked with increasing free
dom-i. e. , mastery of the bourgeoisie over government. Now, here, on te con
trary, despotic government became te instrument for the development of cap
italism. The constitution of the newly created Empire was animated by a mod
ern daring spirit, and its policy by brutal energy, adequate to a strongly devel
opig capitalism. Social reform laws and universal sufrage for the Diet secured
participation of te masses in its world politics, and the adaptation to changing
conditions. At the same time the separate States remained, with their obsolete
constitutions, with their narrow-minded oficialdom, covering the field of
administration, of home affairs, of police and education, keeping the masses
subjected and continually supervised.
Thus a strong State power was put into the service of rising capitalism
without giving political supremacy to the capitaists themselves. The Prussian
landoW11ing aristocracy remained master of modern Germany; but onl by
serving the demands of capitalism. It took its share of te increasing mass of
surplus value, not only occpyng the lucrative ruling posts in government, but
also using its political power to increase-by corn laws-the money produce of
its landed propert. The bourgeoisie remained a class of obedient subjects,
socially ifluential by its money, but regarded as second class citizens, content
to conduct their business and respectfully glorifing monarchy and nobility. In
contrast to England and France, parliament had no power over government; it
could not by its vote enforce the dismissal of a cabinet. If a parliamentary
majority had tried such a thing by using its right of contol of the budget, te
bourgeoisie would have forsaen and discarded it; rather than be dependent on
a parliament elected by the masses it preferred to be ruled from above.
Now the way was open for capitalist development without political free
dom. Whereas the working class , continually strugging for breathng and
fighting space, was kept down by a strong hand, Germany as a mighty new
Power played its role in European politics. Industry and commerce developed
with a marvellous rapidity, overtaking all other European countries, equalled
only by the United States of America.
This was not only the fresh energy of a people, kept back through years of
adverse political conditions. In Germany industry cae up half a centy later
tha in England, at a time of more highly developed technics. It had to begin
at the outset by intoducing big machines and expensive installations requing
1 12 WORKERS' COUNCILS
science and capital. Science it had; long before aleady its scientists had taken
an honorable part in interational reseach. Just because techncal applicaton
had been restricted better theoretical foundations could be laid, that now were
the basis, at a rapidly growing number of universities and technical schools, of
a thoroug scientific training for the needs of industry. Personal wealth, how
ever, capital, such as the factory owners in England, had accumulated out
of the profts of half a century, was l acking in Germany. There the capital need
ed for big enterprises had to be provided by carefuly collecting all smal bits of
savings from the separate small capitalists. Ths was the function of the banks.
Thus German industy acquired a special character. To icrease the profts
for a rapid accumulation of capital the productivity was raised by conscious
amelioration of its scientific basis. So fom a number of markets German com
petition was able to oust the English, confident in their tried and proved meth
ods. At the same time the close connection of banks and industy created new
form of organization. The bank, interested in the success of enterprises because
it provided them with capital, supervised and advised their policy and brought
them into connection. This led to mutua assistace and favorite treatment
between such enterprises, to an intertwining of interests, often to the formation
of ctels, in every case to organization. The interpenetration of the directons
of the banks ad big idustries created a conscious comon policy of continu
ously extending their power over new branches. By investing cpita here, by
enlarging existing business there, by the well-planned founding of new enter
prises, the bas, a few goups of fercely competing financial powers, organ
ized industry in a systematcal way, increasing profits and still more thei own
share in it. Thus what first appeared as a weakness, the lack of private capital,
turned into strength. Against the self-willing independence of English business
men, confident in their traditional wealth and clientele, German industry rap
idly rose to power through its purposefl organization. With restless energy
and fesh ambition the German bourgeoisie forced its way up in producton
and world commerce, began to export capital to colonies and foreign conti
nents, and prepared to conquer its share in world power.
In England militarism never got a footing in society. In Germay the forms
and spirit of militarism pervaded and dominated society; its code of honor,
coarse and touchy, was aped by te middle class youth at the universities; and
to the caste of officers the business man was the despised civilian. The middle
cass German looked up with deep veneration at the army, its refuge ad its
instrument of power, and equally worshiped the masters of the army, the
monarch and hs ofcers. In German constitution, Parliament, the Diet, had no
power over the army, it had solely to provide the money. This militarism
embodied the submissiveness of the German bourgeoisie, its lack of personal
pride, its feeling of iferiority, often camouflaged as rough brutality. The
Gennan bourgeoisie never knew feedom. Entirely foreign to them is the proud
THE FOE 1 13
feeling of independence, as personal freedom pervading a classes i the
Wester countries.
This, however, made te German bourgeoisie better adapted to the exigen
cies of big capitalism. Orgaation of capitalism, based as it is on subordina
tion under a stronger power, came easier to the German than to a capitast
class accustomed to personal independence. The same disposition enbled the
German bourgeoisie twice to engage in the fight for world power with an
unequalled, well nigh irresistble war machie, the efficiency of which was
based on carefully prepared military ad capitalist organization, technically as
well as spiritually. So that its opponent, the world-commanding English bour
geoisie, careless and unprepared, staggering under the fierce assault, had to put
up its defense by summoning all the deepest forces of its inner nature.
The Aerican entomologist Howard, in his "Man ad Insect," makes a
comparison of nature's two most successful adaptations to the "struggle for
life" in animal structre: the insects covering all their weak parts by an unas
sailable had and fexible skn, the mammals supporting them by a skeleton
within; and their contest over the domination of the world, the author says, is
not decided. This linage fts for a comparison of the two contending
talist classes ; the Gennan bourgeoisie covering its iner softness by an outer
steel armor and assailing with the sharpest arms the apparently unprotected
foe; but the English bourgeoisie has bones in its body.
This character of the German bourgeoisie at an early date brought the
German workers to political independence. Left alone in their struggle agalilst
the oppressive police State, they were not attached to the middle class by the
tradition of a common figt for political freedom. Whereas in other countries
the hard industrial boss commanded respect by seizing power over the State
and moderizing it, i Germany the gruff master in te shop proved the sub
missive coward in politics, giving examples in servility only. The German
workers stood directly over against the allied classes of land owners and capi
talists; they had to fight on the politcal at the same tie as on the economc
field. Concentrated by the rapid development of industy in large numbers in
the factories and the towns, they had to build teir organizations and fmd their
OWn way, independent of middle class influences and traditions.
The rapid rise of social democracy demonstated this political independ
ence. Its name expresses the basic idea that socialist production must be won
by means of democracy, by te masses conquerig power over the State. Its
propaganda of class struggle aroused the increasing numbers of workers to
devoted fight, its papers and pamphets educated them to knowledge of socie
ty ad its development. It was the energy and rapidity of capitalist develop
ment that aroused the energy of the German working class and soon made
them the foremost and directing power in the international workers' move
ment. It was the submissive politics of te Gennan capitalist cass, in placig
1 1 4 WORKERS' COUNCILS
them directly over against the entire ruling class, that rendered them class-con
scious, that forced them by theory to deepen thei insight in social forces, and
that made them the teachers of the workers of all countries. Just as in France
the sharp opposition between middle class and nobility had given origin to an
extensive literature on political theory, so in Germany the sharp opposition
between working class and bourgeoisie gave origin to an extensive literature on
social theory, mostly based on the scientifc work of Marx. This intellectual
superiority, together with the gallant fght against oppression and despotism,
aone against the might rulers, attracted all progressive and idealistic elements
among the other classes , and collected aound them all who longed for liberty
and hated the degrading Pussian militarism. In Germany a deep gap, social as
well as spiritual, separated two worlds, one of insolent power and wealth,
where servility glorified oppression and violence, the other of ideaism and
rebelliousness, embodied in te workers' class struggle for liberation of human
ity.
The infltration with idealistic middle class and intellectual elements tended
to call up ideas of peaceful petty capitalist reform and democracy, though they
were entirely at variance with the actual big capitalist conditions. Other influ
ences went in the same direction. The increased power of the workers-politi
cally, by fnally, in 1 912, mustering one-third of all the vote, economically by
the rapid growth of the trade unions to giant organizations-awakened tlle
desire for direct progress in social reform. Though traditional program and
theory spoke of revoluton as the goal of all activity, the real outcome was to
ascertain to the workers their place in capitalism, acknowledged not officially,
but actually, and only at the cost of continual fght. So reformist tendencies got
an increasing hold on the workers. At the deepest root of reformist mood lay,
of course, the economic prosperity that in the twenty years before the frrst
world war enormously swelled German capitalism. All this meant a stong
influence of capitalist and middle class ideas upon the workers.
The spiitual power of the German bourgeoisie over the working masses
was not due to its political, but to it economic achievements. Leaving politics
and government to others, concentrating all its attention on industry and com
merce, the capitalist class here unfolded such capacities and energy as to push
German economy in an unrivaled tempo to the forefront of world develop
ment. This vigour commanded respect in te workers and carried them along
in the feeling of participating in a mighty world process. They felt the enor
mous and enormously increasing power and brunt of capital, against which
their organizations appeaed insuficient and against which even their own
ideals seemed to fade. So, in their sub-consciousness, they were to a certain
extent dragged on in the middle cass stream of nationalism, in the desire for
national greatness and world power that burst out in the frrst world war.
THE FOE 115
I the Western countries the early political acendency of the bourgeoisie
kept the workers in political dependence; the economic forces and crises had to
awaken them to class consciousness and class fight. I Germay the late, there
fore more thorough economic ascendency of the bourgeoisie bound the work
ers into spiritual dependence; here the political forces drove them into fght and
awakened their class consciousness. Opposed to a bourgeoisie entirely addict
ed to despotism ad violence the German workers will have to win thei fee
dom along the dificult way of political crises ad catastrophes.
4. NATIONALISM
Nationalism is the essential creed of the bourgeoisie. What for ths class
stands above the individuality of separate man is the communit indicated,
with small differenccs of meaning, by the different nanles of nation, people,
fatherland or State.
Nation and national feeling came up and developed along with the bour
geoisie. Original peasant life knew only the community of the village and of the
larger tribe or county or canton; for the rising burgher class the town was their
community. Their common interests did not stretch beyond these small realms.
The spoken languages varied over larger regions; their similarit over limited
regions faclitated their connection under the domination of one prince. But
usually such domination, by conquest and inheritance, extended over countries
with entirely different speech. For te farmers it hardly mattered what prince
reigned far away and over what other people.
Tris changed with the rise of commercial, and still more with that of indus
trial capital. The merchant trading over wide countres u seas needs a strong
Power that protects him, fights his competitors and subdues backwad tribes ; if
tlris is l ackg he himself founds a town federaton. The industrialist needs
securit on the roads, unity of law, protecton by a power mightier than a town.
Where by insular isolation, as in England, or by conquests of princes, as with
Francc, larger realms had been joined, they need only be consolidated and
strengthened from within. In other cases, as with Italy and Germany, strong
States had to be built in moder times, throug wars and revolutions, through
the force of the nationalist feeling of the bourgeoisie.
This does not mean that State and nation ae identical or coincide. Te
State is a power structure, provided with physical means of coercion and sup
pression; the nation is a community bound by inner forces. So the State has t.e
greatest inner solidity when it coincdes with the nation. But States to increase
their power try to include regions and peoples as much as possible, though they
may belong to other nations, mixed up one with another by chance migrations
in olden times. So Denmark formerly included Germans, Gcrman later
included Danes and Poles, Hungary included Roumanians, Slavs and
1 1 6 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Germans, Roumania afterwards included Hungarians and Gerans. 111e
Austian Monarchy comprised seven different nationalities, never grown
together. In such cases the growth of national feeling, accompanying the rise
a modern bourgeoisie, acts as a destructive force. I cases of a seaport town
with a hinterland of different race and language (as Fiume or Dantzig) the eco
nomic interests demanding political unity are impaired by national enmity.
A common language, as te instrument of understanding, is the strongest
force to connect people into one State ad one nation. This does not mean,
however, that nations are simply communities of speech. 1ne Swiss, in their
majority, speak German; yet they are a separate nation, different from the
Germans. The English and the American nations speak the same language.
The Sviss people during five centuries already has gone its own way, different
frm the way of other German-speaking people. They lived under their special
institutions, ruling themselves a free peasants in a primitive democracy, whilst
the Germans were oppressed under the yoke of some hundred small tyrants.
The Swiss all experienced the same historical happenngs, that molded their
mind in the same way; in contnual actual and spirtual itercourse they grew
together into a similarity of chaacter and ideas, diferent from those on the
other side of the frontier. It is not only the passive qualities acquired in ths
way, but much more the active will, the mutual feeling of belonging together in
a community of life, that connects and separates manind into nations. It is the
same with the English and the Americans: their separate history in different
continents each following its own fate, often in sharp hostilit of capitalist inter
ests, made them different nations. And within each nation the community of
fate, the subjection to the same historical influences impressed a common
stamp upon all; the comon fight for comon interest, for common freedom,
welded them into a frm unity. It produced a community of ideas embodied in
and strengthened by literature, by art, by the daly papers, constitutg nation
a culture, itself an important factor in developing the sense of nationality. Even
the bitter struggle of the classes takes place on this common ground of common
experience in the ups and downs of mutual fight as direct face-to-face oppo
nents.
So a nation is not a community of State, not a conmnity of laguage, but
a community of lot [of destiny arising out of their common social-economic
practice] . Of course, these different types of community are mutually strongly
dependent. Language is a s trong nation-building agent. Nationality is the
strongest State-building power. On the reverse political State power strongly
reacts in making and unmaking natons, by uniting ad separating the peoples,
by establishing or destroying lot-community [a feelig of common destiny] . In
the Middle Ages Northern and Southern France, differing in language as much
as France and Spain, were united by conquest; during the rise of the bour
geoisie they formed one county, alld as a unity tey experienced later revolu-
THE FOE 1 1 7
tions. Simultaneously with the Swiss mountaineers the Low Countries border
ing the ocean separated politically from the large German body. A dozen of
rich merchant towns, protecting themselves on the land side by a chain of allied
provinces, they formed an idependent State, raising te Holland dialect into a
s eparate language with its own literature and culture; and by their special his
tory becomig a separate nation. 11le Femish, though speaking the same lan
guage as the Dutch, by their entirely separate and different history cannot be
considered to belong to the same nation, whereas their political unty wth the
Wallons is thwarted by difference of language. Political measures, dictated by
economc interests gradually melted the Scots wit the English into one nation,
whereas by such measures the Irish were driven into the consciousness of being
a separate and hostile nation.
1nus nation is a product of history. All the happenings in the past, experi
enced in common, determiing character, feelings, culture, have settled in the
form of nationality. Nationality is congealed history, perpetuated outcome of
the past as a living force.
National character and stil more national feeling, thus spontaneously grow
ing out of society, constitute the inner strength of natonal States. Tey are
needed by the bourgeoisie, praised as patriotism, and furthered by special
measures. rnle diferences within the boundaries are effaced as much as possi
ble, te differences with the outside world are emphasized and enhanced. One
common language, necessary for intercourse, is taught all over the ream, sup
pressing the old dialects and even minority languages-as Gaelic i Wales,
Provensal in Southern France-tlat only remain as curiosities and in remote vil
lages. And a vast literature in this common language is at work, from frst child
hood onward, to impress identical ideas and identical feelings upon te entire
population. An intentiona propaganda works to intensify the mutual feelings
of connection, and to render the antagonism to everything foreign more con
scious. The doctrine of class struggle that draws a cleavage through national
community is denounced as a danger and even persecuted as a crime against
national unity. What as a spontaneous living product of society develops and
changes with socety itself, nationalism proclaims to be an eternal fact of nature
and a duty of man.
Nationality is congeaed history-but history goes on, adding continuously
to the former deposit. New economic developments , growth of capital, wars
and conquests produce new interests, change frontiers, awaken new directions
of will and feeling, combine or separate peoples, break old communities and
engender new ones. So nationality, together with its deeper generating forces,
is fluctuating, in extent and content, and shows a vaiety of aspects.
Just as pett trade remains within big capitalism, provincialisms, remnants
of old customs and ideas, persist, and they
.
sometimes extend across the State
fronters. In the time of ascending capitalism with its free trade reachig all over
1 1 8 WORKERS' COUNCILS
the world, feelings of cosmopolitism of internatonal brotherhood of all
mankid gained ground in the bourgeoisie. Mterwads, when competition
became ferce and the ensuing fight for world power deepened nationalism, this
was ridicled and suppressed as a childish illusion. In such parts of the world
where capitalism is just beginning to take a footng, where it begins to under
mne primitive economy and to overthrow worn-out despotisms, we see nations
in the making. Besides profit-hungry business men, gambling adventurers,
agents of foreign capital and rapacious politicians, forming the beginning of a
bourgeoisie, it is chiefy the intellectuals, educated by European sciences and
ideas, who come forward as the spokesmen of nationalism. On the Balkans the
chance results of war often decided what adjacent valleys with cogate dialects
would be included into the Serbian or into the Bulgarian nation. In China the
class of merchants ad landowners, spiritually united already by an old cultre,
assisted by a Western educated class of intellectuals, gradually develops into a
moder bourgeoisie, animated by a growing spirit of nationalism. In India such
growth, though rooted in native capitalist industry, is severely hampered by an
obsolete diversity of religions. In all colonies with no bourgeoisie as yet, nation
alism propagated by small groups of intellectuals, is the first theoretical form of
rebellion against foreign exloitation. Where, on the other hand, in groups of
a single mllion speakig a separate dialect nationalism arises, as wish or only
whim of intellectuas, it may work as a disrnptive force in the coherence of
great units.
In the countries of modern capitalism nationalism has gone through differ
ent forms, corresponding to the development of the bourgeoisie. Wen
burgherdom in its frst rise becomes master in its town or realm it is freedom
for which it fghts. It not only breaks the power of nobility, of land ownership
in its domain it has also to beat foreign powers that suppress or threaten its
freedom. The rise of the bourgeoisie as a ruling class is connected with war
against foreig feudal or absolutistic or previously dominant capitalistic pow
ers. Such wars are wars of lberation, and are a kind of revolution; all enthusi
asm, all devotion nascent from the establishment of a higher system of pro
duction maifests itself as national passion and exalts nationalism to lofty ide
alism. Tus it was with Holland in the 16t
h
century freeing itself from the
Spansh King, with the English at the same time fghting against Spanish world
power, with America 1776 aganst England, with the French in the Great
Revolution against Europe led by England, with te Italians in the 19t
h
centu
ry aganst Austria; and even the German war against France 1870 had some
traits of it. Such wars of liberation and consolidation, establishing its inde
pendence and power, in all later years are exalted by the bourgeoisie as the sub
lime summits of national history.
But then, gradually, the image changes. Capitalism is exploitation, is dom
ination of an exploited class by a ruling class . The bourgeoisie, liberating itself
THE FOE 1 1 9
from domination by land ownership, establishes new suppression. Trowing
off the yoke of foreign oppression it soon begins to lay its yoke upon weaker
peoples, adjacent or in far away colonies. Specially with the deveopment of big
capitalism. And always under the sae slogans of nationalism. But now nation
alism has another color. Not the freedom but the greatness of the nation is its
slogan. It appeals to te feelings of pride, to the instincts of power, in all the
other classes who have to serve the bourgeoisie as its helpers and underlings,
as spokesmen, as mlitary and cvi ofcers, and who take part i its power.
Now te own people is proclaimed the chosen people, superior in force and
virtue, te "grande nation:' the "Herrenvolk," the "finest race among
mannd," destined to lead or to dominate other nations. As the contest for
world power, the fght for supremcy in the world between the capitalist class
es becomes fiercer, nationaism grows into a feverish passion, often carrying
away the entire population in a common struggle for existence.
Nationalism is not simply an artifcial doctrine imposed by the rulers upon
the masses. Lie every system of thoughts and feelings it arises out of the depth
of society and proceeds from the economic realities and necessities. For the
bourgeoisie the nation is the community to which its weal and woe is tied; so
all the old instincts of community feeling are put i its service and develop to
mighty forces of idealism. More than the adults the youth, not yet permeated
by the spirit of selfish profit-seeking, is susceptible to enthusiastic response to
the C of the communit. For the workng masses, as long as they have no pos
sibility and no thought to fght for themselves against the bourgeoisie.
Spiritually dependent on the master-class, they have to accept, more or less
willingly, its ideas and its aims. these influences work as spiritual forces in
the realm of instictve spontaneity.
But then, added to it, come the deliberate efforts of the bourgeosie to inten
sify the spontaneous feelings by artifcial means. Te entire education in the
schools and the propaganda in literature and papers ae directed to foster and
s trengthen the spirit of nationalism. Not of course by showing its connection
with the proft for capital; a dear consciousness of this connection, as in all ide
ologes of an exploiting class, is lacing, and must be carefully withheld from
the exloited masses. So other foundations must be sought for, other usually
deceptive arguments must be found, drawn mostly from existing traditions
based on former social conditions. Te love for the birthplace where our cra
dle stood, the remembrance of the world of our youth, of villages or town quar
ter, small communities of peasant or artisan life, must serve to fx the adher
ence to the nationalist State Power, where it fghts foreign Powers, for the prof
it of capitaL History is colored and doctored to convert the strict ojective truth
about the past into a brilliant one-sided image of the naton's life, apt to awak
en strong feelings of intercommunity, of enthusiasm, of pride and admiration
1 20 WORKERS' COUNCILS
in young people, to elate their hearts, to strain their minds, to istigate emula
tion, hence to solidif the imler strength of the national communit.
To give a still greater solidity to the national ideology, it sometmes is
founded upon a material, physical base, on consanguinity and race. Te races
of mankind have been formed in the many tousands of years of prehistoric
times. We meet with them at the dawn of history, and afterwards in surround
ing barbaric countries and continents, a groups with similar qualities. They
have been shaped by migrations, conquests, exterminations and blendings of
primitive groups, when in more quiet times or in isolated regions the mixture
setded to specifc types. The fight for living space and for possession of the
sources of life continued in later civilized history. But now, by the development
of new forms of production, as a fight of States and nations. Though both are
communities of lot [of common destiny] and are designated by the same name
of "people," there is a fundamental difference between the original races and
the later nations. The races are groups connected by the ties of blood, by con
sanguinity; the nations, formed in the ages of production of commodities, are
groups connected by the spiritual ties of common consciousness, ideas, experi
ence and culture.
Written history of the great migrations in later times attests how almost all
modern peoples, the nations, have been shaped by a thorough mture of dif
ferent races. And this process of mixing is going on though in more quiet
forms, under modern idustrial conditions. Large numbers of people migrate
from the poor agraria regions into foreign industrial towns or districts ; such
as the Irish into English towns, the Czechs ito Vienna, the Poles into
Rineland, the Europeans into America. Mostly they assume language and
habits from their new surroundings as well as t.e ideas, and so are dissolved
and assimilated into its national community. Only when the migration com
prises greater connected masses, especially when touched already by the con
sciousness of fervid national strife, the assiilation ceases.
When a moder naton is claed to be the pure descendants of one origi
nal race, how can it be decided? The evidence of history, usually uncertain,
points to strong blending. Nei
t
her is the communty of language decisive. It is
true that peasant communities tenaciously stick to their language as long as
their life and work is not ifuenced by other dominant languages. But it is
known quite well how often in the mixing up of peoples the language of the vic
tors is assumed by the vanquished or
t
he language of more civilized intruders.
Community of language later on is a strong force in te maing of natons; but
it cannot mae certain a community of descent. Tere are, further, bodily dif
ferences in color, hair, bodily structure and form of the skull, manifest and
large between the main groups, Europeans, Mongolians, Negroes . But they are
small in subordinate groups. And in al moder peoples these bodily charac
teristics show the most embarrassing diversity. Ethnologists, especially in
THE FOE 1 21
Germany, speak of a "Nordc" race, dolichocephalic [with oblong skull] ,
blonde, and blue-eyed, of which the Teuton peoples were descendats and rep
resentatives, contrasted to the darker "alpine" race, brachycephalic [with round
skul], living in Central Europe. But modem Europe shows dolichocephaly
dominant only in Norway, North-western Germany, Holland, England, where
as the chief part of Germany is brachycephalic, increasingly so in the later cen
turies. The American ethnologist Dixon pointed out that the inhabitats of the
then existing Austrian monarchy as to bodily characteristics and shape of the
skull formed a nearly homogeneous race, whereas they were divided into some
seven fiercely quarreling nations, speaking as many different langages, ad
brought together by different ancient wanderings and adventures. On the other
hand the French, bodily showing a mixture of most different racial character
istics, feel and act as one homogeneous consolidated nation.
Race community as the foundation of nationality is only a fantastic theory,
devised and propagated for political purposes. Te strength of Gern nation
alism is not rooted in the blood of the ancient Teutons but in the needs of mod
ern capitalism. The strong real roots of nationalism are situated in economy, in
the mode of production. So it must be different for different classes.
On the working class nationalism never got much hold. In the
petty-burgher and farmer classes from which it proceeded national feeling
played no great role; and its ow exploitation by capital gave another direction
to the ideas, not towards community, but towards fght with the bourgeoisie.
They perceived nationalism to be te ideology of their exloiters, often a form
of hypocrisy when the most greedy capitalists used patriotic tal to fill their
own pockets. When by unemployment they were driven to wader they found
in other countries other workers, comrades, exploited like themselves.
Practically, by their fight, and then theoretically, in their consciousness, they
drew a dividing line across the nation. Another community of lot, te
class-commlUuty determined their feelings and thoughts, extending over all
countries. Te dividing line of the classes crosses tat of the nations. To the
nationalist propaganda of the bourgeoisie they opposed the reality of their life
by the statement that the workers have no fatherland. Socialist propaganda fun
damentally opposing capitalism proclaimed internationalism to be the principle
of the working class.
But beneath the conscious thoughts and avowed doctrines there was in the
workers, in their sub-consciousness, still a certain national feeling, revealing
itself at the outbreak of the world war. Practicaly they had to acquiesce in the
rule of the bourgeoisie and were its subordinates; practically their fight could
do no more than ascertain their place in capitalism; so in their ideas they could
not attain complete independence. When the workers politically and s ocially
follow the bourgeoisie they remai middle-class-minded. In England they par
ticipated in the profits that world commerce, industrial monopoly and colonial
122 WORKERS' COUNCILS
exploitation bestowed upon the bourgeoisie. I Germany the energy of the
bourgeoisie to win industrial world power carried them away in te vague feel
ing that industrial power and prosperity is a workers' interest, too. So naton
alism in the working class was te companion of reformism, in England as a
quiet hardly conscious conservative tradition, in Germany as an impetuous
instinct driven by a turbulent economic expansion. It must be remarked that
working class nationalism always was pacifistc, rooted in the tradition of
petty-burgher illusions, in contrast to the aggressive violent nationalism of the
bourgeoisie.
When te working class takes up its revolutionary fight, nationalism is
dropped entirely. In the new workers' organization of producton there is no
antagonism of interests with other peoples; it extends over the countries disre
garding all former frontiers. In the reconstruction of society fight is only need
ed against the capitalist class; in ths fight the workers all over the world have
to rely on one another as brothers in arms ; together belonging to one army.
They speak different languages, certainly; but these differences relate only to
the outer forms of their thoughts. The essental contents, their ideas, their feel-
their culture, determined as tey ae by the same class struggle, the com
mon fight as the chief life experience, the common lot, are identcal. From hav
ing been subjected to different national influences in previous history tere
may remain differences i passive character and culture; but in actve charac
ter, in the direction of will, they form one unity. This new state of thought of
the working class cannot well be indicated by calling it interational; it is more
and higher than a peaceful collaboration of free and equal nations. It is the
entire absence of nationality; for the workers the nations do not exist, they see
before them the unt of mnkind all over the world, a communty of produc
ton, of life, of culture. Over all diversit of bodily qualites and natural sur
roundings, of local speech and traditional habits stretches the interconnection
of all mankind as one great community of lot. Thus nationalism disappears
from the earth together with the class that was its author.
This is of the future. For the time being nationalism exists as a strong power
obstructng the way. For te workers it is necessary not only to destroy all
natonalist tradition in themselves, but also, in order to avoid illusions, to
understand its strength in the hostile class. Nationalism does not belong to the
ideologies that as traditions of te past times are gadually extinguished under
modern conditons . It is a living ideology, drawing its forces ever anew from a
fertile economic soil, standing in te centre of fight, the flag of the foe. German
history of the last quarter of a century ofers an example of how after the down
break of her State power the bourgeoisie was able to resuscitate itself by means
of spiritual power, through nationalism, and thus to build up a new more pow
erful state.
THE FOE 123
The outbreak of the first world war 1914 was the catastrophe of social
democracy and labor movement. The part and union leaders placed all the
power of thci organization, its press, its moral authority at the service of the
Goverent in Germany, considered as the foremost example for the workng
class, and in all other countries. It was
t
he collapse of all the proud program
slogans of class struggle and of interationalsm. The workers having put all
their confdencc, teir fai
t
h into their party, their organization , now were pow
erless against the nationalist propaganda, against te combined pressurc of the
military and the part apparatus.
Then came 1918-the downbreak of the German military power. The rebel
lion of the sailors, the strikes and demonstratons in the chief towns, the for
mation of workers' and soldiers' councils carried the socialist leaders into
power. They were the only men to keep the working class in check and to pre
vent a real workers' revoluton, which they hated and feared no less tan did
te generals and the capitalists. The working masses found the political power
fallen into their hands ; but they did not know what to do with it. Again they
put their faith into the part, in thei leaders, and passively suffered the small
advance groups of revolutionary fighters ad spokesmen to be massacred by
military forces at the command of the s ocialist rulers. They had always been
taught that the party would bring them socialism. Now the party, now thei
leaders were in ofice; now socialism was to come.
Wat they got was capitalism. The socialist leaders did not touch capitalist
property, not even aristocratic land ownership. By convoking a National
Assembly they immedately restored parliamentarism, which had always been
their life element. So the bourgeoisie gained an ofcial centre of organized
power. It was quite content that socialist and democratic politicians, beguiling
the masses with the illusion of power, occupied the upper places; afterwards
they could be turned out gadualy and replaced by liberals and reactionaries.
Capitalism acted as it always acts : it exploited the masses, expropriated the
middle classes, aggravated the economic chaos by gambling with the meanS of
production, bribed the officials, and threw society into ever new crises of
uncmployment. And all discontent and exasperation turned against tc new
republic and its parliamentay leaders.
Now the bourgeoisie began to build up its fighting power but of all the ele
ments that were depressed and embittered by thc new conditions : te middle
class youth, flung down from its high hopes for victory and fture greatness;
the dismissed military ofcers, exasperated by defeat, entirely living in the old
conceptions; the young intellectuals, in despair at sceing the governmental
ofces once considered as their monopoly now occupied by despised socialists
andJews. All impoverished by the devaluation of the money, all flled with bit
teress over the humiliation of their country, all driven by a ferce will to take
up again the fght for world power. Their binding force was an ardent nation-
124 WORKERS' COUNCILS
alism, blasted into white heat by the enforced humiliatig peace conditions, ani
mated by hatred against the slack nationality of the meek rulers no less than
against the foreig victorious enemes. They stood up as the bearers of sublime
national ideas, whereas te workers over against them could show no more
than either contentment over the mock democracy of a worthless reublic, or
the sham revolutionist tal of bolshevist paty dictatorshp. Thus the most
active elements among the up-growing youth were assembled and drilled into
fighting bands, inspired by fery nationalist teachings. Big capital provided te
means for a continuous propaganda among the populaton. Untl the world cri
sis of IU3U raised them to political importance. The impotent socialist leaders
did not even venture to call upon te armed workers for resistance. Te
" world-liberating" social democracy ignominiously went to ruin as a
worm-eaten wreck. Nationalism now raised to the highest pitch, easily annihi
lated te parliamentry republic, and began to organize all the forces of the
nation for a new wa for world power.
5. AMERICAN CAPITALISM
The white population of the U.S.A. descends fom European iruigrants
who, most energetic and independent elements of teir peoples, crossed the
ocean to escape oppression, persecution and poverty. From the first settlements
on the Eastern coast, with its commercial towns, they gradually expanded over
the entire continent exterminating in continuous fight the Indian natives, cear
ing the forests, subduing te wilderess, and converting it into cultivated land.
all these pioneers, as a necessary character developed a strong indivdual
ism, a daring adventurous spirit, sef-reliant, hard, alert, watchful and relentless
in the surrounding dangers, and a love of liberty taking and making its own
right. Not only in the forerunnes, the trappers and farmers, but also in the
deaers, the artsans, the business men, who followed them, populating the new
towns and creatig a new existence for themselves. Whereas in old Europe
everybody found himself i fxed conditions, here everytg had to be shaped
anew. te hard and pitiless struggle for life, that left no time for spiritual con
centration, in the creation of great enterprises and fortunes, respect for success
in life and business became the outstanding character of Aerican society.
Thus conditions for both capital and labor were diferent fom Europe. To
keep the workers from trying their luck as pioneers in the wide spaces, high
wages must be paid, thus frthering the introduction of labor-saving machines.
This privileged position, fxed by craft unions, could be upheld until modern
times. Then in the last decades of the IU'
h
centry, destitute masses of immi
grants from Southern and Eastrn Europe began to pour in and !u the facto
ries and slums of te Easter towns with cheap labor power.
And in the present century free soil came to an end.
.
THE FOE 1 25
Capital was the leading power in the 1 9t
h
century expansion. It had not to
fght a feudal power or class; with the throwing off, in the war of independence,
of the domination of English 18t
h
century commercial capital, it had won com
plete mastery. Te absence of any feudal tradition, of all respect for privilege
of birth made respect for propert, for te realit of dollar power paramount.
American capital soon played the chef role in opening up the Western wilds by
digging canas and building railways. Through its friends in Congress it was
rewarded for this service to te nation with big allotments for exploitation, pay
ing not more tha the bribes, the form by which the politcians got their share
of the profits. The timber of the endless woods, the fertile soil along the rai
ways , the rich ore deposits in the earth, all became property of the capitalists.
And i their wake colonists from the Eastern States or from Europe populated
the West, famers and business men fnding their villages and towns ready
made, lumber workers and miners ordering their life by the law of the wld,
soon to be substituted by the organs of Goverment and public law.
The seizure of te natral riches of an immense virgn continent laid the
foundation for the rapid growth of big fortunes. In Europe this seizure and
exploitation had been the task of a large citizen cass during many centuries;
thus te profit-economically a form of rent-was spread out in the form of
moderate wealth for the many, only exceptionally-as with the Fugger family in
Augsburg-creating big fortunes. In America this process in the secnd half of
the 19t
h
century concentrated within a short tme, rasing rapidly a small class
of supercapitalists, of multimillionaires.
The big American fortunes have not been formed by regular accumulation
of industrial proft, but in the frst instance by the accession, partly through
trafc monopolies, patly through political coruption, of valuable priary
materials. In stubborn mutual fight, destroyng or subduing larger and smaler
competitors, big monopolies were erected that laid a heavy tribute upon the
entire population and snatched part of the industrial surplus value from the
hands of the industrial capitalists. More rapidly and more ruthlessly than else
where the supremacy of big capital over the entire bourgeoisie, the power of big
fmance over industry, and the concentration of capitalist power in a small num
ber of big cncerns was established. Monopoly of course does not mean a full
hundred per cent control over a branc: uit reaches only, say, 80 per cent, out
siders are harmless and usually follow the lead of the monopolists . So there
remains a border region for individual efforts of smaller capitalists to wrestle
themselves up to secondary importance. Neither are all of the profts pocketed
by the monopolists themselves ; part of the shares is left to the capitalist public
to gamble with ad to enjoy the dividends without thereby having any share in
the leading of the business. I this way at the same tie all the smaller capital
ists' property comes at the disposal of the monopolist, to use it in their strate-
126 WORKERS' COUNCILS
_ of mutual capital warfare, just as in olden times the kings made use of the
combined fighting power of the dependent barons.
Yet, what remans as income for the monopolists is so enormous that it can
not be consumed or spent by themselves. Wit such boundless richness the
motive of securing wealth for luxurious satisfaction of al needs is absent; many
of th.e monopolist leaders, indeed, live rather frugally. What drives them is the
striving for power, for expansion of their domination over ever wder domains
of economic life-an automatic impulse of business instinct swollen to irra
tionality. The example was set long ago already by John D. Rockefeller, whose
yearly income was then estmated at nearly a hundred millons of dollars. No
luxury, however crazy, was able to absorb the stream of gold flowing into his
hands; he did not concern himself wit the spending, and left it to an office of
secretaries. No young spendthrifts could, as in olden times, destroy the for
tunes collected by their fathers; this property has now become an unssailable
family possession. As a new feudal class "Aerica's sixty families" hold sway
over the sources of life of society, living in their castles and large estates, some
times possessors of almost a whole State, as the Dupont family in Delaware.
They are mightier than the kings of old, who only could try to squeeze their
share out of the profits of the capitalist class; they are the masters of the very
capital power of society, of all the rapidly growing productive forces of a rap
idly developing contient.
Power over production means power over politics, because politics is one of
the basic means to secure power over production. Politics in America was
always different from politics in Europe, because here there was no feudal class
to beat down. In its fight against the domination of the feudal class the
European bourgeoisie acquired its sense for the supremacy of class interests
above personal interests, thus in their pursuit developing idealism and self-sac
rifice. So in Europe politics was a doman where disinterested politicias could
work for sublime principles, for the "public interest." In America there was no
need and no room for such class-politics ; interests from te beginning were per
sonal or group interests. Thus politics was business, a feld for pursuit of per
sonal interests like any other field of activity. Only in later years, when the
working class awoke and began to talk of socialism, as its counterpart came up
some talk of public interests of society, and the first traces of reform politics.
The result, accepted as inevitable, was that politics often is graft. In their
first rise the monopolists had no other means than direct bribing. Often the
word is quoted as spoken by John D. , that everybody can be bought if you only
know his price. A continuous fight on the part of the smaller capitalists, of com
petitors, and of spokesmen of public honesty, before the courts in the legisla
tive bodies tried i vain either to punish or to redress fraud, or to so much as
disclose truth. It was on such an occasion that a senator friend of the accused
millionaire exclaimed: "We ought to pass a law that no man wort a hundred
THE FOE 127
of million dollars should be tried for a crime." Indeed, the masters of capital
staud above law; why, then, maintain the troublesome appeaance that they are
equal citizens, subject to law?
When the power of big business becomes more frmly rooted and unassail
able, these coarse methods gradually became superfluous. Now it had a large
attendance of friends, of clients and agents, of dependent proxies, all men of
standing, put into well-paid honorable ofices, infuential in politics as in all
public life. They are or they influence the party leaders, they form the caucus
es, they manage everythg behind the scenes at the party congresses and select
congress members, senators aud candidates for the presidency. The hundred
thousands of dollars necessary for te noisy election campaigns are paid by big
business; each of the big interests has one of the two great contending parties
as its agent, and some of the largest even pay both. To fight this "corrupton,"
or at least to expose it by publicity their adversaries succeeded in enacting that
each party had to give public account of its finances, thus to show the sources
of its fnds. It was a blow in the air; it created no sensation aud not even sur
prise: it appeared that public opinion was entirey prepared to accept the dom
ination of politics by big business as a self-evident fact of common knowledge.
The press of course is entirely in the hands of big capital The big papers
are bought, or an unlimited amount of dollars is spent to have new papers
founded by its retainers. Most importaut here are the popular local paper pro
vding the spiritual nurture for the millions of voters. At the sae time the lead
ing papers offer to the educated classes, in order to direct their opinions, able
articles on science, art, literature, foreign politics, carefully written by good
experts. No independent press of wide circulation is possible. Sometimes a
cross-headed rich idealist founded a paper open to exposure and criticism of
the secret dealings of the capitalists. Attempts were then made to capture or to
undermine it; if they failed, its revelations, its opinions, its existence even were
never alluded to in the other papers, in a conspiracy of silence, so that its influ
ence remained entirely negligible.
'Ibis press domnates the spiitual life of the America people. Te most
important thing is not even the hiding of all truth about the reig of big finance.
Its ai still more is the education to thoughtlessness. All attention is directed
to coarse sensations, everything is avoided that could arouse thinking. Papers
are not meaut to be read-the small type is already a hidrance-but in a rapid
survey of the fat headlines to inform the public on unimport news items, on
family trifngs of the ric, on sexual scandals, on crimes of the underworld, or
boxng matches. The aim of the capitalist press all over the world, the divert
ing of te attention of the masses fom the reality of socia development, from
their own deepest interests, nowhere succeeds with such thoroughness as in
America.
128 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Stil more than by the papers the masses are influenced by broadcasting and
flm. These products of most perfect science, destined at one time to be the
fnest educational instruments of mankind, now in the hands of capitalism have
been tured into the strongest means to uphold its rule by stupefying the
minds. Because after nerve-straining fatigue the movie ofers relaxation and dis
traction by means of simple visual impressions that make no demand on the
intellect, the masses get used to accept thoughtlessly and willingly all its cn
ning and shrewd propaganda. It reflects the ugliest sides of middle-class socie
ty. It turs all attention ether to sexual life, in this society-by the absence of
communit feelngs and fght for freedom-the only s ource of strong passions,
or to brutal violence; masses educated to rough violence instead of to socia
knowledge are not dangerous to capitalism. Broadcasting by its very nature is
an orga of rulers hip for dominating the masses, through incessant one-sided
allocations forcing its ideas, its viewpoints, its truths and its lies upon the lis
teners, withont possibility of discussion or protest. As the genuine instruments
of spiritual domin.ation of the millions of separate individuals by an organized
dictatorshp it is used by big capital to assert its power.
Not onl to the coarse work of mass propaganda through the papers, but
also to the more subtle influencing of deeper spiritual life the masters of capi
tal extend their care. Reviews are bought or founded, richly illustrated
Weeklies or Monthlies are edited and composed by able men of letters and
expert collaborators. They are full of instructive and attractive stuf carefully
selected i. such a way that the cultured and intellectual part of the citizens learn
to feel and to think just as monopolist capita wishes them to, namely, that their
country is a great country, and a free country, and a young country, destined
to a far greater future, and-though there are some defects to be corrected by
deserving citizens-the best possible of worlds. Here the young intellectuals fnd
their opportunities ; if they should be inclined to thwarting the mighty, to inde
pendent criticism, to sharp oppositon they are ejected, igored, and silenced,
hampered everywhere, perhaps morally ruined; if docile and ready to serve the
masters the way is open to well remunerated positions and public honors.
Science, too, is subject to the millonaire class . The English tradition of pr
vate endowment not only of churches, hospitals and orphanages, but also of
universities, professorships and libraries, has been followed in America from
the beglming. Enormous sums of money have been spent by Aerican ml
lionaires of course not all of them, and not even the rchest-on institutes of arts
and sciences, on museums, galleries, universities, laboratories, hospitals, obser
vatories, libraries. Sometimes from idealistic motives, sometimes in commemo
ration of a relative, sometimes for mere pride, always with an instinct of justice
in it: where they had seized for their own the riches tat elsewhere went to soci
ety at lrge, theirs was the dut to provide for such special, large, cultural
expenses not inunediately felt as needed but yet necessary as the basis of soci-
THE FOE 129
ety in the long run. Spending in this way only a small part of their wealt they
acquired fame as protectors of science, as benefactors of mankind. Their names
are inscribed in big golden letters on the fronts of the proud buildings : Field
Museum, McCormick University, Widener Library, Caregie Institute, Lck
Observatory, Rockefeller Foundation. And this means more than simply the
satisfaction of personal pride. It means that the entire world of science becomes
their adherents and considers thei exploitation of the American people more
desirable condition for the advancement of science than when in other coun
tries money for science must be extorted in meagre anlOunts from uninterest
ed governments. Founding and endowing universities means controlling them;
thus the millionaires, by means of their agents who act as presidents and over
seers, can see to it that no dangerous elements as teachers may infuence the
ideas of the students.
The spiritual power that big capital wields i this way hardly requires any
sacrifces on their side. If it left all these expenses to Government to provide it
would have to pay for them in the form of taxes. Now such foundations are
exempt from taxes and often are used as a means to escape taxation. The dona
tions consist of shares of large enterprises; what these institutions receive is the
dividend, and money produce for which the capitalists have no other use. The
voting power attached to the shares, however, needed in the manpulation and
fnancial strategy of the masters, the only thing that concerns them, by carefully
devised statutes is securely kept in the hands of their agents.
Thus in a fIrm gip the monopoly capitalists dominate industry, traffc, pro
duction, public life, politics, the church of course, the press , the reviews, the
universities, science and art. It is the most highly developed form of class dom
ination, of an all powerful small minority over the entire bourgeoisie, and thus
over the entire American people, "United States incorporated." It is the most
perfect form of capitalist rule, because it is based on democracy. By the demo
cratic forms of life it is firmly rooted in societ; it leaves all the other casses
the smaller bourgeoisie, the intellectuals, the famers, the mass of the workers
convinced tat they are free men in a free country, struggling of course against
mighty social forces , but stll master of their lot, choosing their own way. It has
been built up, gradually and instinctively, in a shrewdly composed organization
of all economic and spiritual forces . The main part of business, as well as of
spiritual life is interwoven into a system of dependencies, accepted as existing
conditons, camoufaged in an appearance of independent action and free indi
viduality. Whoever tries opposition is thrown out and destroyed; whoever col
laborates willingly, though obliged to continual struggle with competitors, fnds
his place in the system.
Against this domination of the big monopolists the capitalist world has no
means of resistance or redress. Hundeds of times, in the most vaed ways,
attempts have been made to break their power, by action before the courts, by
1 30 WORKERS' COUNCILS
legislation against trusts and combinations, by election campaigns, by new
political parties wit new slogns. But it was all in vain. Of course; for it would
have meant return to unorganized small business, contrary to the essential
nature of social development. Attempts to prepare the way for further devel
opment towards collective producton, by means of fundamental criticism, were
made in the propaganda of "technocracy" by a group of intellectuals and engi
neers, as well as in the action of the Social-Democratic Party. But their forces
were too weak. The bulk of the intellectual class feels well off and content with
the system. And as long as skiled labor succeeds in maintaning its position by
means of its unions, a powerful revolutionary class-action of the workers can
not be expected.
The American workers have always felt the hard hand of capital and had
to fght ever again against its pressure. Though simply a fght over wages and
working conditions, it was fought with al the ferceness that under the wild
conditions of unbrdled business egotism accompanied all figt for mere per
sonal interests. What appeared in such conflicts beteen labor and capital was
first the solidarity of te entire class of business men with big capital. It was an
instinctve class-consciousness, fanned to white-heat by the press that, entirely
in the hands of capital's servants, denounced the strikers for forged outrages
and called them anarchists and criminals. And secondly the spirit of lawless
ness and violence in the same class, inheritance of the pioneer conditons, espe
cially vivid in the far West. The old methods of wild warfare against the
Indians and of taking law into their own hands were now used against the new
foe, the rebelling class , the s tikers. Armed bands of citizens promoted to civic
guards and thus qualifed to any lawless deed of violence, imprisoned and m
treated the strikers and applied every for of terrorism. The workers, their old
independent pioneer spirit not yet broken, resisted with all meas, so that
strikes often took the character of smal civil wars in which case of course the
workers usually had the worst of it. In the industrial towns of the East a well
organized police force, strong fellows convinced that strikers are criminals,
stand i the service of mayors and town councils who themselves are installed
as its agent by big capital. When in big plants or in mining districts stikes
broke out, troops of rowdies from the underworld, procured by the Pinkerton
offce, sworn in by the authorites as special constables, were let loose upon the
workers. Thus in America only in extreme cases the workers on stike might
hope for the amount of right and order as is the rule, e. g. , in England.
this was no hindrace for the workers to fght. The Aerican labor
movement has shown brilliant examples of fghting spirit, courage and devo
tion, though they always acted in separate groups only. From now on, howev
er, new methods of fght, greater unit, new forms of organization will gradu
ally be enforced upon them. Conditions are changing; there is no more open
land to be settled by pioneers-though, more broadly considered, wit better
THE FOE 1 31
methods the continent migt feed many more millions of inhabitants. Now it
will be more difficult to uphold the old wage standards. Since the stream of
immigration has been stopped the process of Americanization of the old inllli
grant is equalizng the working and fighting conditions, and prepares the basis
for an all encompassing unity of class. The further conditions will have to be
created by the further exansion of capitalism.
American capital is now entering upon world politics. Up till now al its
time and force was occupied by organizing and raising itself by taking posses
sion of its continent. Then the first world war made it the paramount fnancial
power. The American supply of war materials to Europe had t be paid, first
with European property of American shares, and then with gold and obliga
tions. London lost to New York its place as money-center of the world. the
European gold assembled in America, propert of the American capitalist class.
Its congestion already brought a world crisis, because there was no market for
an industrial production built upon this abundance of gol d.
Such a market, however, can be created. Thronged in the fertile plains and
valleys of Easter and Southern Asia, many hundreds of millions of people,
neary half the population of the earth, are living as yet in home producton or
small scale craft and tillage. To convert these intelligent and industious mass
es frst into buyers of industral products and then into industrial and agrarian
workers in the service of capital is the big opportunity that now faces American
capitalism. Te supplying of this enormous market will secure an age of rise
and prosperity for American industry. The investment of capital, te building
of railways and factories, the founding of new industries in those thickly pop
ulated countries, prolnises immense profts from capitalist exploitation and
immense increase of power. It is true that, by creating of a capitalist China a
mighty competitor will be raised for the future, with the prospect of future
world wa farther ahead; but that is of no concern now. For the moment te
concern is to secure this market by ousting other world powers, especially the
strongly developed Japanese capitalism tat was at work to found an
East-Asiatic Empire under its lead. World politcs means wars ; that will intro
duce militarism in America, with all its constraint, with its barrack drill, with
its restriction of old libertes, with more violence and heavier pressure.
Camouflaged of course in democratic forms, but still creating new conditons
of life, new feelings and ideas, a new spiritual outlook, somehow resembling
those of old Europe. Then the American workers, partly particpating in the
power and prosperit of the rise, party pressed down more heavily by more
powerful masters, will needs develop more powerful forms of class fght.
American capitalism built up a power over society and the working class
unequalled over the world. Social and political democrac afford a far more
sold foundation than any dictatorship could give. Its power rests on its con
centrated ownershp of all means of production, on its money, on its unre-
132 WORKERS' COUNCILS
stricted power over State and Goverment, on its spiritual domination over the
entire society. Against a rebellious working class it will be able to bring all the
organs of the State into sharer action, to organize still larger bodies of anned
defenders, through its press monopoly to incite public opinion into a spiritual
terrorism; and when necessary, democracy may even be replaced by open dic
tatorship. So the working class also will have to rise to a far greater height of
power than ever before. Against a more powerful foe higher demands of unity,
of insight, of devotion must be satsfed anywhere else in the world were need
ed. Their development doubtless requires a long period of fght and growth.
The chief weakness of the American working class is its middle class mentali
ty, its entire spiritual SUbjection under middle class ideas, the spell of democra
cy. They will be able to thow it off only by raising their mnds to a deeper class
consciousness, by binding themselves together into a stronger class unity, by
widening their insight to a higher class-culture tha anywhere else in the world.
The working class in America will have to wage against world capitalism
the most difcult, at the same time the decisive fight for their and the world's
freedom.
6. DEMOCRCY
Democracy was the natral for of organization of the primitive cornmu
nities of man. Self-rule and equality of all the tribe members determined in
their assemblies all the comon activities. The sae was the case in the frst
rise of burgherdom, in the towns of Greece in antiquity, of Italy and Banders
in the Middle Ages. Democracy here was not the expression of a teoretical
conception of equal rights of all mankind, but a practical need of the econOIIl
ic system; so the journeymen in the guilds took as little part i it as the slaves
in antiquity; and larger propert usually carried larger influence in the assem
blies. Democracy was the form of collaboration and self-rule of free and equal
producers, each master of his own means of production, hs soil or his shop and
his tools. In ancient Athens it was te regular citizens' assemblies that decided
on the public affair, whereas the administative functions, held for small
ods only, circulated by lot. In the mediaeval towns the artisans were organized
in guilds, and the town goverment, when not in the hands of patrician fami
lies, consisted of the leaders of the guilds. When at the end of the middle ages
the mercenaries of the princes got ascendancy over the amed citizens the free
dom and democracy of the towns were suppressed.
With the rise of capitalism te era of middle class democracy begins, fun
damentally though not at once actually. Under capitalism all men are inde
pendent owners of commodities, all having the same right and freedom to sell
them at their will-the unpropertied proletarians own and sell their labor power.
The revolutions that abolished feudal privileges, proclaimed freedom, equality
THE FOr: 133
and property. Because in tis fght the combincd force of all citizens was nced
ed, the promulgated constitutions bore a strongly democratic character. But the
actual constitutions were different; the industrial capitalists, as yet not very
numerous and powerfl, were in fear lest the lower classes whom they trod
down by competition and exploitation, should control legislation. So to these
classes, excluded frm the ballot, during the entire 19t
h
century political
democracy is program and goal of their political activities. They are anmated
by the idea tat through the establishment of dcmocracy, through universal suf
frage, they will win power over government and in that way be able to restrain
or evcn to abolish capitalism.
And, to all appearance, this campaign succeeds. Gradually the suffrage is
extended, and finally in nearly all countries the equal vote for all men and
women for the election of members of parliament is established. So this time
often is spoken of as the age of democracy. Now it becomes appaent that
democracy is not a danger for capitalism, not weakness but strength.
Capitalism stands on a solid basis; a numerous middle class of wealthy indus
trial employers and business men dominates society and the wage eaming
workers have found their acknowledged place. It is now understood that a
social order gains in solidity when all the grievances, all the misery and dis
content, otherwise a sourcc of rcbelion, find a regular and normalized outlet
in tlle form of criticism ad charge, of parliamentary protest and party strife.
In cpitalist society there is a perpetual contest of interests between the classes
and groups ; in its development, in the continuous changes of structre and
shifting of industries new groups with new interests arise and demand recogni
tion. With suffrage universal, not artificially limited, they all find their spokes
men; any new interest, according to its signifcance and power, ca carry its
weight in legislation. Thus parliamentary democracy is the adequate political
foml for rising and developing capitalism.
Yet the fear for the rule of the masses could not do without warrants against
"misuse" of democracy. 1e exploited masses must have the conviction that by
their ballot they are master of their fate, so that if they are not content it is their
own fault. But the structure of the political fabric is devised in such a way that
government through the people is not govemment by the people.
Parliamentary democracy is only partial, not coIlplete deIlocracy.
Only one day in four or five years the people have power ever the dele
gates ; and on election day noisy propaganda and advertising, old slogans and
new promises are so overwhelming that there is hardly any possibility of criti
cal judgent. The voters have not to designate tusted spokesmen of their
own: candidates are presented and recommended by the big political parties,
selected by the party caucuses ; and they know that every vote on an outsider
is practically thrown away. The workers adapted themselves to the system by
forming their own party-in GerIlany the Social Democratic Party, in England
134 WORKERS' COUNCILS
the Labor Part-playing an influential role in parliament, sometimes even pro
viding cabinet ministers. Ten, however, its parliamentarians had to play the
gae. Besides their special concern, social laws for the workers, most questions
subjected to their decisions relate to capitalist interests, to problems and diff
culties of capitalist society. They get used to be caretakers of these interests and
to deal with these problems in the scope of existing society. They become
skilled politicians, who just like the politicians of other parties constitute an
almost independent power, above the people. ,
Moreover, these parliaments chosen by the people have not full power over
the State. Next to tem, as a guaratee aganst too much infuence of the mass
es stand other bodies, privileged or aristocratic-Senate, House of Lords, First
Chamber-whose consent is necessary for the laws. Then the ultimate decision
is mostly in the hands of princes or presidents, living entirely in circles of aris
tocratic and big capitaist interests, They appoint the State secretaries or cabi
net ministers directing the bureaucracy of officials, that do the real work of gov
erning, By the separation of the legislative and the executive part of govern
ment the chosen parliamentarans do not themselves govern; besides law-mak
ing they can only indirectly influence the actual governors, by way of criticism
or of refusing money. What is always given as the characteristic of real democ
racy: that the people chooses its rulers, is not realized in parliamentary democ
racy. Of course not; for its purpose is to secure the rule of capitalism through
the illusion of the masses that they have to decide their own fate.
So it is idle talk to speak of England, of France, of Holland as democratic
counties-only for Switzerland this may ft in a way. Politcs is the refection of
the state of feelings and ideas in the people. In custom and feeling there is the
spirit of inequality, the respect for the "upper" classes, old or new; the worker
as a rule stands cap in hand before the master. It is a remnant of feudalism, not
eradicated by the formal declaration of social and political equality, adapted to
the new conditions of a new class rule. The rising bourgeoisie did not know
how to express its new power otherwse than by donning the garb of the feu
dal lords and demanding fom te exploited masses the corresponding profes
sions of respect. Exploitation was made still more irritating by the arrogance of
the capitalist asking servility also in manners. So in the workers' struggle the
indignation of humiliated self-respect gives a deeper coloring to the fight
aganst msery.
In Aerica it is just the reverse, In the crossing of the ocean all remem
brances of feudalism are left behind. In the hard struggle for life on a wild con
tinent every man was valued for his personal worth. As an inheritance of the
independent pioneer spirit a complete democratic mddle class feeling pervades
all classes of American society. This inbor feeling of equality neither knows
nor tolerates the arrogance of birth and rank; the actual power of the man and
his dollar is the only thing that counts. It suffers and tolerates exploitation the
THE FOE 135
more unsuspectingly ad willingly, as this exploitation presents itself in more
democratic socia forms. So Aerican democracy was the firmest base and is
still the strongest force of capitalism. The millionaire masters ae fuly con
scious of this value of democracy for their rule, and all spiritual powers of the
country collaborate to strengthen these feelings. Even colonial policy is domi
nated by them. Public opinion in America abhors the idea that it should sub
jugate and dominate foreig peoples and races. It makes them its allies, under
their own free government; then te automatic power of financial supremacy
makes them more dependent than any formal dependence could do. It must be
understood, moreover, that the stong democratic character of social feelings
and customs does not implicate corresponding political institutions. In
American government, just as in Europe, the constitution is composed in such
a way as to secure the rule of a governing minority. The President of the U.S.
may shake hands with the poorest felow; but president and Senate have more
power than King and upper houses have in most European goverments.
The inner untrutfuhless of political democracy is not an artful trick invent
ed by deceitful politicians. It is the reflection, hence an instinctive consequence,
of the inner contradictions of the capitalist system. Capitalism is based upon
the equality of citizens, private owers, free to sell their commodities-the cap
italists sell the products, the workers sell their labor power. By thus acting as
free and equal bargainers they find exloitation and class antagonism as the
result: the capitalist master ad exploiter, the worker actually the slave. Not by
violating the principle of juridical equality, but by acting according to it the
result is a situation tat actually is its violation. Ths is the iner contradiction
of capitalist production, indicating that it can be only a transition system. So it
can give no surprise tat te same contradiction appears in its political form.
Te workers canot overcome this capitalist contradiction, their exloita
tion and slavery proceeding from their legal libert, as long as they do not rec
ogize the political contradiction of middle-class democacy. Democracy is the
ideology they brought along with them from the former middle-class revolu
tionary fghts ; it is dear to their hearts as an inheritance of youthful illusions.
As long as they stick to these illusions, believe in political democracy and pro
clam it thei program they remain captives in its webs, struggling in vain to
free themselves. In the class struggle of today this ideology is the most serious
obstacle to liberation.
When in 1 91 8 in Germany military Government broke down and political
power fell to the workers unrestrained by a State Power above, they were free
to buid up thei social organization. Everywhere workers' and soldiers' coun
cils sprang up, patly from intuition of necessities, partly from the Russian
example. But the spontaneous acton did not correspond to the theory in their
heads, the democracy theory, impressed by long years of social-democratic
teaching. And this theory now was urged upon them with vehemence by their
1 36 WORKERS' COUNCILS
political and union leaders, To these leaders political democracy is the element
where they feel at home, in managing affairs as spokesmen of the working
cass, in discussion and fght with opponents in parliament and conference
room, What they aspired at was not the workers master of production instead
of the capitalists, but they themselves at the head of State and society, instead
of the aristocratic and capitalist offcials . This for them was meaning and con
tents of the German revolution. So they gave out, in unison with the entire
bourgeoisie, the slogan of a "National Assembly" to establish a new democrat
ic constitution. Against the revolutonary groups advocating council organiza
tion ad speaking of dictatorship of the proletaiat tey proclaimed legal equal
it of all citizens as a simple demand of justice. Moreover, the councis, they
said, if the workers were set on tem, could be included ito the new constit
tion and thereby even get an acknowledged legal status. Thus the mass of the
workers, wavering between the opposite slogans, their heads full of the ideas of
middle-class democracy, offered no resistance. With the election and meeting
of the Nationa Assembly at Weimar the German bourgeoisie acquired a new
foothold, a centre of power, an established Government. In this way started the
course of events that fmalIy led to the victory of National Socialism.
Something analogous, on a minor scale, was what happened in the civil war
in Spain, 1 935-1936. In the industrial town of Barcelona the workers having at
the revolt of the generals stormed the barracks and drawn the soldiers to teir
side, were master of the town. Their armed groups dominated the street, man
taned order, took care of the food provision, and, whilst the chief factories
were kept at work under the directon of teir syndicalist unions, waged war
upon the fascist troops in adjoining provinces. T.en their leaders entered into
te democratic government of the Catalan republic, consisting of middle-class
republicans allied with socialist and communist politicias. This meant that the
workers instead of fighting for thei class had to joi and to adjust themselves
to the common cause. Weakened by democratic illusions and iner dissensions
teir resistance was crushed by armed troops of the Catalan goverment. And
soon, as a symbol of restored middle-class order, you could see as in olden
times workers' women, waitig before the bakers shops, brutalized by mount
ed police. The working class once more was down, the first step in the down
fall of the republic, that finally led to the dictatorshp of the military leaders.
In social crisis and political revolution, when a government breaks down,
power falls into the hands of the working masses; and for the propertied class,
for capitalism arises the problem how to wrest it out of their hands. So it was
in the past, so it may happen in the future. Democracy is the means , the appro
priate instrument of persuasion. The arf'1lments of formal and legal quality
have to induce the workers to give up their power and to let their organization
be inserted as a subordinate part into the State structure.
THE FOE 1 37
Against this the workers have t o carry i n them a strong convicton that
council organization is a higher and more perfect form of equality. It realizes
social equality; it is the form of equality adapted to a society consciously dom
inating producton and life. It might be asked whether the term democracy fts
here, because the ending-'-cracy'-indicates domination by force, which here is
lacking. Though the individuals have to conform to the whole there is no gov
errnent above the people; people itself is govenment. Council organization is
the very means by which working mankind, witout need of a ruling govern
ment, organizes its vital activities. Adhering, then, to the emotional value
attached of old to the word democracy we may say that council organization
represents the higher form of democracy, the te democracy of labor. Political
democracy, middle-class democracy, at its best can be no more than a formal
democracy; it gves te same legal rights to everybody, but does not care
whether this imples security of life; because economic life, because production
is not concerned. The worker has his equal right to sell his labor power; but he
is not certain that he will be able to sell it. Council democac, on the contrary,
is actual democracy since it secures life to all collaborating producers, free and
equal masters of the sources of their life. Te equal right in deciding needs not
to be secured by any formal regulating paragraph; it is realized in that the
work, in every pat, is regulated by those who do the work. That parasites tak
ing no part in producton automatically exclude themselves from taking part in
the decisions, cannot be considered as a lack in democracy; not their person
but their function excludes them.
It is often said that in te modern world the point of dispute is between
democracy and dictatorship; and that the working class has to throw in its full
weight for democrac. The real meaning of this statement of contrast is that
capitalist opinion is divided whether capitalism better maintains its sway with
soft deceitul democracy, or with hard dictatorial constraint. It is the old prob
lem of wheter rebellious slaves are kept down better by kindness or by terror.
The slaves, if asked, of course prefer kind teatment to terror; but if they let
themselves be fooled so a to mistake soft slavery for freedom, it is pernicious
to te cause of their freedom. For the working class in the present time te real
issue is between council organization, the tue democracy of labor, and the
appaent, deceitfl middle-class democracy of formal rights. In proclaiming
council democracy the workers transfer te fight from political form to eco
nomic contents. Or rater-since politics is only form and means for economy
for the sounding political slogan tey substitute the revolutionizing political
deed, the seizure of the means of production. The slogan of political democra
cy serves to detract the attention of the workers from their true goal. It must
be the concern of the workers, by putting up the principle of council organiza
tion, of actual democracy of labor, to give true expression to the great issue
now moving society.
1 38 WORKERS' COUNCILS
7 FASCISM
Fascism was the response of the capitalist world to the challenge of social
ism. Sociaism proclamed word revoluton that was to free the workers from
exploitation and suppression. Capitalism responds with a national revolution
curbing them, powerless, under heavier exploitation. The socalist working
class was confdent that it could vanquish the middle-class order by making use
of the very middle-class right ad law. The bourgeoisie responds by snapping
its fingers at right and law. The socalist workers spoke of planned and organ
ized production to make an end of capitalism. Te capitalists respond with an
organization of capitalism tat makes it stronger than ever before. AU previous
years capitaism was on the defense, only able apparenty to slacken the
advance of socialism. In fascism it consciously turns to attack.
The new political ideas and systems, for which from Italy the name Fascism
came into use, are the product of modern economic development. Te growth
of big business, the in"Tcase in size of the enterprises, the subjection of smal
business, the combination into concerns and trusts, the concentation of bank
capital ad its domination over industry brought an increasing power into the
hands of a decreasing number of financial magnates and kings of industry.
World economy and society at large were dominated ever more by small
groups of mutually fghting big capitalists, sometimes successfl stock jobbers,
sometimes pertinacious shrewd business tactcians, seldom restricted by moral
scruples, always active sinewy men of energy.
At the end of the 19t
h
century these economic changes brought about a cor
responding change i the ideas. The doctrine of equality of man, inherited
from rising capitalism with its multitude of equal business men, gives way to
the doctrie of inequality. The worship of success and the admiration for the
strong personality-leading and treading down te ordiay people-distorted
in Nietzsche's "superman"-reflect the realites of new capitalism. The lords of
capital, risen to power through success in gambling and swindling, through the
ruin of numberless small existences, are now styled the "grand old men" of
their country. At the same time the "masses" ever more are spoken of with con
tempt. In such utterances it is the down trodden pett bourgeoisie, dependent,
without social power and without aspiations , bent entirely on silly amuse
ments-including the congenia workg masses without cass consciousness
that serves as the prototype for the will-less, spiritless, characterless mass des
tined to be led and commanded by strong leaders.
In politics the same lie of thought appears in a departure from demo"Tacy.
Power over capita implies power over Government; diect power over
Goverent is vndicated as the natural right of the economic masters.
Parliaments evermore serve to mask, by a food of oratory, the rule of big cap
ital behind the semblance of self-determination of the people. So the cant of the
politicians, the lack of inspiring principles, te pett bargaining behind the
THE :FOE 139
scenes, intensifies the conviction in critical observers not acquaited with the
deepest causes that parliamentarism is a pool of corruption and democracy a
chimera. And tat also in poltcs the strong personaity must preail, as inde
pendent ruler of the State.
Another effect of modem capitalism was the increasing spirit of violence.
Whereas in the rise of capitalism free trade, world peace and collaboraton of
the peoples had occupied the minds, reality soon had brought war between
new and old capitalist Powers. The need of expansion in foreign continents
involves big capital into a fierce fight for world power and colonies. Now
forcible subjection, cruel extermiation and barbarous exploitation of colored
races are defended by the doctrine of the superiority of the white race, destined
to dominate and to civilize them and justified in exploiting natural richness
wherever it may be. New ideals of splendor, power, world domination of the
own nation replace the old ideals of freedom, equaity and world peace.
Humanitaianism is ridiculed as an obsolete effeminacy; force and violence
bring gTeatness.
Thus the spiritual elements of a new social and political system had silent
ly grown up, visible everywhere i moods and opinions of the ruling class and
its spokesmen. To bring them to overt action and s upremacy the strong con
cussions of the world war with ensuing distress and chaos were necessary. It is
often said tat fascism is the genuine political doctrine of big capitalism. This
is not tue; America can show that its undisturbed sway is better secured by
political democracy. If, however, in its upward struggle it falls short against a
stonger foe, or is threatened by a rebellious working class, more forcible and
violent modes of domination are needed. Fascism is the political system of big
capitalsm in emergency. It is not created by conscious premeditation; it sprang
up, after much uncertain groping, as a practical deed, followed afterwards by
theory.
m Italy the post-war crisis ad depression had brought discontent among
the bourgeoisie, disappointed in its national hopes; and had brought an
impulse to action among the workers, excited by the Russian and the German
revolutions. Strikes gave no relief, owing to soaring prices; the demand for
workers' control, inspired by syndicalist and bolshevist ideas, led to shop occu
pation, not hindered by the weak and wavering goverment. It looked like a
revolution, but it was only a gesture. The workers, without clear insight or pur
pose, did not know what to do with it. They tried, in vain, to produce for the
market as a kind of productive co-operation. After an arrangement of te tade
unions with the employers they peacefully cleared out.
But this was not the ed. The bourgeoisie, terror-stricken for a moment,
attaied in its deepest feelings, fuming revenge now that disdai succeeded fear,
organized its direct action. Bands of active pugnacious middle-class youths, fed
with strong nationalist teachings, full of instinctive hatred against the workers,
140 WORKERS' COUNCILS
their unions, thei co-operatves, their socialism, encouraged by bourgeoisie
and land-owners providing money for arms and uniforms, began a campaign
of terrorism. They destroyed workers ' meeting rooms, ill-treated labor leaders,
sacked and burnt co-operatives and newspaper ofices, attacked meetings, first
in the smaller places, gradualy in the bigger towns. The workers had no means
of effcient response; wont to peaceful organizing work under the protection of
law, addicted to parliamentarism and tade union fight, they were powerless
against the new forms of violence.
Soon the fascist groups combined into stronger organization, the fascist
party, its ranks eve more joined by energetic youths from the bourgeoisie and
the intellectuals. Here, indeed, these classes saw a rescue from the impending
threat of socialism. Now the riots grew into a systematic destructon and anni
hilation of everything the workers had built up, the ill-teatent grew into
unpunished murder of prominent socialists. When at last the liberal ministers
made some hesitating attempts to suppress the outrages they were turned out,
on the menace of civil war, and the leaders of fascism, appointed in their place,
became masters of the State. An active organied minority had imposed its will
upon the passive majority. It was not a revoluton; the same ruling class per
sisted; but this class had got new managers of its interests, proclaiming new
political principles.
Now fascist theory, too, was formulated. Authority and obedience are the
fundamental ideas. Not the good of the citizens but the good of the State is the
highest aim. The State, embodying the community, stands above the entirety
of the citizens. It is a supreme being, not deriving its authorit from the wl of
the citzens, but from its own rght. Government, hence, is no democracy, but
dictatorship. Above the subjects stand the bearers of authority, the strong men,
and uppermost the-formally at least-alI-powerful dictator, the Leader.
Only in outer forms does this dictatorship resemble the ancient Asiatic
despotisms over agrarian peoples or the absolutism in Europe some centuries
ago. These primitive monarchial goverments, with a minmum of organiza
tion, soon stood powerless over against the rising social power of capitasm.
The new despotism, product of highly developed capitalism, disposes of all the
power of the bourgeoisie, al the refined methods of modern technics and
organization. It is progress, not regress ; it is not return to the old rough bar
barism but advance to a higher more refined barbarism. It looks like regression
because capitalism, that during its ascent evoked the illusion of the dawn of
humanity, now strikes out like a corered wolf.
A special characteristc of the new political system is the Party as support
and fighting force of dictatorship. Like its predecessor ad example, the
Comunist Party in Russia, it forms the bodyguard of the new Government.
It canle up, independent from and een against Goverment, out of the inner
forces of society, conquered the State, and fused with it into one organ of dom-
THE FOE 141
ination. It consists chiefly of petty-bourgeois elements, with more roughness
and less culture and restraint than the bourgeoisie itself, with fell desire t
climb to higher positions, full of nationalsm and of class hatred against the
workers. Out of the equable mass of citizens they come to the front as an
organized group of combative fanatical volunteers, ready for any violence, in
military discipline obeying the leaders. When the leaders are made masters
over the State they are made a special organ of Government, endowed with spe
cial rights and privileges. They do what lies outside the dutes of the officials,
they do the dirty work of persecution and vengeance, they are secret police,
spies and organ of propaganda at the same time. As a devoted semi-offcial
power with undefined competencies they permeate the population; only by
their terrorism dictatorship is possible.
At the same time, as counterpart, the citizens are entirely powerless; they
do not influence government. Parliaments may be convoked, but only to listen
and applaud to speeches and declarations of the leaders, not to discuss and
decide. All decisions are taken in the set assemblies of part chiefs. Surely tis
was usually the case under parliamentarism also; but then secretly, and pub
licly denied and always there was control by party stife and public criticsm.
These have disappeared now. Other parties than the One are forbidden, their
former leaders have fled. / newspapers are in the hands of the Paty; all pub
licity is under its control; free speec is abolished. The former source of power
of Parliament, its fnancial control of Governent by voting or refsing money,
has gone, too. Government disposes at its will over all State revenues without
rendering account; it can spend unknown and unlimited sums of money for
party purposes, for propaganda or anything ese.
State power now takes up the care for economc life, making it at the same
time subservient to its own purposes. In a country where capitalsm is still in
its development, this means collaboration with big capital, not as in former
times in secret, but as a normal duty. Big enterprse is furthered by subsidies
and orders ; public services are actuated for business life, the old laziness dis
appears, and foreign tourists in praise of the new order relate that the trains
conform to schedule. Small enterprise is organized in "corporatons" where
employers and directors collaborate with controlling State ofcials .
"Corporatsm" is put up as the character of the new order against parIiamen
tarism; instead of deceitful talk of incompetent politicians comes tlle expert dis
cussion and advice of the practical business man. Thus labor is acknowledged
as the basis of society: capitalist labor, of course.
The fascist State through its regulations strengtllens tlle economc power of
big capital over small business. The economic means of big capital to impose
its will are never entirely adequate; in a free State ever agan small competitors
come up, take a stand against the big ones, refuse to conform to agreements,
and disturb the quiet exploitation of customers. Under fascism, however, they
142 WORKERS' COUNCILS
have to submit to te regulations established i the corporations according to
te most influential interests and given legal validity by decree of government.
Thus the entire economic life is subjected more thoroughy to big capital.
At the same time the working cass is made powerless. Classwar, of course,
is "abolished." In the shop all are collaborating now as comrades in the service
of the communty; the former director, too, has been turned into a worker and
a cOlade; but as he is the leader, clad with authority, his commands must be
obeyed by the other workers. Trade unions, being organs of fght, of course are
forbidden. The workers are not allowed to fight for their interests ; State power
takes care of them, and to the State authorities they have to bring forward their
complants - usually neutralized by the greater personal influence of the
employers. So a lowering of working conditions ad standard of life was
unavoidable. As a compensaton te workers, now assembled in fascist organ
izations with Party members as designated dictatorial leaders, were regaled
with brilliat speeches on the eminence labor, now for the frst time acknowl
edged in its worth. For capital ties were good now, times of strong develop
ment and high profits, notwithstanding the often troublesome control of igo
rant fascist oficials demanding their share. Capitalists of other countries visit
ed wit troubles and stries, looked with envy at the industrial peace in Italy.
More consciously than elsewhere nationalism uprises as the all dominating
ideology, because it affords a basis to theory and practice of State omnipotence.
The State is the embodimen, the organ of the nation; its aim the greatess of
the nation. For the raising of the power needed in the world fight of capitalism
fascism in many points is superior to other political systems. With al the forces
of State-paid propaganda national feelings and prde are aroused; the ancient
Romans are exalted as the great ancestors, the Emperor Augustus is celebrated
as the great Italian, the Mediterranean is called "our sea," the glory of ancient
Rome has to be restored. At the same time military power is built up; war
industlY is promoted and subsidized; for armanlents Government through lack
of any public control can secredy spend as much money as it wats. The Italian
Government and bourgeoisie grew boastful and aggressive. They wanted their
county not to be admired as a museum of ancient art any more, but respect
ed as a moder country of factories and guns.
For many years Italy was the only European country, besides Russia, tat
had a dictatorial government. So it might seem a result of special chance con
ditions there. Then, however, other countries followed. !Portugal, after many
bickerings between parties in Parliament and militay officers, the generals
seized power, but felt incapable of solving the many economic difficulties. So
they appointed a well known fascist-minded professor of economy to act as dic
tator under dIe name of prie mister. He introduced corporatism to take the
place of pariamentarism, and was much praised for the undisturbed frmness
of his reign. The petty-capitalist stage of development in this country is shown
THE FOE 143
in that his most praised reform was economizing in fnance by cutting the gov
ernment expenses.
It seems a contradicton that fascism, a product of big capitalism should
happen to rule in backward countries, whereas the countries of biggest capital
ism reject it. The latter fact is easily explained, because democratic parliaen
tarism is the best camouflage for its sway. A system of government is not con
nected automatically wit a system of economy. The economic system deter
mnes the ideas, the wishes, te aims; and then people with these aims in mind
adjust their political system according to their needs and possibilities. The ideas
of dictatorship, of the sway of some few strong individuals, countered by oter
strong social forces in countries where big capital reigns, in distant regions also
strike the mind where big capitalism is no more than aspiration of future devel
opment.
backward countries, when capitalism begins to come up and to stir the
minds, the political forms of advanced countries are initiated. Thus in the sec
ond part of te 1 9t
h
century parliamentarism held its trumphal course through
the world, i the Balkans, i Turkey, in the East, in South America, though
sometimes is parody forms. Behind suc parliaments stood no strong bour
geoisie to use them a its organ; the population consisted in large landowners
and small farmers, artisans, petty dealers, with chiefly local interest.
Parliaments were dominated by jobbers enriching themselves through monop
olies, by lawyers and generals ruling as mnisters and bestowing well-paid
offices on their friends, by intellectuals making business out of their member
ship, by agents of foreign capita preying upon the richness of timber and ore.
A dirty scene of corruption showing that parliamentarism did not sprout
fom sound and natural roots here.
Such new countries cannot repeat the gradual line of development of the
old capitalist countries in first ascent. They can and must introduce highly
developed technics at once: on their precapitalist conditions they must implant
big industry directly; acting capital is big capital. So it is not strange that the
politcal forms generated by petty capitalism in Europe do not fit here. There
parliamentarism was firmly rooted in the consciousness of te citizens and had
time gradually to adapt itself to the new conditions. Here, at the outskirts, the
fascist ideas of dictatorship could frd adherence, since the practice of politics
was already conformng to it. Landowners and tribe chieftains easily convert
their old power into modern dictatorial fOrulS ; new capitalist interests can work
better with some few mighty men than wit a host of greedy parliamentarians.
So the spiritual infuences of big world capital find a fertile field in the political
ideas of rulers and intellectuals all over the world.
144 WORKERS' COUNCILS
8. NATIONAL SOCIALISM
Far more important are the forms of fascism presented by the most strong
ly developed country of capitalist Europe. After having lost the first world war
and after being pressed down to entire powerlessness, Germany through fas
cism was enabled to prepare for a second, more formidable attempt at world
power.
te post-war years of misery and humiliation the gradually assembling
nationalist youth felt by instinct that its future depended on organzation of
power. Among te many competing organizations the National Socialist Part
crystallized as the group with the greatest growing faculty, and afterwards
absorbed the others. It prevailed by having an economic program, sharply
anti-capitalist-hence denoted socialist-fit to attract the petty bourgeoisie, the
farmers ad part of the workers. Directed of course against capital such as
these classes know it as their suppressor, the usury capital, the real estate banks,
the big warehouses, especially against Jewish capital therefore. Its anti-semitism
expressed the feelings of these classes as well as of the academic circles who felt
threatened by Jewish competiton now that the republic had given equal civil
rigts. Its acte nationalism gave expression to the feelings of the entire bour
geoisie, by sharply protesting against Germany's humiliaton, by denouncing
Versailles, and by te call to fight for new power, for new national greatness.
Wen then the great crisis of 1930 reduced the middle class masses to a panic
frigt, when these, trough their millions of votes, made national socialism a
powerful party, German big capital saw its chance. It gave money for an over
whelming propaganda tat soon beat the wavering liberal and socialist politi
cians out of the field, made national socialism the strongest party and its leader
chief of the govermnent.
Unlike other parties in goverment its first provisions were to make sure
that it never should loose its goverment power. By excluding the Communist
Party as criminals from the Reichstag and afiating the lesser nationalist
groups it secured a majority to start with. All important government and police
ofces were filled by party members; the communist fighting groups were sup
pressed, the nationalist ones were privileged. Protected by the authorities the
latter, by deeds of violence, with impunity could spread so much terror that
every idea of resistace was quelled in the people. The daily press first was
muzzled, then gradually captured and "equalized" into organs of national
socialism. Socialist and democratic spokesmen had to flee to other countries ;
the widely spread socialist and the not less hated pacifist literature was collect
ed in violent searches and solemnly bured. From the frst days began the per
secutions of theJews, that gradually became more cruel, and last proclaimed as
thei aim the extermination of the entire Jewish race. As a heavy steel armor
te dictatorship of a resolute, well-organized minority closed around German
THE FOE 145
societ, to enable German capital as a well-armored giant to take up again the
fght for world power.
All political practice and all social ideas of national socialism have their
basis i the character of its economic system. Its foundation is organization of
capitalism. Such among the frst adherents who insisted upon the old anti-cap
italist program were of course soon dismissed and destroyed. The new meas
ures of state control over capital were now explained as the formerly promised
subjection and destruction of capitalist power. Government decrees restricted
capital in its freedom of action. Central government ofces controlled the sale
of products as well as the procuring of raw materials . Government gave pre
scripts for the spending of profits , for the amount of dividends allowed, for the
reserves to be made for new investments, and for the share it required for its
own puroses. That all these measures were not directed aganst capitalism
itself, but only against the arbitrary freedom of capital dispersed over numer
ous small holders, is show by the fact that herein Goverment was continual
ly guided by the advice of big capitalists and baners outside the party, as a
more resolute sequel of what had been stated already in collaboration with
former less daring governments. It was an organizaton imposed by the condi
tion of German capitalism, te only means to restore it to power.
Under capitalism capital is master; capital is money claiming the surplus
value produced by labor. Labor is the basis of society, but money, gold, is its
master. Politcal economy deals with capital and money as the directing powers
of society. So it had been in Germany, as anywhere. But German capital was
defeated, exhausted, ruined. It was not lost; it had mantained itself as master
of te mines, the factories, of society, of l abor. But the money had gone. The
war reparations pressed as a heavy debt, and prevented rapid accumulation of
new capital. German labor was tributary to the victors, and through them to
America. Since America had secluded itself from the imports of goods it had to
be laid in gold; gold disappeared from Europe and choked America, pushing
both into a world crisis.
The German "revolution" of 1933-proudly called so by national social
ism-was the revolt of German against Amercan capital, against the rule of
gold, against the gold form of capital. It was the recogniton that labor is the
basis of capital, that capital is mastery over labor, and that, hence, gold is not
necessary. The real conditons for capitalism, a numerous intelligent and skilled
working class and a high stage of techncs and science, were present. So it repu
diated the tribute, rejected the claims of foreign gold, and organized capitalist
production on the basis of goods and labor. Thus, for the use of iteral prop
aganda, always again it could speak of fight against capital and capitalism; for
capital was money, was gold that reigned in Amerca, u England, in France, as
it had reiged formerly in Germany. The separating cleft, in this line of
thought, gaped between te gambling and exploiting usurers and money capi-
146 WORKERS' COUNCILS
talists on the one side, and the hard toiling workers and employers on the other
side.
Under free capitalism te surplus value growing everywhere out of pro
duction piles up in the banks, looks out for new profits, and is invested by its
owner or by the bank in new or in existng enterprises. Since in Germany
money was scarce State government had to provide the means for founding
new necessary enterprises. 111at could be done only by seizing the profts of all
enterprises for this purpose, after allowance of a certain dividend for the share
holders. So it established itself as the central leader of economy. In te emer
gency of German capitalism the spending of capital could not be left to the will
and whim of private capitalists, for luxury, for gamblig or foreign investment.
With strict economy all means must be used for reconstructon of the economic
system. Every enterprise now depends on the credit assigned by the State and
stands under continuous control of the State. The State for this purpose has its
economic offices of experts, in which the leaders of the big enterprises and con
cerns by their advice are dominating. This meas a complete dominaton of
monopolist capital over te smaller capitalists in a system of planned economy.
Conscious organization has replaced te automatism of gold.
Germany, though striving after autarchy, could not exist without importing
raw materials from outside, paying for them, because it had no money, by
exports of its own products. Hence commerce could not be left to the arbi
trariness of private deaers, to the wish of the public for superfluous or foreign
fancies. When all sales shall serve the necessary reconstrnction Goverment
has to supervise foreign commerce by rigid prescripts, or take it i its own
hand. It controls and limits every transfer of money across the frontiers, even
tourist travels; all drafts on foreign debtors must be delivered. The State itself
takes up large-scale commerce, purchase as well a sale. The great diffculty of
the old economic system, the tansition of commodities into gold, the selling of
the goods, the primary cause of so much faltering and crisis, is thereby auto
matically solved at the same time. The State, as universal dealer, is able in
every purcase contract to stipulate that the same value of its product shall be
bought, so that no money is needed. Or expressed in another way: in selling
its goods it asks to be paid not in money but i kind, in other goods : German
machines against Hungarian wheat or Roumanian oil. Gold is eliminated from
business by direct barter of goods.
But now barter on a gigantc scale, of the produce ad needs of entire coun
tries at once. Private dealers in the other countries seldom have such monopo
lies a are needed here; moreover such big transactions, especially of materials
serviceable to war have political consequences. Hence the foreign governments
have to step in. If they were not yet adapted to such economic functions they
now adapt themselves; they take in hand the disposal over the products, and in
their tum go to regulating commerce and industry. Thus State control in a big
THE FOE 147
country leads to state control in other countries. A new system of economy, the
system of direct barter of goods, is introduced into interational comerce. It
is especialy attractive to the rising counties that arc purveyors of raw materi
als. Tey now get their machines and canons, without in Paris and London
contracting heavy loans that would bring there into fmancial dependence. Thus
German economic expansion is custing English and French capital from those
countries; and it is accompanied by politica expansion. With the new eco
nomic system the ruling casses there adopt the new political ideas, the fascist
system of government, that increases their power at home and better fits their
needs than an imitation of parliamentarism. Politically tey were drawn nearer
to Gerlany. Tus what at first, accordig to old economic ideas , looked a par
alyzing weakness, the lack of gold, was now turned into a source of new force.
German capitalism saw a new road opened towards resurrection and power.
This could not but have a enormous influence upon the ideas and feelings of
the bourgeoisie, especially upon the capitalist and intellectual youth. It had
experienced the poverty ad dejection in the post-war years, the desperation
and impotence under the Weimar republic; now again it saw a future full of
hope. When a class, from pressure and dependence, sees loomIng up a future
of greatness with as yet unlimted possibilities, enthusiasm and energy are
awakened; it clothes the coming world with the garb of exated ideologies
inspiritig the minds. Thus national socialism speaks of its conquest of power
as a grand social, political and spiritual revoluton, fa surpassing all previous
ones, a revolution that ends capitalism, establishes socialism and community,
one destined to renovate society for thousands of years.
What really happened was only a structura change of capitalism, the tran
sition from free to planned capitalism. Yet this change is important enough to
be felt as the beginnig of a new grand epoch. Human progress always con
sisted in the replacing of instinctive action, of chance and custom by deliberate
plannig. In techics science had already replaced tradition. Economy, howev
er, the social entirety of production, was left to the chance of personal guessing
of unknown market conditions. Hence wasted labor, destructive competition,
bankruptcy, crisis and unemployment. Planned economy tries to bring order,
to regulate production according to the needs of consumption. The transition
of free capitalism to capitalism directed by State-dictatorship means, funda
mentally, the end of the pitiless fight of all against all , i which the weak were
succumbing. It means that everybody will have his place assigned, an assured
existence, and that unemployment, the scourge of the working class, disappears
as a stupid spilling of valuable labor power.
This new condition fnds its spiritual expression in the slogan of communi
ty. In the old system everybody had to fight for himself, only guided by ego
tism. Now that production is organized into a centrally directed unity, every
body knows that his work is part of the whole, that he is working for the
148 WORKERS' COUNCILS
natonal community. Were loss of old liberty might evoke resentment as
intense propaganda accentuates the service of the community a the high moral
principle of the new world. It is adequate to carr away especially young peo
ple into devoted adherence. Moreover the anti-capitalist fiction of te exclusion
of the gold, by persistent propaganda is hammered into the minds a the new
reig of labor. Community ad labor find their common expression in the
name socialism.
This socialsm is national socialism. Nationalism, the mightiest ideology of
the bourgeoisie, stands over all other ideas a the master they have to serve.
The conuunity is the nation, it comprises only the fellow people, labor is serv
ice of te ow people. This is the new, the better socialism, entrely opposed to
the interational socialism of Jewish Marxsm tat by its doctine of class war
tore the national unity asunder. It had made the German people powerless;
national socialism makes te national community a mighty unbreakable unity.
For national socialist doctrine the nations are the entities constitutg
mankind. 'The nations have to fight for their place on earth, teir "living
space" ; history shows an almost uninterrupted series of wars in which strong
peoples exterminated, drove out or subjected the weaker ones. 'Thus it was ad
thus it will be. War is the natural condition of manind, peace is nothing but
preparation of future war. So the first duty of every people is to make itself
powerful against oters ; it has to choose between victory or downfall.
Internationaism and pacifism are bloodless abstractions, yet dangerous
because they are sapping the strength of the people.
Te frst aim of national socialism was to make a powerful unty of all
German-speaking people. Trough adversity of historica development it had
been divided into a number of separate states, only incompletely united in
Bismarck's former Reich-the Austrian part remaining an independent state
moreover mutilated by the victors of 1 918. The call for national unity met with
a wide response in the feelings, even of such isolated goups as the Gemlan set
tlers in Transylvania or in America. In consequence of the interacing of livng
sites of different races, as well as by economic connections, the principle of
political unity of course encounters many dificulties. The German-speaking
town of Danzig, was the natural habor for the surrounding Polish hinterland.
'The Czecho-Slovak State a a Slavonic protrusion separated the Northern and
the Austrian Germans, and included on the inner slopes of the fontier ridges
[Sudetes] an industrious Grman population. Under capitalism such abnormal
cases ae not solved by any fair principle of equable dealing, but by power
against power. So they were the direct motives that gave rise to the present
world war.
From the first day preparaton for war was the leadig thought of national
socalism, the goal of all its measures. For this purpose industry was supervised
and regulated by the State, for this purpose private profits and dividends were
THE FOE 149
cut down, for ths purpose the investment of capital and the founding of new
enterprises was reserved to Gverment economic ofces. All surplus value
beyond a certain profit rate for the shareholders is taken by the State for its
needs; these needs are te supreme common interest of the entire bourgeoisie.
In old capitalism the State had to procure money for its needs by taxation,
sometimes by the cunning method of unfair indirect taxes ; or, if by direct taxes,
conceded grudgingly and under suspicious control by the proper tier citizens,
and considered as an unrighteous incursion upon their personal ependiture.
Now ths is all changed. The State by its own right takes what it wants direct
ly at the source, the chief part of the surplus value, and to the capitalist own
ers it leaves some remnant fixed at its own discretion. No more the State has to
beg from the masters of the means of production; it is itself master now and
they arc the recipients. A enormous increase of financial power compared
with other States; but indispensable for success in the world fight. And again
national socialism in in this way shows off before the people's masses as the
power that curbs capital, by enforcing it to deliver the man part of its profit to
the common weal, to the community.
Moreover the State is direct master of production. In the old capitalism,
when the State had with difculty extorted money for expenses from
Parliament, or borrowed it under fat provisions from the bankers, it had to
spend it on the monopolistic private arms industry. Tese concers, interna
tionally cOllilected, though they paraded as national frms, Krupp i Essen,
Schneider u:Le Creusot, Amstrong in England, not only took their big prof
its, but without conscientious scruples impartally supplied enemies and allies
with the most perfect and newest inventions. It looked as if war were a puerile
play of politicians to fatten some few armament capitalists. To national social
ism, however, war is the most serous affair, for which an unliited part of the
entire industrial apparatus can be used. Government decides what big portion
of the total steel and chemical industry shall serve for armaments. It simply
orders the factories to be buit, it organizes science and technics to invent and
try new ad better weapons, it combines the functions of military oficer, engi
neer, and inventor, and makes war scence [ehrwissenschaft] the object of spe
cial training. Armored cars, dive bombers, big submarines with ever more per
fect installations, rapid torpedo boats , rockets, all of new construction, can be
built in secret. No information reaches the enemy, no sensational daily press
can publish any notice, no parliament members c ask information, no criti
cism has to be encountered. Thus te arms are heaped up during years of
feverish war preparaton till the moment of attack has arrived.
old capitalism war was a possibility, avoided as long as possible, or at
least discaimed, a war of defense mostly on the part of the old satisfied Powers.
The new upgrowing powers, aggressive because they have to conquer their
share in the world, have a positive aim tat strains the energy muc more
150 WORKERS' COUNCILS
intensely tha does the negative aim of mere passive defense of existing condi
tons. Tey are "dynamic"; in mitary tactics this character is represented in
the irresistible impulse of the well prepared mass ofensive.
Thus German capitalism, by installing a national socialist government com
pletely dominating the entire economic life, provded itsel with an incompara
ble war machine. The question may by posed, however, whether it did not
shoot past te aim. In striving for power over the world, did it not lose its mas
tery at home? Could the German bourgeoisie stll be called the rling class?
German state control is no state socialism. The State is not, as it is in
Russia, owner of the means of production. In Russia the bureaucracy of State
oficials collectively owns the industrial apparatus; it is the ruling and exploit
ing class, appropriating the surplus value. In Germany there is a numerous
bourgeoisie, directors of enterprises, fee employers, ofcials, shareholders ;
they are the owners of the means of production living on surplus value. But
now the to fnctions of the shareholder are separated; the right of disposal is
detached fom ownership. Under big capitalism the right of disposal is the most
important function of capitalist ownership; we see it in America in the holding
companies. Ten the owner in his caracter of exploiter only retains the func
tion of receiving part of the profits. In Gerany Government took for itself the
right of disposal, the rigt to manipulate with capital, to direct production, to
increase the productvity and to distribute the profts. For the mass of dle bour
geoisie there remained the detailed work of directig their enterprises and gam
bling with the shares. Since production and import both are determined by the
State, private dividends could not be spent in another way other than by buy
ing industrial shares, by retrning the profits as new capital into State-con
trolled industry.
Tus big capital retained power. Surey its expectation when it put nation
al socialism at te head of te State, of finding obedient servants, was disap
pointed; the old masters of industry and banks had to share their power with
the new masters of the State, who not only partook in the directing but also in
the pocketig. Big capital in Germany had not yet taken the American form of
an unassailable property of some farnlies; capable men of darig from any
where could rise to the leadership of big concerus . Now they had to share their
leading power with other men of daring risen to power by way of politics and
party fight. In the economic ofices te leaders of big business meet with the
political leaders in the common task of regulating production. Te dividing line
between private capitalists and State offcials disappears i the coalescing of
functions. Together they are master of the State and of the means of produc
tion.
With the deep changes in economic and political conditions a new state of
mind peraded the German people. Te mutual connection and dependence
became stonger, gradations of value and ran were felt, the authority of lead-
THE FOE 151
ers, the obedience of the masses imposed themselves ; consciousness of subor
dination in large entities accompanies planned economy. And above all, in te
entire middle class there is a strained nationalism, a passionate will to figt for
world power. Though growing spontaneously out of the new conditions this
new spirit was not left to develop freely; for in that case opposite ideas and
forces would arise at the same tie. It was the object of an intense one-sided
propaganda. To make these feelings a spiritual force binding the entire nation
into a fighting unity, they were fostered and developed by special means.
Propaganda and educaton were made the task of a separate State departent,
endowed with unlimited financial means. usable forces of publicity, of sci
ence, literature and art were set to work s ystematically to cram the national
socialist ideas into all the heads, with exclusion all deviating spirital infu
ences.
This implied a complete spiritual despotism. Whereas under former sys
tems of despotism the daily press was only muzzled or harassed by a stupid
censorship, often outwitted by the wits of editors, now the entire press was
annexed by the Party and provided with party members as editors. The
national socialist State was not only master of the material life of man, it was
also master of the spiitual life, by means of the Party. No books or writings
expressing deviatng opinions could be published; foreig publicatons were
carefully controlled before being admitted. Secret printing of independent or
opposite opinons was not only punished severely as capital crime, but aso ren
dered difficult by State control of all materials. It is intellectual cowardice that
shuns dispute on equal terms and dares to attack and insult the adversary only
after he has been fettered and muzzled. But it was effcient; the party press was
able, without compensation, day by day to force upon the readers not ony its
doctrine but also its biased representation or misrepresentaton of facts and
happenings, or to omit them entirely. Notwitstanding all preconceived distrust
of one-sided information, the ever repeated, never contradicted views, so well
confirmed by the facts presented, must in te long run take hold of the minds.
The more so as they were presented as part and result of an attractve doctrine,
the ideology of community and labor: the end of selfishness and exploitation,
the new reign of devotion to the people's weal, regulated work and prosperity
for all, the common exertion for the greatness and te fture of the nation, with
severe punishment of course for all its enemies.
At the same time all verbal intercourse was strictly controlled. Te party
everywhere had its members and adherents, in the offices, in the shops, al
inspired with the moral duty to denounce for punishment, as enemies of the
community, all who expressed other opinions, ventured criticism, or spread
rumors. Tus no opposition could form, except in the extreme secrecy of
insignificant groups ; everywhere a feelg of utter powerlessness prevailed.
152 WORKERS' COUNCILS
1ms, compared with the ancient forms of despotic rule, modern capitalism
showed an enormous progress of eficiency in the techncs of suppression.
Whether we take the English Tory Government in the beginning of te 1 9
t
century, that had no police force, or the Prussian absolutism of Russian
Czaism in later times, wit their primitive barbarous cruelt, they all present
the spectacle of stupid helplessness , normal for a government living far from
the people. In the English courts editors and authors made a tough fght for
reform and freedom of press, applauded by the people when they went to gaol.
The Czarist gaolers often could not conceal their respect for te revolutionar
ies as representatives of superior culture. Repeatedly Prussian police, trapped
by the better organization of the socialist workers, had to suffer exhibition as
simpletons before the courts.
Now that was all over. The new despotism was equipped with all the
engines of the moder State. / force and energy that capitalism evokes is
combined with the most thorough-going tanny that big capital needs in order
to uphold its supremacy. No tribunal to do justice to the subject against the
State. The judges are Party members, agents of the State, dismissed if they are
soft, bound to no statute book, administering justice after decrees from above.
Law suits ae public only when needed for propaganda, to intimidate others ;
and then the papers bring only what the judge deems adequate. The police
consist of stricty organized and disciplined rufans provided with all weapons
and methods to beat down the "Volksgenossen." Secret police again were all
powerful, were more capable that it was in olden times. No law secured any
body from being put in gaol, for unlimited time, without trial. The concentra
tion camp, formerly invented as a war measure against guerrillas, now was
installed as a form of mass-prison with hard labor, often accompanied by sys
tematc crueltes. No personal dignity was respected; it did not eist any more.
Where petty bourgeois coarseness, turned into perverse abuse of unlimited
power, was provided wit all the inventiveness of modern capitalism, cruelty
aganst the 'ictims did not reach a pitch rivaling the worst barbarousness of
former centuries. Cruelty as a rule is a consequence of fear, experienced in the
past or felt for the future, thus betraying what is hidden in subconsciousness.
But for the moment all adversaries were made powerless, sienced and intimi
dated.
Spiritual tyralmy was supplemented by incessant propaganda, especially
adapted to the younger generation. Te rulers know quite well that they can
win over ony few of the older generation of workers who, grown up in
the nobler ideas Social Democracy, preserved these as a precious remem-
brance, though bereft of practical uSe. Only for te younger adults who expe
rienced Social Democracy in its decline, as ruling part, the propaganda could
be effective. But it was the growing youth whch it did itself educate and shape,
that national socialism placed its hope as material for its new world.
THE FOE 153
It cannot surprise that it met with great success. As no party or group
before it concerned itself with youth. National socialism appointed able leaders
well versed in moder psychology, disposing of ample financal means, who,
with entire devotion assembled and educated the youth in an all-ebracing
organization. All the innate feelings of comradeship, of mutual aid, of attach
ment, of activity, of ambition could develop in young people. Tey were fllied
with the self-confdence of being an important part of the national community
vvith an important task of their own. Not to win a good position for oneself, the
highest ideal of the youngsters in capitalist society, but to serve and forward the
national communty. Te boys had to feel future fighters , preparing for great
deeds, not by learned studies but by vigour, pluck, fghting capacity and disci
pline. Te girls had to prepare for the future of being heroic German mothers ;
increase of population, as rapid as possible, was a condition for strength in the
world fight.
With ardor the children imbibed the new teachings that far outweighed the
spiritual influence of their parents and teachers. Against these they acted as fer
vent champions and spokesmen of the new creed, especially educated for that
task. Not simply t extend te propaganda into home and school, but still more
to report to their new leaders home disputes and controversies. Hence to act a
spies and denuciators of their own parents , who under the threat of severe pun
ishent had to abstain fom ,my attempt to educate their children in their own
spirit. The children belonged to the State, not to the parents. Tus for the
future war an army of missions was prepared unrivaled for enthusiasm and
devotion. Such an education implies careful protection against any opposite
infuence tat could evoke doubts, uncertainties and inner conflicts. Doubts
and inner conficts, to be sure, produce strong characters, independent
thinkers; but for such national socialism had no use. What it needed, and what
it tried to rear by one-sided teaching of the one sole truth, was blind faith and,
based thereon, fanatical devotion, expedient for irresistible assault.
Te strength of national socalsm lay in its organization of the material pro
duction, of physical forces. Its weakness lay in its attempt to uniformize the
mentalities, the intellectual forces, in both caseS by brutal constraint. Most of
its adherents and spokesmen came from the lower mddle class, rough, igo
rant, narrow-minded, desirous to win a higher position, full of prejudices, eas
ily addicted to brutality. They came to power not through intellectual but
through physical and organizational superiority, by daring and combativeness.
Tey imposed their spirit of volence upon the dominated intellectuals and
workers. Tus respect for brute strength, contempt for science and knowledge
was bred in the upgrowing generation; for the ambitious, instead of painful
patient study, an easier way to high positions led through party servce that
demanded no knowledge but only sturdy drilling, physical training, rough
force and discipline.
154 WORKERS' COUNCILS
German big capitalism, however, cannot develop without science is the
basis of technical progress, and without an intellectual class with important
functions, economic and social. Furtherng and encouragement of science is a
life interest for capital. Its new political system brought it into contadiction not
only wit humanity and culture, but also with its own spiritual basis. To
uphold its dominance it suffered to decay what constituted its force and justif
cation. This will avenge itself when in the contest of capitlisms for world
power dIe highest perfection in technics is imperative, and its neglect cannot be
made good by physical constraint. The great scientific and technical capacities
of the Germn people, of its engineers, its scientists, its workers, who brought
it to the front of industrial progress, were chained to the war chaiot of big cap
italism and, enhancing its fighting strength, were wasted and spoilt in this
bondage.
National socialism, moreover, tried to impose its very theory upon science,
in gving to nationalism the theoretical expression of the racial doctrine. Always
German nationalism had taken the form of worship of the ancient Teutons
whose virtues as a mirror for the effeminate Romans had been exalted by
Tacitus. German authors had exposed the theory of the "Nordic" race, superi
or to other races and destined to dominate them, and nowadays represented by
the Germans and some adjacent peoples. This theory was then blended with
anti-semitism. The special capacities of the Jews for commerce and money deal
ing, for medicine and jurisprudence had, half a century ago already, aroused
strong anti-semitic feelings among the petty bourgeoisie and in academic ci
cles. Neither aong the great bourgeoisie, that by its mastery of the industrial
surplus value was any fear of Jewish finance, nor among the working class had
they any importance. Anti-semitism was a sentiment of the lower mddle class;
but most adherents of national socialism came ii-om these very circles. Jewish
immigation from dle East after the frst word war) introducing its primitive
trade methods of barter, and the appointing of Jews in political ofces in the
Weimar republic intensified the hatred and made anti-semitism the main creed
of the most infuential new leaders.
Thus racial theory became dIe central doctrie of national socialism. Real
Germans were not all te German-speaking inhabitants of Germany, but only
the "Aryans"-the same held good for surrounding peoples as the
Scandinavians and the Dutch; the English were too much corrpted already by
capitalism. The non-Aryan cohbitants, theJews, had no rights ; the allowance
to settle they misused by assembling capital and by robbing and insolently sup
pressing the Aryans. So dley were expropriated and the persecutions gradual
ly increased to rough abuse and deiberate extermination.
National socialism by means of its political power forced this racial theory
upon science. It appointed the spokesmen of the doctrine as university profes
sors) and profusely procured fnds for publishing books and periodicals for its
THE FOE 1 55
vindication. That the amount of scientific truth in it is extremely meagre could
be no hindrance. Capitalism in power always elevates to oficial science te
doctrines that serve its purposes; they dominate the universities everywhere;
but critcism and opposite opinions have the possibility to express themselves,
albeit not from ofcial chairs. Under national s ocialism, however, all critical
discussion of the oficial doctrine was made impossible.
Still more grotesque was the extension of the racial theory to physics. In
physics Einstein's theory of relativity was considered by almost the entirety of
physicists as a most important progress of science, basis of numerous new
developments. But Einstein was a Jew, and so anti-semitism took a stand
against dlis theory. When national socialism came to power dIe Jewish profes
sors, men of world fame often, were dismissed and expelled; the anti-Semitic
opponents of relativity were hailed as the genial spokesmen of "Geran
physics," the expression of sound and simple Aryan intelligence, agaist
'Jewish physics," consisting in crooked theores contived by Tl imudan dis
trtion of thought. It is easily seen that that "sound Aryan intelligence" is noth
ing but the simple-mindedness of petty burgher thought inaccessible to the
deeper abstractions of modern science.
In the fight of German capitalism for world power anti-semitism was not
needed, was rather a disadvantage. But it had no choice. Since dIe bourgeoisie
had not dared to join the people's fight, 1848, to win domination, it had to sur
render to the lead of other classes. First of te landed aristocracy with the
Kaiser, who, by their stupid diplomacy, were responsible for the defeat in te
frst world war. Now of the petty burgher party and its leaders, who made this
fad the basis of a policy that by evoking scorn and intense hatred all over the
world, prepared for a new defeat.
From the beginning national socialism gave special attcntion to the farmers.
The platform of any petty burgher party spoke of ridding the farers from
exploitation by mortgage and banking capita. Moreover, for the impending
war it was imperative that Germany should feed itself and have suficient raw
materials. So an organization of agriculture, as essential part of the wholesale
organization of production, was necessary. It was expressed in dIe nationalist
socialist ideology of the farmer class, inseparably united wit the soil, pre
servers of the racial strength of dIe forebears, the tue "nobility of blood and
soil." It had to be protected against the dissolving infuences of capitalism and
competition, and connected into the whole of planned production. Conforming
to the reactionary forms of thought of the Nazi system was done by reviving
mediaeval customs and forms of bondage abolished by the Frenc revolution.
Thus mortgage was forbidden; the farmer was not allowed to invest foreign
capital for ameliorations. If he wanted money for his farm he could go to the
State offices, and thus his dependence on the State increased. In his farling he
was subjected to a number of prescripts restricting his liberty. In the first place
156 WORKERS' COUNCILS
as to the products he had to cultivate; since agriculture had to feed the entire
people, a diffcult problem with the dense population, and stl more so in war
time, an exact fxation of needs and proceeds was necessary. The sale, too, was
organized. The products had to be delivered to purchase ofices, at prices fxed
from above, or to agents visiting the farms. Teirs was the all-important task
and duty: the feeding of the national community. This truth, however, they had
to swallow in the form of complete subjection to Government measures some
times even amounting to direct seizure of te crops. Thus the farmers, former
ly free in, for better or worse, fgting teir way through the vicissitudes of cap
italism, were tured into serfs of the State. To meet the emergencies of big cap
italism, mediaeval conditions, under flattering names, were restored for the
farmers.
To the workers no less attetion, though of a different kind, was given. For
the great a of conquering world power the internationally minded working
class, fgting capitalism, splitting natonal unity, had frst to be made power
less. So the frst work of the revoluton of 1933 was to destroy the social dem
ocratic and the communist parties, to imprison or banish their leaders, to sup
press their papers, to bur their books and to transform the trade unions into
nationa socialist organizations. Labor was organized not by t.e workers and
for the workers, but by capital and for capital, through its new governing
agents. The "labor-front," directed by State-appointed leaders, took the place of
the unions where, formally at least, te workers themselves were master. Its
task was not to fgt the employers for improvement of working conditions, but
the promotion of producton. te productive community, the factory, the
employer was the leader and must be obeyed, unconditionally. The nationalist
socialist leaders of the labor-front, often forer oficials of the unions, treated
with the employer and brought forward complaints; but the latter decided.
!was not the intention of national socialism to make the workers helpless
victims of employers' abitrariness; the latter also had to obey the higher dic
tators. Moreover, for its great a, the world fight, national socialism needs the
goodwill, the devoted collaboraton of all, as soldiers and as workers; so
besides incessant propaganda, good treatment as far as possible, was servicea
ble. Where heavy exertions and extreme hardships were demanded from them
the reward was praise of their performance of duty. Should they be cross and
unwilling, hard constraint would make it clear that they were powerless. Free
choice of their master has no sense any longer, since everywhere the real mas
ter is the same; the workers are transposed from one shop to another at the
command from above. Under national socialism the workers were turned into
bondsmen of State and capital.
How could it happen that a working class, appearing so powerful as the
German one in the high tde of social democracy, almost ready to conquer the
world, did fall into such utter impotence. Even to those who recognized the
THE FOE 157
decline and inner degeneration of socialism, its easy surrender in 1933, with
out any fght, and the complete destruction of its imposing structure came as a
surprise. I a certain way, however, national s ocialism may be said to be the
regular descendant of social democracy. National socialism could rise to such
power only on the shoulders of the previous workers' movement. By close
examination of the inner connecton of things we can see tat not only com
munism, by its example of State-dictatorship, but also social democracy had
prepared the way for national socialism. The slogans, the ams, the me
t
hods
contrived by social democracy, for the workers, were taken over and applied by
national socialsm, for capital.
First the idea of State socialism, consciously planned organization of the
entire production by the centralized power of te State. Of course the demo
cratic State was meant, organ of the working people. But intentions do not
count against the power of reality. A body that is master of production is mas
ter of society, master of the producers, notwithstading all paragraphs trying to
make it a subordinate organ, and needs develops into a ruling class or group.
Secondly, i social democacy a leading bureaucracy already before the first
world war was acquiring mastery over th e workers, consciously aspiring at it
and defending it as the normal social condition. Doubtless, those leaders just
as well would have developed into agents of big capital; for ordinar times they
would have served well, but for leaders in world war they were too soft. Te
"Leader-principle" was not invented by national socialism; it developed in
social democacy hidden under democratic appearances. Nationl socialism
proclaimed it openly as the new basis of social relations and drew all its conse
quences.
Moreover, much of the program of social democracy was realized by nation
al socialism; and that-an irony of history-especially such aims as had been
criticzed as most repulsive by the middle class of old. To bring order in the
chaos of capitalist production by planned regulation always had been pro
claimed an impossibility and denounced a an unbearable despotism. Now te
State accomplished this orgaization to a great extent, tus making the task for
a workers' revolution considerably easier. How often the intention of social
democracy to replace the automatism of market and shop by a consciously
organized distribution has been ridiculed and abhorred: everyone equally
apportioned for normalized wants, fed and clothed by the State, al alike mere
specimens. National socialism went far in te realization of this bogus. But
what was meant in the socialist program as organized abundance is introduced
hcre as organized want and hunger, as the utmost restriction of all life necessi
ties in order that as muc of productive force as possible remains for war mate
rials. Thus the socialism the workers got was parody ra
t
her than realization;
what in social democratc ideas bore the character of richness, progress and
freedom, found its caricature in dearth, reaction and suppression.
1 58 WORKERS' COUNCILS
The chief blame on socialism was the omnipotence of the State, compared
with the personal freedom in capitalist society. This freedom, to be sure, ofen
was no more than an ambiguous form, but it was something. National social
ism took away even this semblance of liberty. A system of compulsion, harder
than any slanderer ventured to impute to socialism, was imposed upon
mankind by capitalism in its power and emergency. So it had to disappear;
without liberty man cannot live. Liberty, tuly, is only a collective name for dif
ferent forms and degrees of bondage. Man by his bodily needs depends on
nature; this is the basis of all dependencies. Llife is not possible but by restrain
ing of the free impulses they must be restrained. If productive labor can only
be secured by submission under a commanding power, then command and sub
mission are a necessity. Now, however, tey are a necessit only for te suc
cumbing capitalism. To uphold exploitation it imposes upon mankind a system
of hard constaint, that for production itself, for the life of man, is not required.
If a fascist system, instead of beig shattered in world war were able to stabi
lize in lastng peace, a system of organized production providing as it pretend
ed an abundance of all life necessities, even then it could not have lasted. Then
by necessity it would perish through te inner contradiction of freeing mankind
from the constrant of its needs and of yet trng to keep it in social slavery.
Then the fight for freedom, as the only desire left, would be taken up with irre
sistble force.
The workers cannot foster the easy illusion that with a defeat in world war
the role of national socialism is played out. The epoch of big capitalism is rife
wit its principles and instigations. The old world does not come back.
Governments, even those styled democratic, will be compelled to interfere with
production ever more. As long as capital has power and has fear, despotic meth
ods of goverment will arise as formidable enemies of the working cass. Not
always in the open form of violent middle class or militay dictatorships ; they
may also take the appearance of labor governments, proceeding from labor
fgts, perhaps even i the disguise or under the contradictory name of coun
ci goverments. So a consideration, on broad lines, of their place and role in
te development of society does not seem superfluous. A comparison with the
rise of another new class, formerly the middle class , may offer an aalogy,
uncertain though, and surely to be used with caution, and ,vith the reserve that
now the pace of social evolution is much quicker, but has to go farter and
deeper, than it was in former centuries.
The rise of the bourgeoisie took place in steps of gradually grming power.
From the powerless burgesses of the ealy middle ages they lead to the mer
chant ad guilds ruling teir own towns , fighting the nobility and even van
quishing the knight armies in the open feld; an essential element in the medi
aeval world, yet only islands in an ocean of agrarian power. By means of the
money over of the burghers the kings rise as masters above the other feudal
THE FOE 159
powers, and institute centralized governments in their kingdoms. Their abso
lutism often is spoken of as a state of equilibrium, when the nobility was no
longer, the bourgeoisie not yet strong enoug for mastery; so a third power,
protectig the privileges of the one and the trade of the other clas, leaning
upon them both, could rule both. Until, after new growth of trade and indus
try, the bourgeoisie is so much stengthened as to overthrow this rule and
establish itself master of society.
The rise of the working class in the 1 9th century was te rise of a power
less, exploited, miserable mass into a class with acknowledged rights and with
organizatons to defend them. Tei unions and their political parties may be
compared somehow with the guilds and the town governments of the burgess
es, an essential element in the all-powerful capitalist world. Whereas , however,
the burghers could build up their money power separately, leaving the nobility
with its landed property alone, the workers now, to build up thei economc
power, have to take the means of production from the capitalists, so that ime
diate fght cannot be avoided. Just as then in the further rise the old institu
tions, the independent town governments were destroyed and the burghers sub
jected by the biggest of the feudals, the princes, masters of the lesser aristocra
cy, so now the old organization of labor, unions and paties, are destroyed or
subjected by big capitalism, thus clearing the way for more moder forms of
fight. So there is a certain analogy between former absolutism and new dicta
torship, a third power above the contending classes. Tough we cannot yet
speak of their equilibrium, we see that the new rulers appeal to labor as the
basis of their system. It is conceivable that in a hgher stage of the power of
labor, caouflaged dictatorships may come up founded upon the support of
labor, transient attempts to keep the workers in submission before their final
victory.
Historical analogy may also be useful to show that development does not
necessarily go along exactly the same lines everywhere. Later middle class mas
tery in Holland and England, by a fight against absolutistic attempts, developed
out of the mediaeval urban privileges, without having lived under absolutism.
the same way now it might be that, whereas in some countries fascist dicta
torships arise, in other countries te conditions ae lacking. Then forms and
conditions of the workers' fght will also be different. It is not well imaginable
that in countries where personal liberty is frmly rooted in all classes, such as
England and Aerica, complete slavery could be established, though single
measures of fascist character are possible. Capitalist domination there is found
ed on fner, more spiitual elements of power, more effcient than roug vio
lence. Then the power of the workers for a long time will remain poor and
unconscious; practical necessites wil enforce partial steps in the direction of
council organization, rather than a great revolutionary fgt over fundamentals .
Te growth of clear consciousness of class and the organization of production
160 WORKERS' COUNCILS
are a far more extensive and laborious task, when the mind is filled with mid
dle class ideas and when society is full of unorganized small trade.
In countries with strong fascist dictatorshp, on te oter hand, the heavi
est part of the workers' task is the direct fight to overthrow it. There dictator
shp has gone far already in clearing away small trade with its feelings of inde
pendence, as well as middle class ideas. The mind is bent already on organiza
tion of industry, the idea of community is present, though practice is a sham.
The hard pressure forcing all into the same harness of servitude, regulating
production. rationing consumption, uniforming life, evoke resentment and
exasperation, only to be kept down by hrder suppression. Because all physi
cal power and an enormous spiritual power lie in the hands of the rulers, the
fight demads from the workers the highest degree of devotion ad courage, of
clear insight and unity. Te same holds good if capitalism should succeed in
establishing one supreme dominating power over the entre earth.
The object of national socialist dictatorship, however, the conquest of world
power, makes it probable that it will be destroyed in the war it unloosened.
Then it will leave Europe ruined and devastated, chaotic and ilpoverished, the
production apparatus adapted to war implements, entirely worn away, soil and
man power exhausted, raw materials lacking, towns and factories in ruins, the
economic resources of the continent squandered and annihilated. Then, unlike
in the Germany of 1 918, politcal power will not automatically fall into the
hands of te working class; the victorious powers will not alow it; all their
forces now will serve to keep it down. Whlst at the same time new rulers and
leaders present themselves with promises and progams of a new and better
order, and the allied amies are liberating te European continent for the
exploitation by American capitalism. Then, i this economic, social and spiri
tual chaos it will fall to the workers to fnd ways for organizing themselves on
cass lines, ways for clearing up teir ideas and purposes, ways for first
attempts in reconstructing production. Wherever a nucleus of organzation, of
fight, of production is growing, wherever wide embracing cOlUlections are ted,
wherever minds are struggling for clear ideas, there foundations are laid and a
start u made for the future. With partial successes won in devoted fight,
through strong unity and insight progressing by gradual steps, the workers
must build their new society.
It is not possible as yet to foresee te coming forms of social strife and activ
ity in the different countries. But we may say for certain that, once they under
stand it, the consciousness of their great task as a bright star will guide the
workers through all the difficulties on their path. And that the certaint that by
their work and fight they build up the power and unity of te working class,
the brotherhood of mankind, will elate their hearts and brighten their minds.
And that the fight will not end mu working mankind has WOIl complete fee
dom.
IV The War
1. JAPAESE IMPERIAISM
Tle preceding chapters were composed in the frst years of te war,
1941-1942, a summary of what past times of struggle provided in usefl infor
mation for the working cass, an instrument helpful in their frther fight for
freedom. Now, 1944, the war, begun as an attempt of German capital to wrendl
world power fom the English bourgeoisie, has extended over the entire world.
All the stains created by the growth of capitalism in different continents, all the
antagonisms between new rising and old powerful bourgeoisies, all the conflicts
and excitations in near and far away countries have coalesced and exploded in
this truly world war. And every day shows how much deeper, more tremen
dous and more torough than in any former war its efects will be, in America
and Asia, as well as in Europe. Mankind in its entirety is involved, and the neu
trals, too, experience its consequences. Every nation is implicated in the fate of
every other nation, however remote. This war is one of the last convulsions in
te irresistible process of unification of mankind; the class fght that wll evolve
from the war wil make this unit into a selfdirecting communt.
Besides Europe, its first scene, Eastern Asia has become a second, no less
important, center of the war. In China wa wit Japan was already going on for
some years when, by the outbreak of the war between America andJapan, it
was included as a subordinate part in the world fight. This struggle i East Asia
will have the same importance for the world's course as te fight in Europe.
Hence its origins, as well as its tendencies, must be conidered here somewhat
more attentively.
The dense populations thronged togeter in the fertile plains of East and
South Asia ad the adjacent islands hve long resisted the invasion of capital
ism. With their number of nearly a thousand mlions they constituted almost
the half of mankind. Hence, as long as they remain in the condition of small
agriculture and small handicraft, capitalism cannot be said to occupy the world,
capitalism is not yet at the end of its task and its growth. The old powerfl
monarchies stifened in teir frst contact with the rising capitalism of the 16
t
and 17
t
centuries, they kept off its intrusion and shut out its dissolving effects.
1 61
162 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Whereas in India and the Indian islands commercial capital could gradualy
establish its sway, China and Japan could maintain temselves as strong mili
tary powers during some centries. In the 1 9t
h
century the military power of
modern capitalism broke the resistance. The development of capitalism, frst in
Japan, now in China, was the origin, is the content and will be the outcome of
the present world war.
In the 17t
h
, 18t
h
, and te first half of the 19t
h
century Japan was a
feudal-absolutist state separated from the outer world by strict prohibitional
laws. It was govered by some hundred small princes [daimyos], eac lord over
his own realm, but all strictly subjected under the sway of the Shogun in the
capital, forally the military chief for the nominal emperor, the Mikado in
Kyoto, but practically the real ruler. The Shoguns, whose offce was hereditary
in the Tokugawa family, retained the daimyos in submission and kept interal
peace during two and a half centuries. A strict feudal organization of four
orders in society was maintained; but in the long run it could not prevent an
inner development.
The basis of society was small farming, on lots mostly of only one or some
few acres. Legally half the product had to be delivered to the prince, in kind
(mostly rice) , but often more was taken from the farmers. Above them stood
the ruling and exploiting class of warriors, the samurai, forming the uppermost
order ranged in a number of ranks, from the princes down to the common sol
diers. Tlley constituted the nobility, though their lowest most numerous ranks
had only a small rice-income; they were a kind of knights, living around the
castles of their lords. Since through the cessation of the internal wars of old
their special offce, fghting, was no longer needed, they had turned into a pure
ly parasitic class, living in idleness or occupying themselves with literature and
art-they were the producers of te famous Japanes e art, afterwards so much
admired in Europe. But they had the right to slay everyone of the lower orders
they came across without being punished. Below the second order, the farmers,
stood the lowest orders, the artisans and the merchants, who worked for the
samurai, teir patrons and customers; they eaed money and gradually out of
them arose a frst species of bourgeoisie.
The basis of the system was heavy exploitation of the farmers; Japanese
authors said the policy of the government consisted in leaving to the farmers
so much that they neither could die nor live. They were kept in absolute igno
rance, they were bound to the soil, which they could not sell, all ease oflife was
denied to tem. They were slaves of the State; they were looked upon as
machinery for production of the rice the rnling class needed. Sometimes the
faished peasants rose in local revolt and obtained some redress, because the
inept soldiers did not dare to oppose them. But hunger and misery remained
the prevailing conditions.
THE WAR 1 63
Still, although the laws meant to establish a petrified immutability, condi
tions gradually changed. The extension of craft and commerce, the increase of
te production of comodities, brought luxury into the towns. The rling
nobility, to satisfy their new needs, had to borrow money and became debtors
of the merchant class, the highest daimyos, as well as the common soldiers. The
latter, reduced to poverty, sometimes , notwitstanding the prohibition, escaped
into other professions . In the 19t
h
century their growig discontent crystallized
into a systematic hostility to the system of government. Because tey formed
the most intellectual class and were influenced by some European ideas trick
ling through the narrow chink of Dutch commerce at Deshima, they were able
to formulate their opposition i the nationalist program of "respect for the
Emperor" as a symbol of national unty. So there were forces for change from
feudal absolutism in the direction of capitalism; but would have been too
weak for a revolution, had not the big push from aggressive Western capitalism
come to enforce admission.
In its frst rise already, in the discovery of the entire earth in the 16t
h
cen
tury, capitalism had knocked at the gates of Japan; it kindled wars between the
feudal lords and princes; the spreading of Christendom over against Buddhism
was an expression of the paralyzing disruption of the empire. A couple of con
sective strong Shoguns averted the danger subjecting the rebellious lords
to their centralized power; the foreigners were driven out, ad with a boomng
blow-prohibition and extermination of Christendom-the gate was closed for
two centuries and a half. Then modern capitalism in its world conquest again
knocked at the gate, and with its guns forced it open. Aerican and Russian
men-of-war came in 1853, others followed, treaties for commerce were made
with the Western powers. And now the old worm-eaten system of government
broke down, the Shogunate disappeared, clans hostile to it got the upper hand,
and through the "restoration" of 1868 established a strongly united state under
the government of the Mikado.
TIlS meant the introduction of capitalism. First the juridical basis for a mid
dle-class society was laid: the four orders were abolished and all inhabitats
became citizens with equal rights. Freedom of trade, of livig and travel,
private property, also of the land, that could be bought and sold now, were
established. Instead of the tiller of the soil paying half te product in kind, land
taxes in money were laid upon the owner. The samurai lost their feudal priv
leges, and instead got an amount of money to buy a lot of land or to start a
business ; as artisans and employers they formed part of the rising bourgeoisie.
The state offcials , the army ad naval officers, the intellectuals in the new soci
ety cliefly came from tIl s samurai class. The upper ranks remained in power;
part of the feudal princes now formed the Secret Council, which, behd the
scenes directed government; their retainers, still linked together by the old clan
ties, became cabinet ministers, generals, party chiefs and infuential politicians.
1 64 WORKERS' COUNCILS
So in Japan things were diferent fom Europe. Capitalism did not come
because a rising bourgeoisie vanquished the feudal class in a revolutionary
struggle, but because a feudal class transformed itself into a bourgeoisie, cer
tainly a performance worthy of respect. Thus it is easily understood that also
under capitalism the feudal spirit, with its prejudices of rans, its overbearing
haughtiness, its servie respect to the emperor, persisted in the Japanese ruling
class. "111e middle-cass spirit of European capitalism was etirely lacking;
Germany, that most resembles differs from Japan by the diversit there
between the land owning nobility and the middle-class industrialists. Not till
some dozens of years later a consttution was made, after the German model,
with a parliament without power over the adminstration and the budget. Civil
rights hardly existed, even on paper; government and offcials had absolute
power over the people. The peasants remained the deeply subjected, heavily
exploited mass of starvelings ; the substtution of capitalist for feudal pressure
meant that they had to pay a lot of money i taxes or rent, that teir land came
into the hands of big landowners, that they could be evicted by withdrawal of
the lease, that instead of the former known misery there came unforeseen ruin
through unknown infuences of market and prices. Peasant revolts were numer
ous after the first years of the Restoration.
Capitalism was introduced fom above. Capable young men were sent to
Europe to study science and technics. The government erected factories, in the
first place armament works and shipyards ; for military stength against the
other powers was most urgent. Then railways and ships were built, coal mines
constructed, afterwards the textile industry developed, chiefly silk and cotton,
bans were founded. Private business was encouraged by subsidies, and state
industries were turned over to private hands. m this way the government spent
much money, got partly by taxes, partly by borrowing, or by the issue of paper
money, which rocketted prices. This policy was continued later on; capital was
fattened by government subsidies, especially navigation, with its ensuing artifi
cial prosperity. 'ne system often developed into sheer corruption; the
new-made capitalist class, throug the absence of inherited business maxins in
its dealings, exhibited a brazen lack of ordinary honesty; plundering public
funds for personal eurichment is considered a common affair. Even te highest
oficials and politicians take part in big enterprises and procure orders for them
by means of politcal influence.
Large numbers of impoverished peasants flowed into the towns, to the fac
tories, where a heavily exploited proletariat, almost without rights, accumulat
ed in the slums, ravished trough low wages (half a yen per day) , long hours
(14-16 hours) , ad child labor. State oficials in the lower ranks, even intellec
tuals, engineers, marie officers are pad far lower wages than in Europe. Te
working casses in the country, as well as in the towns, lived in a state of hope
less misery, of squalor and despair, surpassing the worst conditions in Europe
THE WAR 165
of olden times. In the textile industry there is a regular slave system; the farm
ers sell their daughters for a number of years to the factories, where they live
intern under the most horrible unhygienic conditions ; and after the contract
expires they return in part only to their villages, bringing with them tubercu
losis. Thus, Japanese producton was cheap, and through the low prices of its
trash could outbid Wester products on the Asiatic market. On the basis of
highy developed machine technics-complemented by extensive primitive
home industry and the low standard of life of the workers-capitalist industry
and commerce shot up powerfully; every ten years import and export were
doubled. Though it did not equal America, England and Geray, it rose
above most other countries. Te number of industri
a
l workers reached two
millions in 1 929; agriculture occupied less than half the population already.
The workers lived in a state of partial slavery; only in machine industry and
among the sailors was there a bit of organization. Strikes broke out, but were
forcibly beaten down. Socialist and communist ideas, naturally finding their
way under such conditions, were persecuted and exterminated ferociously.
This fitted entirely in the system of police arbitrariness, of lack of persona
rights, of brutal cruelty and lawless violence against their own, as well as
agaist subjected alien people, which showed already the chaacter of later fas
Csm.
Imperialism, the big-capitalist politics of conquest, had no need to develop
gradually here; from the first it belongs to the policy of introduction of capi
talism from above. From te beginning militarism was the chief aim and idea
of the new system, frst as a means of defense against the white powers, then
as a means of conquest of markets and sources of raw materials. / the old
fighting instincts, traditions of discipline and impulses of oppression of the for
mer samurai class could exhibit themselves and revive in the military spirit of
exalted nationalism. Frst by defeating in 1895 the mouldy Chinese power and
conquering Korea and Formosa, it took its place among the big powers. 'Inen
its victory over the equ
a
lly mouldy power of Russian Czarism in 1904, opened
the way into the inner Asiatic realms. Now the Japaese rulers gew cockier
and began to speak of Japan's world mission to lead East Asia and to free Asia
entrely fom the white domination.
This policy of conquest is often defended with the argument that the rapid
increase of the population-a doubling in 35 years-that cannot find a sufficient
living on the small lots of tillable soil in these mountainous islands, compels
emigration or the increase of industrial labor for which markets and raw mate
rial must be available. Everywhere the rise of capitalism, with its abolition of
old bonds and its increasing possibilities for living has brought about a rapid
increase of population. Here, on the reverse, this consequence, considered as a
natural phenomenon, is used as an argument for conquest and subjugation of
oter peoples. The real reason, however, of this policy of conquest, frst of
166 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Manchuria, then of the northern provinces of China, consists inJapan's lack of
iron ore. All industrial and miltary power nowadays is based upon the dispos
al over iron ad steel; hence Japan wants the ric mineral deposits ofJehol and
Shansi. At the same time Japanese capital invaded China and set up factories,
chiefy cotton mills, in Shanghai and other towns. And there a vision loomed
of a future of greatness ad power: to make of these 400 millions frstly cus
tomers of its industry, and then to exploit them as workers. So it was necessary
to become the political master and leader of China. And most experts in
Eastern affairs did not doubt that Japan, with its military power, its big indus
try, its proud self-reliance, would succeed in dominatng the impotent and
divided Chinese empire.
But here the Japanese rulers met with a heavy reverse. First with te unex
pected tenacious resistance of the Chinese people, and then with a mightier
opponent. Mastery over the markets and the future development of China is a
life issue for Aerican capitalism in its present state of development.
Notwithstanding the most careful and extensive preparations Japan cannot
match the colossal industrial resources of America, once they are transformed
into military potency. So its ruling class will succumb. When the military power
of Japan will be destroyed and its arrogant capitalist barons have been beaten
down, then for the first time the Japanese people will be freed from the feudal
forms of oppression.
For Japan this will be the daw of a new era. Whether the victorious allies
enforce a more modern form of government, or with the collapse of te sup
pressing power of a revolution of the peasants and the workers breaks out, in
every case the barbarous backwardness in living standards and in ideas will
have lost its basis. Of course, capitalsm does not disappear then; that will take
a good deal yet of interal and world fight. But the exploitation will assume
more moder forms. Then the Japanese working class will be able, on the same
footing as their American and European class-fellows, to take part in te gen
eral fight for freedom.
2. THE RISE OF CHINA
China belongs to those densely populated fertile plains watered by great
rivers, where the necessity of a central regulation of the water for irrigation and
for protection by dykes, in the earliest time already produced unification under
a central government. It remained so for tousands of years. Under a strong
and careful government the land rendered rich produce. But under a wea gov
ernment, when the oficials neglected their duties, when governors and princes
made civil war, the dykes and canals fell into decay, the silted rivers overflowed
the fields, famne and robbers ravished the people, and "tle wrath of heaven"
lay on the land. The population consisted chiefly of hard toiling peasants , care-
THE WAR 167
fully tilling their small lots . Trough the primitive technics and the lack of cat
tle for ploughing, with te hardest labor during long days they could produce
hardly more a than a bare existence. The slight surplus produce was taken
from them by the ruling class of landowners, intellectuals and offcials, the
mandarins. Since usually more even was taken from them, they often stood on
the brink of famine. The plains were open to te north, the Central-Asiatic
steppes, from where warlike nomads came invading and conquering. When
they conquered the land they became the new ruling class, formed a kind of
aristocracy, but were soon assimilated by the hgher Chnese cvilization. So
came the Mongols in the Middle Ages; so came in the 17t
h
century the
Manchus from the north-east, extended their empire in the 18t
h
century far
over Central Asia, but fell into decay in the 19t
h
century.
In the numerous towns lived a large class of small artisans and dealers with
a proletarian class of coolies below and the wealthy class of merchants above
them. From the seaports, as well as on caravan routes to the West across deserts
and mountains, the precious wares of Chinese origin: tea, silk and porcelain
were exported, even into Europe. So there was a middle class comparable with
te European as to free initative in business. But in the Chinese peasants too
lived te same spirit of idependence and self-reliance, far stronger than in te
Japanese, deeply curbed as they were under feudalism. If the oppression of the
oficials, t fanners , ladlords or usurers became too heavy, revolts broke out,
increasing sometimes to revolutions, against which the possessing class sought
protection from foreig military powers; in such a way the Manchus came into
the country.
In the 1 9t
h
century Wester capitalism begins to attack and invade China.
The strict prohibition of opium import led to a war with Britain, 1840, and to
the opening of a number of ports for European commerce. Tis number
increases in later wars and treaties ; European merchants and missionaries
invade the countr, and by their use and abuse of their specially protected posi
tion incite the hatred of the populaton. Cheap European wares are imported
and undermine home handicraft; heavy war contributions imposed upon
China aggavate the tax burden. Thus revolutionary movements flare up, such
as the Taiping insurrection (1853-1864) , having its own emperor in Nanking,
and the Boxer revolt, 1899; both were suppressed with the help of European
military power, which showed itself as barbarian destroyers of old Chnese cul
ture. When the war with Japan lays bare Chinese impotence, all the Western
powers, including Japan, seize parts of it as "concessions," tearing it asunder in
"spheres of influence." Foreig capital builds some few railways and installs fac
tories in the great harbor towns ; Chinese capital, too, begins to take part. And
now the obsolete Manchu dynasty crumbles in 1911, and is replaced in name
by a Chinese republic proclimed in Nankng, in reality, however, by te rule
of provincial governors and generals, the so-called "war lords:' often upstart
H8 WORKERS' COUNCILS
former bandit chiefs, who now with their gang of soldiers in continuous wars
pillage the country.
For the rise of a Chinese capitalism the elements were present: a class of
wealthy or even rich merchants in the cities, mostly agents of foreign capital,
which could develop into a moder bourgeoisie; a numerous class of poor
urba proletarians and artisans, wit a low standard of life; and an enormous
population as customers. Western commercial capital, however, was not a driv
ing force towards a development to higher productivity; it exploited the prim
itive forms of home industry for commercial proft, and impoverished the arti
sans by its imports. Hence the dominating position of this Western capital, on
the way to make China into a colony, had to be repelled through organization
of the Chinese forces. This work of organization fell as their task to the young
intellectuals who had studied in England, France, America or Japan, and had
imbibed Wester science and Wstern ideas. One of the first spokesmen was
Sun Yat-Sen, formerly a conspirator persecuted by the Manchu government, a
well-known fgure in European socialist circles, then the frst Pesident in name
of the Chese republic. He designed a program of national unity, a mixture of
middle-class democracy and government dictatorship, and after his death in
1 925 he became a kind of saint of the new China. He founded the
Kuomintang, the political orgaization and leading party of the rising Chinese
bourgeoisie.
A stong impulse came from te Russian revolution. In 1920 students in
Paris and workers (chiefly miners, railway men, typos and municipal workers)
in Shanghai and Canton founded a Chinese Communist Party. Big strikes
broke out against the mostly foreign employers, and by their exemplay soli
darity the workers were able to many of their demands conceded by the
powerful capital; often, however, the figt led to bloody reprisals fom the war
lords. Now also the bourgeoisie took heart; in the next years the Kuomitang
allied itself wit te communist party and with Russia. Of course, te Chinese
bourgeoisie did not profess any inclnation to communist ideas; but it felt that
such an alliance offered a lot of advantages. Merely by allowing them to shout
for liberty and communism it gained the servce of the most active groups of
workers and enthusiastic young intellectuals for its purposes, and found skilled
Russian organiers from Moscow as "advisers;' to lead its fight and to instruct
its cadres. Russia, moreover, gave it exactly te slogans it needed for its libera
tion from the grip of the all-powerful Western imperialism: the doctrine of
world revolution against world capital, especially against its chief exponent, the
Englsh world power. Soon strictly enforced boycott and strike movements
undermined European business and commerce; a sharp anti-foreigner excita
tion flooded te country; and from the interior, a terrifed fock, came a stream
of white missionaries, dealers and agents, feeing to the seaports and the pro
tection of te guns of te men-of-war. From Canton, 1 926, an epedition went
TE WA 169
to the North, party military conquest, partly intense nationalist propaganda
campaig, "watering its horses in the Yang-tse River," chasing the war lords or
compelling them to join, and uniting Central and Southern China ito one
state, with Nanking as its capital.
But now the long smouldering and ever agai suppressed fight of the class
es broke loose. The workers of the big towns, especally the industial workers
of Shanghai, the emporium of te East, took communism in its proletarian
sense, as the workers' class fght. Thei wages hardly sufficed to appease direct
hunger, their working time was I 4to 1 6 hours daily; now they tried to raise
their miserable conditions by striking, notwithstanding that Russian propagan
da always had taught coalition wit the bourgeoisie. Te C. P. of China had
been istructed [rom Moscow that the Chinese revolution was a middle-class
revolution, tat the bourgeoisie had to be the future ruling class, and that the
workers simply had to assist her against feudalsm and bring her into power.
Te c. P. had followed this lesson, and so had entirely neglected to organize
and to arm the workers and the peasants against the bourgeoisie. It kept faith
with the Kuomintang, even when this party orered te generals to beat down
te peasant revolts ; so the communist militants were left at a loss, wavering
between contradictory class sentments and party commands. The mass actions
that broke out in Canton and Shanghai were quenched in blood by the
Kuomintang armies of Chiang Kai-shek, fnanced for tat purpose by the
Chinese and international bankers. A sharp persecution of communism set in,
thousands of spokesmen and militants were slaughtered, the Russian "advis
ers" were sent home, te workers' organizations were exterminated, and the
most reactonary parts of tlle bourgeoisie took ilie lead in government. These
were chiefly ie groups of rich merchants, whose interests as agents of foreign
commercial and banking capital were bound to this capital and to te preser
vation of the old conditions.
Communism in te meantime had spread over ie countside. During all
these years of anarchy te condition of ilie peasants had gone from bad to
worse. By tlle landlords and tax collectors they were stripped to the bone; the
wa lords often demanded taxes for many years to come, and when they hd
been driven out by others who demanded the same taxes aga, iliese were
deposed safely in a foreign Shanghi bankng house. Nobody took care of the
canals and the dykes; irough foods and the ensuing famine and pestilence
uncounted millions perished. For some few pieces of bread ilie famished peas
ants sold their land to full-stocked hoarders and money lenders, and roamed as
beggars or robbers through the land. Under such conditons communism, in its
Russian bolshevist form of a workers and peasants republic, without capitalists,
landlords and usurers, was hailed and made rapid progress in the most dis
tressed provinces. At the same time it was extinguished in the towns, commu
nism rose in the countrside as a mighty peasant revolt. Where it won power
1 70 WORKERS' COUNCILS
it began already to drive out the landlords and to divide up their land among
the peasants and to establish Soviet rule. Part of the armies, consisting chiefy
of workers and peasants, joined by their oficers, mostly intellectuals sympa
thizing with the popular movement, revolted against the reactionary
Kuomintang policy, and formed the nucleus of a Red Army.
The cvil war thus ensuing was waged by the Kuomintang govermnent as a
campaig against the "communist bandits," who were branded with all kids of
atrocities-doubtless the rebellious peasants often were far from soft against
their tormentors-and which had to be extermiated before unity of the naton
was possible. From the side of the peasants it was a tenacous ad heroic
defense of their besieged chief territory i the south-eastern provinces Kiangsi
and Hunan. Every year again from 1 930 onward, the war of extermination is
resumed with ever larger armies, and ever again it is frustrated by te superi
or skill, the indomitable courage and the self-sacrificing enthusiasm of the red
troops that in careful and intrepid guerilla fighting had to win their very arms
from the routed enemy regiments. Meanwhile, Japan makes use of this mutual
destruction of Chinese military forces by occupying consecutively Manchuria
and the Northern provinces.
What may be the reason that te Chinese bourgeoisie so ferociously made
war upon the peasants and thereby squandered its military and financia
resources? If we speak of the short existence of a Chinese bourgeoisie, we
should bear in mind that this class differs considerably from tlle bourgeoisie of
Europe, so that ideas instinctively associated with the latter class are not all
applicable here. In Europe the risig bourgeoisie, a class of industrial and com
mercial employers and capitalists, in a social revolution, assisted by the peas
ats, had to brea the political dominance of a landpossessing nobility. In
China this antagonism is lacking; the bourgeoisie itself was the land-possessing
class, and from herself came the ruling ofcials. On account of the lack of a rap
idly rising industry the rich urban merchants and business men invested their
money in land; and rent was as important a source of their income as profit;
on the reverse landowners went into the town to set up a business. They com
bined the caracters of two opposite European classes. Thus the peasants' fight
found its most ftting expression in the communist slogan of fght against cap
itaism. In its character of landowners subjection and exploitation of the peas
ants was a life interest of the Chinese bourgeoisie; its deepest feelngs were
affected by the land expropriation of the red soviets. So tlle conservative ele
ments of this class, who had frst distrusted the Kuomintang as a disguised red
organization, as soon as possible expelled the communsts ad made it an
instrument of reactonary middle-class politics. They felt the lack of power on
the part of the Chinese govcrmcnt to bring order into the chaos : so they
sought support from the strongest anti-communist power, from Japan. Japan,
aming at dominance over the resources, the mineral riches and the labor power
THE WAR ] 71
of Chna, came forward as the protector of the landowning interests against the
rebellious masses. In every next treaty it imposed upon the Chinese gover
ment the duty to exterminate communism.
Against this conservative there was, however, an opposite trend, especially
among the smaller bourgeoisie and the intellectuals. It anticipated and repre
sented the fture; it gave expression not to what the bourgeoisie had been till
now, but to what it would be and should be. Its spokesmen realized that a
wealthy class of peasants with purchasing power was the chef and necessary
condition for a powerul development of capitalist industry in China. Their
middle-class feeling understood instinctively that all these landowners and
usurers represented a piece of feudalism, barring the way to the future devel
opment of China; and that a free landowning peasantry belongs to the lnid
dIe-class world and would form its solid basis. Hence, next to and opposite to
the conservative tendency there was a strong democratic stream of thought
among the rising Chinese bourgeoisie. It was strongly nationalistic; the
Japanese aggression, the seizure of precous provinces in the North, and the
haughty brntalities of Japanese mlitarism filled it with indignation. It wished
to end the civil war by concessions to the peasants in order to unite al force in
a common resistance to Japanese imperialism.
Five years the extermiation campaig lasted in Kiangsi, and, on a minor
scale, in other provinces, without success. The communst armies were firmly
rooted in the peasat population, among whch tey made extensive educa
tional propaganda, and fom which ever new forces came to join them. When
at last their position against the besieging superior forces ably led by German
military advisers, became untenable, they broke through the iron ring and
invaded the South-wester provinces. Then in 1934 the Red Army began its
famous long march, over te highest, nearly unpassable, mountain passes,
across the wildest and most dangerous rivers, through endless swampy steppes,
through the etremes of heat and cold, always surrounded and attacked by bet
ter equipped superior White forces, until after heavy privations, heroic stug
gles and severe losses it arrived, a year later, in the North-western provinces,
where i Shensi a new Soviet government was organized.
But now, in the meantme, tactics and aims had changed. Not agaist capi
talism and landlords the communist fight was directed in the first place, but
against Japan and Japanese imperialism. Before the start of their long march
already the C. P. of China had proposed, publicly, to te Kuomintang to cease
the civil war in order to fght in common the Japanese aggression, in whch case
it would stop the expropriations and respect the existing property rights, in
exchange for s ocial reform and democratic rights of te people. But this ofer
had not been regarded.
This change of tactics has been sharly criticized in other countries as an
opportunistic renouncement of communist principles. Such criticism, however,
172 WORKERS' COUNCILS
is based on the false supposition tat the C.P. was a party of industrial work
ers exploited by big capitalism. The Chinese C.P., and still more the Red Army,
however, consists of rebellious peasants. Not the name stuck on a label outside,
but the class character determines the real content of thought and action. The
party leaders saw quite well that Japanese military power was the most dan
gerous threat to the Chinese peasants, and that a coalition of the Chinese bour
geoisie wit Japan would make their liberation impossible. So it was imperative
to separate them and to direct all military and economic potencies of China
against Japan. To the red leaders the ideal of the future was a democratic mid
dle-class China, with free peasants as owners, or at least well-to-do farmers of
the soil. Under communist ideas and slogans tey were the heralds and cham
pions of the capitalist development of China.
From these tendencies on both sides arose the new policy, in the dramatic
form of the capture, December, 1936, in Sianfu, of the gerneralissimo Chang
Kai-shek by the government's own Manchurian troops, who wanted to fight the
Japanese rather tha the Reds. The natonalist leader, in involuntary discours
es with the communist leaders, could make certan that they were equally
nationalist and middle-class mnded as himself, and were ready to put them
selves under his command in a war with Japan. When, then, the civil war
ceased and the most reactionary leaders were turned out of the government,
Japan imediately drew the consequences and began war with a heav attack
on Shanghai. China, with its undeveloped sleeping resources at first sight might
seem no match for the tremendous, carefully prepared war machinery of Japan.
But it had trained armies now, it was filled with a stong natonalist spirit, and
it got war materials from England and America. To be sure, its amlies had to
give way, the government had to retreat to Chunking in the South-western
province of Szechuan, and Japanese troops occupied the Eastern towns. But
behind their back ever new amies of partisans stood up as guerilla and
exhausted their forces. Tll, in 1941, after the war in Europe had gone on for
nealy two years, the long foreseen confict between America ad Japan broke
out in consequence of America's ultimatum that Japan should leave China.
Thus the Chinese war became part of the world war.
This world war means te rise of China as a new capitalist world power.
Not immediatey as an independent power on an equal par with its allies,
Russia on the one, America on the other side, tough it exceeds both in popu
laton. Its economical and political dependence on America, to which it is heav
ily in debt because of its war supplies, will mark the new future; American cap
ital wil then have the lead in building up its industry. Two great tasks are
standing in the forefront; the construction of raiways and roads, combined
with the production of engines and motor cars, to modernize the prmitive
expensive traffic; and intoduction of mechanical power in agricultre to free
the human beast-of-burden and make its labor efficient. The accomplishment
THE WA 1 73
of these tasks requires a big metal industry. China possesses all the resources
necessary for capitalist development. It has coal, iron and other merals, not
enough to make it an industrial countr for export as England or Germany, but
enough for its own needs. It has a dense population with all the qualities nec
essary for capitalism: a strong i ndividualism, paistaking diligence, capability,
spirit of enterprise, and a low standard of needs. It has , moreover, a fertile soil,
capable of producing an abundance of products, but requiring secrity by wide
scientific care and regulation of the water, by constructig dykes and excavat
ing and normalizing the rivers.
The ideals and aims for which the working masses of China are fighting,
will of course not be realized. Landowners, exploitation ad poverty will not
disappear; what disappears are the old stagnant, primitive forms of misery,
usury and oppression. The productivity of labor will be enhanced; te new
forms of direct exploitation by industrial capital wil replace the old ones. The
problems facing Chinese capitalism wl requie central regulations by a pow
erful government. That means forms of dictatorshp in the central goverment,
perhaps complemented by democratic forms of autonomy in the small units of
district and village. The introduction of mechanical force into agriculture
requires the conjunction of the small lots into large production units ; whether
by gadual expropriation of the small peasants, or by the foundation of co-oper
atives or kolchozes after the Russian model, will depend on te relative power
of the contending classes. This development will not g on without producing
deep changes in the economic, and thereby in the social relations, the spiritual
life and the old family structure. The dimensions, however, of thngs there, of
the country, of the population, of its misery, of its traditons, of its old cultural
life ae so colossal, that a innovation of conditions , even if taken up with the
utmost energy, will take many dozens of years.
The intensit of this development of economic conditions will str the ener
gies and stimulate the activit of the classes. Corresponding to capitalism the
fight against capitalism wil arise simultaneously. With the growth of industry
the fght of the industrial workers will spring up. With the strong spirit of
organization and great solidarity shown so often by the Chinese proletarians
and artisans, even a rise more rapid than i Europe of a powerful working class
movement may be expected. To be sure, the industria workers will remain a
minority compared with the mass of the agrarian population, equally subject
ed to capitalist exploitation, though in another way. Te mechanisation of agri
culture, however, will weave strong ties between them, manifesting itself in the
community of interests and fghts. So the charaeter of the fght for freedom and
mastery may take in many regards another aspect in China than in Wester
Europe and Aerica.
174 WORKERS' COUNCILS
3. THE COLONIES
When socialism grew up, half a century ago, the general expectation was
that the liberation of the colonial peoples would take place together with the
liberation of the workers. The colonies there and the workers here were
exploited by the sae capitalism; so they were allies in the fight against the
common foe. It is true tat their fght for freedom did not mean feedom for
the entire people; it meant the rise of a new ruling class. But even then it was
commonly accepted, with only occasional doubts, that the working class in
Europe and the rising bourgeoisie in the colonies should be allies . For te com
munist party tis was still more self-evident; it meant that the new ruling class
of Russia looked upon the fture ruling classes in the colonies as its natural
friends, and tried to help them. Certainly the forces for colonial liberation were
still weak. In India, with its 300 millions of people, idustry and a class of
employers gradually developed, giving the basis for an independence move
ment, tat suffers, however, from the great diversity of races and religions. The
50 millions population of Java is well-nigh homogeneous, but entirely agrarian,
and the opposition was till recently restricted to small groups of intellectuals.
These colonial peoples are no savages or barbarians, as te tribes of cetral
Africa or te inhabitants of remote Indian islands. They live densely crowded
in fertile areas with a highly developed agriculture. Often they have a thousand
years old civilization; there is a separation between a ruling class of priests and
nobility spending their portion of the total product in often refned artistic and
spiritual culture, and the subjugated masses of heavily exploited peasants.
Foreign warlike peoples invaded India and formed new upper social layers ;
incessant wars between larger and smaller princes checked the increase of the
population. Agriculture was the chief occupaton; because during many
mont.s agricultural labor had to rest, there was also an important cottage
industry in the villages. This hdicraft, artistic and highly developed, differ
ing according to natural produce, raw materials and inherited endowments in
different regions, produced a large amount of goods for export. Cotton goods,
fme dyed cloths in many designs, sik wares, goldsmiths ' and copper wares,
beautiflly decorated swords formed the contents of an extensive trade over
Souther and Easter Asia, and fa to the West, even into Europe. Here the
precious colored textile wares from the East, chiefly fom Indian village indus-
formed the main part of medieval trafic, produced the materials for the
dress of princes, nobility and rich bourgeoisie, up to the 18
t
century, and
brought a continuous flow of gold from Europe to India.
Against the invading European capitalism the Idian countries, mostly
divided into small states, were soon powerless. Te armed Wester merchant
vessels began to monopolize forcibly the entire tade of the Indian seas, with
its enorous profits. Thereafter direct conquest and pillage brought the accu
mulated riches of Eastern teasuries into the hands of Western offcials and
THE WAR 175
adventurers, and contributed in England in the 1 8t
h
century to form the capi
tal needed in the industrial revolution. More important still was regular
exploitation by enforced delivering of precious products-on the Molucca
islands of spices, onJava of pepper, indigo, sugar-for which hardly aything
was paid, a few coppers for what in Europe brought hundreds of forins. The
population had to spend a great deal of its time and of its soil in these products
for export, thus leaving not enough for teir own food; famine and revolts were
the result. Or heavy taxes were imposed upon the people of India, to procure
high incomes for a parasitical class of English officials and nabobs. At the same
time England employed its political power to forbid, in the interest of the
Lancashire cotton industry, the export of Indian textile goods. Thus the four
ishing India cottage industry was destroyed and the peasants were still more
impoverished. The result was that in the 1 9t
h
century, and even up to the pres
ent day, for the majority of the vilagers life is a continuous state of hunger.
Famines and pestilences, formerly unavoidable local occurrences, now take
place in devastated larger regions and more often. But also in normal times in
the villages and urban slums a state of misery reigns, worse than at any time in
Europe.
The essence of colonial policy is exploitation of foreign countries whe pre
serving their primitive forms of production or even lowering their productivi
ty. Here capital is not a revolutionary agent developing production to higher
forms ; just the reverse. Europea capital is here a dissolving agent, destroying
the old modes of work and life without replacing them by better technics .
European capital, like a vampire, clasps the defenceless tropical peoples and
sucks their life blood without caring whether the victims succumb.
Western science of course demonstates that the domination of colonies by
the Europeans is based on nature, hence is a necessity. The basis is formed by
the difference of dimate. In cool and moderate climes man can extort his liv
ing from nature by continuous exertion only; te temperature allows of assid
uous hard working; ad the inconstancy of the phenomena, te irregular
change from stor and rai to sunshine stiulates te energy into resdess
activity. Labor and energy became the gospel of the white race; so it gained its
superior knowledge and technics that made it master of the eart. In the hot
tropical and sub-tropical countries, on the contary, nture by itself or with
slight labor bears abundant fruit; here the heat makes every continuous exer
tion a torment. Here te dictum could originate that to eat his bread in the
sweat of his brow was the worst curse to man. The monotonous equality of the
weather, only interrupted at te change of seasons, deadens the energy; the
white people, too, when staying too long in the tropics, are subjected to these
influences that render laziness the chief characteristic and Nirvana the highest
ideal. These dicta of science doubtless arc true, theoretically. But practically we
see that the Indian and Javanese peasants till teir soil and perform their hand-
1 76 WORKERS' COUNCILS
icraft with unfagging zea and paistaking assiduit. Not, of course, in the
nerve-racking tempo of modern factory work; economic necessity determines
the character of their labor.
The Western bourgeoisie considers its rule over the colonies a natural and
lasting state of things, idealizing it into a division of tasks profitable to both par
ties. The energetic intelligent race from the cool climes, it says, serves as the
leaders of production, whereas the lazy, careless colored races execute under
their command the unntelligent manual labor. Thus the tropical products,
indispensable raw materials and important delicacies are inserted into the
world's commerce. And European capital wins its well deserved profits because
its government it assures to the fatalistic aborigines life, security, peace and,
by its medical service and hygienc measures, health, too. Suppose this idyll of
a paternal goverment, honest ilusion or deceptive talk of teorists and of
cials, to be as true as in reality it is impossible under capitalist rule, then still it
would be faced by an insoluble dilemma: If by the cessation of wars, epidemcs
and infant mortality the population increases, there results a shortage of arable
land notwithstanding all the irrigation and reclaiming that only postpones the
confict. Industialization for export, properly speaking an unnatural way out
for te most fertile lands, can give only temporary relief Into such a [mal state
every population that, ruled from above, is left to its own life istincts, must
arrive. Every economic system develops its own system of population increase.
Iby an autocratic rule fom above the feelings of responsibiity are suppressed,
then any active force of self-restraint and self-rule over the conditions of life is
extinguished. The impending clash between increase of population and restric
tion of meas of subsistence can fnd its solution only in a strong display of
inner energy and will-power of a people, consequence of its self-reliance and
freedom, or of an active fght for frcedom.
In the later part of the 19t
h
century and thereafter it is not the commercial
capita in the first place that exploits the colonies. Capitalist enterprises come
fort in ever geater l1unbers: partly agricntural and mining enterprises for
cultivating rubber, cofee, tea, for winning oi, tin and other metals, partly
industrial or mixed enterprises to work te tropical raw materials, such as tex
tile or sugar factories. It is mosty European capital, drawing high profits from
ths exploitation. In India, where in such towns as Bombay lived a class of rich
mercants, tese also take part and constitute a frst instance of a modern
Indian bourgeoisie. This Indian industry consists well nigh exclusively of tex
tile factories; ad from all the textile goods consumed in India nearly 60 per
cent is imported from England andJapan, 20 per cent comes from te cottage
industry, and only 20 per cent is provided by Indian factories. Yet to exhibit
and introduce aspects of modern work and life is sufcient inspiration to a
nationalist movement, for throwing of the yoke of the Wester rulers. Its
spokesmen are the intelectuals, especially the younger generation, who are
TE WAR 1 77
acquainted wit Western science, and i n opposition to it study and emphasize
with strong convicton their own national culture. They feel deeply hurt by the
racial haughtness of the whites, who admit them in lower oflices only; they
come forward as the leaders of the oppressed masses, involving them into their
fght for independence. Since the impudent riches of the rulers contrasts so
sharply with the abject misery of the masses, this is not difcult. Though as yet
the fgt can only be peaceful propaganda, passive resistance, and non-co-oper
ation, i.e., te refusal of collaboration with the English goverment, it alarms
public opinion in England, inspiring so much apprehension in the rulers there
that they resort to vague promises of self-government, and at the same time to
sharp persecutions. The movement, of course, is too weak still to throw off the
domination of Western capitalism. With the capitalist factories a class of indus
trial workers is comng into being with extremely low wages and an incredbly
low standad of lving. Strikes occurred against Indian, a well as against
European employers . But compared with the immense population all this is an
insignifcant start, important only as indicaton of future development.
With the present world war colonial exploitation, as well as the problem of
liberation, acquires a new aspect. Against the enormously increasing power of
capitaism a fight for independence in its old meaning has no longer any
chance. On te other hand, it is probable that from now on world capital under
American hegemony will act as a revolutionary agent. By a more rational sys
tem of exploitation of these hundreds of millions of people capital will be able
to increase its profits considerably; by following another way than the previous
primtive impoverishng methods of plunder, by raising labor in the colonies to
a higher level of productivity, by better technics, by improvement of trafc, by
investing more capital, by social regulations and progess in education. All of
this is not possible without according a large amount of independence or at
least self-rule to the colonies.
Self-rule of the colones, of India, and of the Malayan islands, has already
been announced. It means that parliaments i Europe and viceroys sent from
thither can no longer govern them despotically. It does not mean that political
ly the working masses will be their ovn masters, that a free producers they
will dispose of their means of production. Self-rule relates to the upper classes
of these colonies exclusively; not only will they be inserted into the lower ranks
of adminstration, but they will occupy the leading places, assisted of course by
white "advisers" and experts, to ensure that capital interests are served in the
right way. Already from
t
he upper classes of India a rather numerous group of
intellectuals has proceeded, quite capable as ruling offcials to modernie polit
ica and social life.
To characterize moder capitalist production as a system wherein the work
ers by their own free responsibility and will-power are driven to the utmost
exerton, the expression was often used that a free worker is no coolie. The
1 78 WORKERS' COUNCILS
problem of Asia now is t make the coolie a free worker. In China the process
is taking its course; there the workers of olden times possessed a strong indi
vidualism in tropical countries it will be much more difficult to transform the
passive downtrodden masses, kept in deep igorance and superstition by heavy
oppression, into active well-instructed workers capable of handling the modern
productve apparatus and forces. Thus capital is faced with many problems.
Modernization of the government apparatus through self-rule is necessary, but
more is needed: the possibility of social and spiritual organization and progress,
based on political and social rights and liberties, on sound general instruction.
Whether world capital will be able and willing to follow this course cannot be
foreseen. If it does, then the working classes of these countries wil be capable
of independent fighting for teir class interests and for feedom along with the
Western workers.
To all the peoples and tribes living in priitive forms of production in
Aica, in Asia, in Australia, it will, of course, mean all entire change of the
world, when the working class wll have annihilated capitalism. Instead of as
hard exploiting masters and cruel tyrants, the white race will core to them as
friends to help them and to teach them how to take part in the progessing
development of humanity.
4. RUSSIA AND EUROPE
With this war Russia, the Federation of Socialist Soviet Republics, as it calls
itself, has made its entry among the recogized capitalist powers. In the
Wester countries an entire change has taken place in valuation of and attitude
towards Russia and bolshevism. Certainly, the frst fear of a communist revo
lution and the accompanying calumnies had already died away gradually in the
ruling classes . Yet they were not quite at ease about their workers, and since the
talk of the C.P. on world revolution went on, reports of forged atocities and
real cruelties were a motive to exclude Russia from the community of civilized
natons. Until they needed Russia as an ally against Germany; then sentiment
made a turn, though at first only in the kind wish that both dictatorships might
devour one another. Then there they met governing politicians, officials, gen
erals and offcers, factory directors, intellectals, an entre well-dressed, civi
lized, well-to-do class rulig the masses, just as at home. So they were reas
sured. The church only kept aloof, because of the bolshevist anti-religious
propaganda.
The similarity of political forms and methods of government in Russia and
Germany strikes the eye at first sight. In both the same dictatorship of a small
group of leaders, assisted by a powerful well-organized and discplined party,
the same omnipotence of the ruling bureaucracy, the same absence of personal
rights and of free speech, the same levelling of spiritual life into one doctrine,
THE WAR 1 79
upheld by terrorism, the same cruelty towards opposition or even criticism.
The economic basis, however, is different. In Russia it is state capitalism, in
Germany state-directed private capitalism. I Germany there is a numerous
class of owners of the means of production, a bourgeoisie, which, because of
the dificulty of the fight for world power, gave itself a tyrannical dictatorship;
it is augmented by an increasing bureaucracy of oficials. In Russia bureaucra
cy is master of the means of production. The conformity in the necessary forms
of practical rule and administration, domination from above, gave them the
same system of dictatorship.
There is sintilarity also in the character of their propaganda. Both make use
of the ideology of community, because both represent organized against unor
ganized capitalism. As in Russia, the antithesis to old capitalism was expressed
in the catchword of comunism, so i Germany by socialism. Tese are the
names under which, in extensive propaganda, the fight for their own power
against the old capitalist powers is urged upon the masses as a fight against cap
italism. Thus they present themselves as more than a mere nationalism, they
proclaim new world principles, fit for all countries, to be realized by world-rev
olution ad world war against the exponents of the old order, Engish and
American capitalism. So they fmd adherents to their cause, followers of their
paty, within the country of their opponents, ready to undermine from within
their power of resistance.
As similar hostile rivals they find a basis for their opposition i their origin
and the consequent traditions. National socialism came to power as an agent of
big capitalism, wiping out the old labor movement, in conscious sharp antago
nism to the "Marxian" trends of social-democracy and communism. In their
own country only it could proclaim itself a party of the workers and impose by
terror-propaganda this trickery upon uncritical adherents. The Russian ideolo
gy proceeded directly from a revolution made by the workers under the com
munist banner, and appealed to Marxian doctrines that had been adapted to its
cause; but in foreign countries only could it find belief that indeed it repre
sented dictatorship of the workers. Here it could impose upon young people
desirous to fight capitalism and exploitation, whereas national-socialism was
considered everywhere as a genuine enemy of the workers, and found sympa
thy only among the upper and lower part of the bourgeoisie.
Te foreih'l policy of the Russian revolution was a logical consequence of
its basic ideas. Though a socialist community has no wishes but to live in peace
besides other peoples, it is in danger of being attacked by capitalist states.
Hence, it must prepare for war. Moreover, world revolution, annihilation of
capitalism all over the world remains the supreme aim; only in this way, by lib
erating the workers elsewhere, the socalist state can secure its own freedom. So
the socialist state arms and prepares for war, not only for defense, but also for
attack. And with surrise naive idealists perceive tat what seemed a haven of
180 WORKERS' COUNCILS
peace reveals itself a power for war. Ad the ask whether indeed compulsion
by the sword c bring freedom to others.
The contadiction is easily explained. What is named state-socialism dis
closes itself as state-capitalism, the rule of a new exploiting class, bureaucracy,
master of the production apparatus, as in other countries the bourgeoisie. It,
too, lives on surplus value. The larger its realm, its power, the larger its share,
its wealth. Thus, for this bureaucracy war assumes the same signifcance as for
the bourgeoisie. It takes part i the world contest of powers, on the same foot
ing as other States, but with the pretension to be the world-champion of the
working cass. And though in view of the allied goveruments it cannot make
too much show of it, and temporarily even silences the Comntern, yet it knows
that in all foreign countries eOnlUnist parties are working on its behalf. Thus
the role of Russia in and after the war begins to depict itself. Behind the old
now deceitfl aims of extending the realm of communism stands the reality of
extending the own international power. If the German bourgeoisie ties to steer
its course in the track of Englad and America, the working class, prevented
during long years fom fmding its own new way, may produce communist par
ties as agents of Russian hegemony over the Mid-European regions.
This policy and position among the other capitalist powers has its basis in
a inner change of policy in Russia itself. State capitalism has consolidated its
power in and through the war, the completion of the preceding development.
Since the revolution tere was a continual strggle between the socially impor
tant groups. First, State bureaucracy, with the Communist Party as its organ,
being master of the industial production, in a hard fight subdued the peasants
in its campaig of founding the kolchoses. Besides them, however, stood the
army officers and the numerous technical experts and oficials in the factories,
commonly called the engineers. They had an important function as technical
leaders of the production, they had their own union, and were mostly non
party men. The well-known trials of engineers on forged charges of sabotage
were an episode in the silent struggle; they were condemned not because they
had committed the imputed crimes, but for intiidation and to forestall any
attempt at independent political action. In te sale way in the trial of General
Tukhaehevsky and other officers all elements from whom independent action
was feared, were shot and replaced by others. Thus the politcal bureaucracy
remained master, but it had to regard the other groups.
The war made a unifcation of all these forces necessary, and at the same
time possible, on the basis of a strong nationalism aspiring to expansion. In the
preceding years some so-called reforms had been proclaimed, though by the
absence of free speech and free press they had nO meaning for the working
masses; tey now could afford an opportnity for non-paty men to take part
in the governing apparatus. Party rule and Comintern was pushed ito the
background. Now under a frmly consolidated ruling class the masses, as in
THE WAR ] 8 1
ever capitalist state, could be led to te front in well-disciplined gigantc
armies.
At te same time the war has brought about an increase of the spiritual
influence of bolshevism in Western Europe. Not among the bourgeoisie; now
that organized big capitalism is becoming master of the world it has not the
least inclination to make way for state capitalism. Not very much among the
workers; in the beginning the recognition perforce of the communist partes by
the governments may increase its credit among workers dominated by nation
alism; but its support of government policy, however masked by a seeming of
wild opposition talk, will soon discredit it among the fghting masses of the
working class. Among the Western intellectuals, however, Russian bolshevism
attracts ever more attention.
Under the rule of big capitalism it is the class of intellectuals that has the
technical lead of production, and the spiritual lead of society in its hands. Now
it begins to ask-in so far as it is not entirely occupied by its narrow personal
job-why shareholders and stock jobbers should have the upper command over
production. It feels itself called upon to lead social production as an organized
process, to throw off the dominance of a parasitical bourgeoisie and to rule
society. It is divided, however, in a series of higher and lower raks , arranged
after usefulness or what else; they form a ladder on which, in mutual rivalry,
one may ascend by ambition, capacties, favor or cunnng. The lower and badly
paid ranks among them may join the fight of the working class against capital.
Its higher and leadig elements, of course, are hostile to any idea of mastery by
te workers over the process of producton. Their prominent thinkers ad
learned scholars, often refned or ingenious spirits , strongly feel their superior
ity threatened by the phantom of a general "levelling." The intellectual class
feels quite well that its ideal of socia order cannot exist without a stong power
apparatus, to keep down private capital, but chiefy to keep down the working
masses. What they want is a moderate dictatorship, strong enough to resist
attempts to revolution, civilized enough to dominate the masses spiritually and ..
to assure a rational liberty of speech and opinion to the civilized; anyhow, with
out the rough violence that made national socialism the object of hatred all over
Europe. A free road to te talented, and society led by the intellectual elite,
such is the social ideal rising in this class.
This they see realized to a fair extent, though mxed up with barbarous
remnants, in the Russian system. And the Russians have exerted themselves to
promote such ideas. Soon after the revolution already scientifc congresses were
organized where the assembled scholars from all countries were regally enter
tained-though there was dearth in the land-and got the most favorable impres
sion of the young enthusiasm and the fresh energy bestowed by the
new-shaped society upon science and technics. Of the Solovki camps, where
the deported peasants and workers are ill-treated tll they perish, of course,
1 82 WORKERS' COUNCILS
nothing was shown to them, nor did they know of the deadly hard labor of mil
lions of victims in the icy wilds of Siberia; probably not even the ordinay
"black workers" uithe factories did they meet with. Such inspiring experiences
could not but strongly impress the younger Western intellectuals ; what trickled
through about atrocities was easily efaced by the splendor of increasing pro
duction fgures in the world-wide propaganda of the C.P. And now the military
successes of te Russian armies enhance the image of Russia as a vigorous civ
ilized modern State.
So we may surmise something about the future of Russia and Bolshevism
in Europe. In its antagonism to the Western powers of private capitalism,
England ad America, its ideology may serve as a valuable weapon to under
mine the solid power of their bourgeoisie, by rousing, in case of need, working
class oppositon against her. As a recognized respectable party the C.P. will try
to win posts of influence in politics, either in compettion or in collaboration
with social democracy; by a seeming show of sparkling opposition talk it sees
to gather the workers in its fold, to deter them from taking teir own road to
feedom. it does already now, it will try, by a quasi-scientific propaganda
aong intellectuals, to win them over to some bolshevist kind of dictatorial
government, and adorn may be, with the mark world-revolution.
More direct and important will be the Russian influence upon Central
Europe. In dle wake of the anniilation of military power comes economic slav
ery. To impose as much as possible of the burdens on the defeated foe, throug
the necessity of restoration and compensation of the iII easurable wanton
destruction and pillages by the German armies, not only all property, so far as
it is left, will be seized, but aso all the peoples in so far as they are left, wil be
haressed under the yoke of hard labor. The victors probably will not, as after
the first world war, leave to the Germa bourgeoisie the possession of the pro
duction apparatus and the rule of te country.
Before, then, an effective fight for their cause will be possible to the Central
European workers, a deep change in their thinking and willing must take place.
They are faced not only by the formidable physical power of victorious world
capitalism, but they will also encounter extreme difficult in resistng the spir
itual forces of Bolshevism on dle one side, nationalism on the oter side, to fnd
the way clear to thei class task. In this fight they must involve the Russian
workers. Russian State capitalism, as well, has been exhausted and ravaged by
the wa; to restore itself it will have to lay a harder pressure upon the workers.
So the Russian workers will be compelled to take up te fght for freedom, for
liberation out of slavery, as a new great task, the same as the workers al over
the world.
THE WAR 1 83
5. IN THE AYSS
The second world wa has throw society into a abyss deeper than any
former catastrophe. In te frst world war the contending capitalisms stood
aganst one another as Powers of old form, waging war in old forms, only on
a larger scale and with improved technics. Now the war has reversed te inner
stluctures of the States, and new political structures have arisen; now the war
is a "total war," into which all forces of society are linked up as its subordinate
means.
I and through this war society is thrown back to a lower level of civiliza
tion. That is not so much because of the immense sacrifces of life and blood.
During the entire period of civilization-i. e. , the period of written history and
of the division of society into exploiting and exploited classes , between the
primitive tribal life and the future world unity of mankind-war was the form
of the struggle for existence. So it is quite natural tat the last world fights,
before the fal consolidation drawing along all people, should embrace greater
names and be more bloody m any former war.
What makes this retrogressive is frst the regress from military and juridi
cal norms that in the 19
t
century gave a certain appearance of humanity to
warfare. rlne enemies were nominally considered as equal humans and sol
diers, political rights of vanquished or occupied countries were recognzed,
national sentiments respected; civilians usually stood outside the fghting. In
international treaties on "the laws of war" these priciples were endorsed, and
however often violated, they stood out as iternational law, that could be
appeaed to against the arbitrarness of a victor. Total war tramples OIl all these
scraps of paper. Not only are all supplies seized and all industry is put into the
service of the conqueror, not only are prisoners of war set to work for the
enemy, but on an ever larger scale all people from occpied regions are forcibly,
in a real slave hunting, dragged off to work in the German war industry. So, by
producing arms for te foe, they are constrained to aid him against their own
nation; at the same time relieving the enemy's workers for service at the front.
Now that war is a matter of industrial production, slave labor becomes one of
the foundations of warfare.
It is natural tat i the occupied counties-half of Europe-resistance
sprang up, and it is natural tat it was suppressed severely, even when it con
sisted only in tentative frst traces. It is not natural, however, that in the repres
sion such a height of cruelt was reached, a frst applied in the roug mis
handling and extermination of the Jewish citizens and then extended to al
national opposition. Te Germn soldier, himself an unwilling slave of the dic
tatorial apparatus, develops into a master and instrument of oppression. A a
flthy contamination the habits of violence and outrage spread over the cont
nent, wakening an immense hatred against te German occupants.
184 WORKERS' COUNCILS
In former wars occupation of a foreign country was considered a temporary
situation, and international law expressed it in this way, that the occupant was
not allowed to change anything in the fundamental law of the country, and
only took the administration in its hands insofar as war conditions necessitat
ed it. Now, however, Germany interfered everywhere in the existing institu
tions, trying to impose te national-socialist principles, pretending it was the
beginning of a new era for the entire Europe in which all the other countries
as allies, i. e. , vassals, had to follow Gennany. Underlings it found in the small
number of foreig adherents to its creed, and the larger number who saw their
chance now; they were made rulers over their compatriots and exhibited the
same spirit of wanton violence. The same spiritual tyanny as in Germany itself
is imposed; and especally in the ,steru countries, with their large civil liber
ties, this arouses an increasing embitterment, that found expression in under
ground literature. Neither the silly fction of the unity of the Teutonic race nor
the argument of the united continent of Europe made any impression.
The fall into barbarity is due, firstly, to the destructive power of modern
war machinery. More than in any previous time al industrial and productive
power of society, all ingenuity and devotion of men is put into the service of
the war. Gennany, as the aggressive party, set the example; it perfected the air
weapon into bombers that destoyed, with factories of war supplies, the sur
rounding city quarters. It did not foresee at the time that the steel production
of America many times surpassed that of Germany, so that the system of
destruction, once that America would have transformed its industrial into mil
itary power, would fall back with multiple vehemence upon Germay itself. In
the first world war muc laenting was heard about Ypres beig destroyed and
some French cathedrals damaged; now, first in England and France, and then
on a larger scale in Germany, towns and factory quarters, grand monuments of
architecture, remnants of irretrievable mediaeval beauty, went to rack and ruin.
Week after week the wireless boasted of how many thousands of tons of explo
sives were thrown upon German towns. As an instrument of terror to bring the
Geran population upon its knees, or to rouse the desire for peace into resist
ance to the leaders, these bombardments were a failure. On the contrary,
through the exasperation over te wanton destruction and killings a disheat
ened population was bound the firmer to its rulers. They rather gave the
impression as i the Allied rulers, sure about their industrial and military supe
riority, wished to prevent a revolution of the Gerlan people against the nation
al-socialist rulers which would have led to milder peace conditions, preferring
to beat down German attempts at world power once and for all by a downright
military victor.
Besides the material, the spiritual devastation peretrated among mankind
represents no smaller fall into babarity. The levelling of all spiritual lie, of
speech and writing to one prescribed creed, and the forcible suppression of any
THE WAR 185
different opinion has grown in and through the war into a complete organiza
tion of falsehood and cruelty.
Censoring of the press had already proved necessary in former wars to pre
vent sensational news harmfl to the warfare of the country. In later times,
when the entire bourgeoisie felt keenly nationalist and closely bound to the
government, the papers felt it their duty to collaborate with the military author
ities in upholding morale by optimistc statements, in criticizing and abusing
the enemy, and in influencing the neutral press. But censorship became more
needed than before to suppress resistace on the part of the workers) now that
the war brought a heavier pressure of long hours and of shortness of provi
sions. 'en propaganda is needed, artificially to rouse in the people enthusi
asm for war, counter propaganda reveang te capitalist background of the war
cannot be tolerated. So we see in the first world war the press tured into an
organ of the army staff, with the special task to uphold the submssiveness of
the masses, as well as the fghting spirit.
In the present war ths may still represent the state of things on the Allied
side; but on the other side it is far surpassed by the adaptation to war condi
tions of te already existing department of propaganda, with its staf of artists,
authors and intellectuals. Now its system of diecting opinion, raised to the
utmost perfection and extended over Europe, reveals its full eficiency. By stat
ing its own case as the case of highest rigt, truth and morals, by reating every
action of the foe as an act of weakness, or of baseness , or of embarrassment, an
atosphere of faith and victory is created. It proved itself capable of transfg
uring the most obvious defeat into a brilliant success, and to represent the
beginning of collapse as the daWlling of fmal victory, and thus to inspire stub
born fighting and to postpone the fnal collapse. Not that people accept it m as
truth; they are suspicious of anything they hear; but they see the resolution in
the leaders and feel powerless through lack of organization.
Thus the German masses are the victims of a system gowing more violent
and more mendacious as ruin approaches. So the destruction of the power of
German capitalism will be accompanied by the ainlless destruction and new
slaver of the German people, not by its rise to a new fght for a new world of
real freedom.
As a destructive catastrophe, the reign of national-socialism passed over
Germany and the surrounding countries . A torrent of organized cruelty and
organized falsehood has flooded Europe. A a poisonous taint they have infect
ed mind, will and character of the peoples. They are the mark of new dictato
rial capitalism, and their will long be felt. They ac not a chance degen
eration; they are due to special causes chaacteristic of the present times.
'oever recogises as their deepest cause the will of big capital to keep and to
extend its domination oer mankind, knows that they will not disappear with
the end of the war. Natonalism excited to red heat everywhere, imputing all
186 WORKERS' COUNCILS
this to te bad racial character of the thereby rousing stronger national
hatred, will always be a fertile soil for new volence, material ad spirituaL
The fall into barbarity is not a biological atavism to which mankind might
be subjected at any time. The mechanism of how it came to work lies open to
the view. The reign of falsehood does not mean that what is sad and written
is all lies. By emphasising part of the trut and omitting other parts the total
can turn into untruth. Often it is combined wit the conviction of its truth on
the part of the speaker. Doubtless , it holds for everybody that what he says is
never the objective, material, all-sided tuth, but always sujective truth, a col
ored personal, one-sided image of reality. Where al these subjective, personal,
hence icomplete, partial truths compete, control and criticise one another, ad
where most people thereby are compelled to self-criticism, there arises out of
tem a more general aspect which we accept as the nearest approach to objec
tive tut. If, however, this control is taen away and criticism is made impos
sible, whlst only one special opinion is put forward, the possibility of objective
truth entirely vanishes. The reign of falsehood fnds its essential basic in the
suppression of free speech.
Cruelty in action often is accompanied by ardent devotion to new princi
ples, that is, irritated by its failure to make progress rapidly enough. In normal
society there is no other way than patient propaganda and the thorough
self-education in working out arguments. If, however, dictatorship gives to the
few power over the many, then, excited by the fear of losing ths power, it tries
to obtain its aims through increasing violence. The reig of cruelty finds its
essential basis in te dictatorial power of a minority. If we wish that in the com
ing times, in the fight of classes and peoples, the downfall into barbarity be pre
vented, these are the things we must oppose with all energy; dictatoria power
of a small group or party, and suppression or limitation of fee speech.
The storm now sweeping over the earth has raised new problems and new
solutions . Besides the spiritual devastation it brought spiritual renovation, new
ideas in economc and social organization, most conspicuous among them ideas
on new forms of suppression, dominance and exploitation. These lessons will
not be lost to world capital; its fight will be more tenaeious, its rule stronger by
using these new methods. On the other side in the workers a stronger con
sciousness will dawn of how completely their liberation is bound up wit the
opposite factors. Now they feel in the body how much the reign of orgazed
falsehood hampers them in gaining the simplest inkling of the knowledge they
need, how much the reign of organized terror makes their organization impos
sible. Stronger than ever before the wil and the strength will aise in them to
keep open dle gates to knowledge by fighting for freedom of speech against any
attempt to restrict it; to keep open the gate to class organization by refsing ad
repelling any attempt at forcible suppression, in whatever guise of proletarian
interest it may present it'elf.
THE WAR 187
In this second world war the workers' movement has fallen much deeper
than in the first. In the first world war its weakness , so sharply in contrast with
former pride and boasting, manifested itself in that it was dragged along, that
deliberately, by its own will, it followed the bourgeoisie and tured into under
lings of ntionalism. This character persisted in the next quarter of a century,
with its idle talk and party intrigue, though galant fghting in strikes occurred.
m the present war the working class had no will of its own any more to decide
on what to do; it was already incorporated into the entirety of the nation. As
they are shufied to and fro over factories and shops, uniformed ad drilled,
commanded to the fronts, mxed up with the other classes, al essence of the
former working class has disappeared. The workers have lost their cass; they
do not exst as a class any more; class-consciousness has been washed away in
the wholesale submission of all classes under the ideology of big capitaL Their
special class-vocabulary: socialism, community has been adopted by capital for
its dissimilar concepts.
This holds good especially for Cental Europe, where in former times the
workers' movement looked more powerfl than aywhere else. In the Wester
countries there remains a suffcient amount of class feeling soon to find them
back on the road to fight in the transformation of war industry to peace indus
try. Encumbered, however, with the heavy load of old forms and traditions,
leading to battle in the old forms, it will have some difficulty to fnd its way to
the new forms of fght. Stil, the practical needs of the struggle for existence ad
working conditions will, more or less gradually, compel it to put up and clari
fy the new aims of conquering the mastery over production. Where, however,
dictatorship has reigned and has been destroyed by foreign military power,
there under new conditions of oppression and exploitation, a new working
class must first take its rise. Tere a new generation will grow up, for whom
the old names and catchwords have no meaning any longer. Certainly, it will
be dificult under foreign domnation to keep te class feeling free and pure
fom nationalism. But wit the collapse of so many old conditions and tradi
tions, the mind will be more open to direct influence of the new realities. Every
doctrine, every device and catchword will be taken, not at its face value, but at
its real content.
More powerfl than before, capitalism wtower afer the war. But stronger
also the fight of the working masses, sooner or later, will arise over against it.
It is inevitable that in this fight the workers will aim at mastery over the shops,
master over production, dominance over society, over labor, over their own
life. Te idea of self-rule through workers' councils will take hold of thei
minds, the practice of self-rule and workers' councils will determine their
actions. So fom the abyss of weakness they will rise to a new unfolding of
power. Thus a new world will be built up. A new era is comig after the war,
not of tranquility and peace, but of constructive class fght.
V The Peace
1. TOWARDS NEW WAR
Hardly had Berlin fallen, hardly had the German power been annihilated,
when in the American press wel nigh unanimously a new war cry arose, pro
claiming Russia the new enemy. With all the armies still in the field, a panic of
new war spread over the exhausted tormented word. The new weapon, the
atomic bomb, that had turned into dust two big industrial towns and killed at
one stroke a hundred thousand people, struck terror into the hearts of civilised
mankind and made the Americans reaize their own insecurity. "There is no
secret, and there is no defense," was the verdict of the atomic physicists who
had constructed the bomb; in a couple of years every government can have
them made, and they c be carried across the oceans or easily smuggled into
America. An intensive campaign in te "Security Council of te United
Nations" for eliminating the threat was started. America proposed to establish
an international, supernationa board or authority, sole master of dangerous
material all over the world, qualifed to inspect manufacture in every county.
The Russian Government refused to admit such a committee with such powers
into its territory and demanded that frst America should destroy all its atomic
bombs and give up its supremacy.
Why could not the Russian Government agree to an international control?
Russian scientists, speaking for their rlers, said that Russia, the only country
free from capitalism, must keep strictly to its sovereignty, cannot take part in a
capitalist world unity, cannot suffer its socialism to be corrupted by capital
ist-minded inspecting authorities. One would say that to open up their happier
and progressive way of life to the view of the rest of the world should only
propagate their economic system. So the Russian rulers' true reason for shun
ning a close contact of their subjects with the peoples of freer private capitalism
must be that there is, besides war secrets, too much to conceaL During and
afer the war so many more detais have come to light about conditions in
Russia: the general low standard of living of te masses, the wide divergence
between low wages of the workers and high salaries of the political and tech
nical leaders, the concentration camps, where ten or more millions of people
189
1 90 WORKERS' COUNCILS
are starved and worked to death under the most horrible working conditions.
The existence of this immense army of slave-laborers testifies that besides the
much praised highly technical sector of Russian economy there is a large sec
tor consistig of unskilled forced labor of the lowest level of productivity. It
means a state of economic backwardness, not suspected before beneath the glo
rifying figures of five-year plans and staekhanovism, an inner weakness
beneath the apparent progress. Whereas organization and sklful planing,
according to either admiring or hostile socialist opinion in the Western world
should imply a higher form of production system, the effect seems to be fus
trated to a hig degree by te secret polce, essential instrument of dicttorshp,
that ever endangers the security and state of life of any member of the techni
cal and bureaucratic oficiadom.
Russia and America are not only rivals in tat they both are in need of the
oil abundace in the Ncar East. Moreover, Russia U to fear the power of
America. The yearly production of steel in 1945 America was 80 millions
of tons, for Russia (after the fourth five-year plan) 24 millions ; for coa these
fgures are 575 and 250 millions of tons. T his shows the relative industrial
strengt, that cannot be compensated by Russia having 1 70 milions against
America 130 millions of people. Ad now Aerica transformed its industrial
power into military and political power. This political power finds its ideologi
cal expression in the call for world-unity. "One world or none" was the panic
cry of the atomic scientists when aghast they saw the consequences of their
work; if this terrible new power is not fettered through internationa unity, it
will destoy mankind itself. But it stands to reason that in any world organiza
tion of "united nations" the most powerful will dominate the others. The
Russian rulers fully realize that to consent to the establishment of a superpow
er with large competencies means subjection under the most powerful of the
associates, under American capitalism. T hey refuse.
So bot prepare for war. Is it inevitable? Al we can see and consider is what
deep-seated forces lie at the root of this threat. It is to America in the first place
that we have to tur. Here private capitalism is in full development, here social
ism is insignificant, practically absent in politcs, here planned economy and
State directon of production was only a short-lived war necessity, soon
replaced by free enterprise. 1 the conditions and phenomena of former free
capitalism in Europe, especially in England and Germany, repeat themselves
here, now on a far bigger scale. I 1923 already American production exceed
ed that of total Europe; at the beginning of the war, notwithstandig nine mi
lions of unemployed, it produced more than in any former year. T hen during
te war the production increased enormously, as well on account of the greater
number of workers as of a rapid rise in technical productivity; so that, despite
te tremendous production of war materials, it was not necessary to impose
strict limitations on the people's consumption, as was the case in Europea
THE PEACE 1 91
counties. Wa i s always a golden time for capitalist profit, because the State,
as buyer, pays willingly the highest prices. In America it was a gold rush as
never before; war profts were not in terms of millions, but of billions dol
lars. And the end of the war that devastted the producton apparatus of
Europe, sees America wit a production apparatus more than fifty per cent
larger thn at its beginning, with an industrial production twice as large as that
of the rest of the capitalist world. For this increased capacty of output a mar
ket must be found. This is the problem facing American capitalism.
An inner market might easily be found by gving a larger share to the work
ing class, thus increasing their buying capacity. But this course, a cutting of
profits, capitalism cannot take. It is convinced that te workers, if they can pro
vide a fourth-hand car ad a refrigerator, are well off and have nothing to
desire. The essence of capita is to make proft.
So foreign markets have to be found. First there is devastated Europe. Its
production apparatus has to be restored by American exports made possible
through big loans. Part of it is already American property, and for what nomi
nally remains European property heavy interest will have to be paid to
American finance. European economy stads under direct control of American
supervision agents who will see to it that te loans are spent in such a way that
Europe cannot develop into a serious competitor. Europe American capital
finds a working class with much lower standard of life than that of thc
American workers, hence promising bigger profits than at home. But this is
only possible if frst of all its labor power is restored by sending as relief gifts
of food, cothes, fuel, to the hungry impoverished peoples. It is investment at
long, promising profits only in the long run. Moreover, it is here confronted
with Russia trying to extend its exploitation system over Central and Western
Europe.
Then there is China, the most promising market for Aerican products.
But here American capitalism has done its very best to spoil its own chances.
In the civil war it supported te capitalist government against the red peasant
armies, with the sole result that the American offcers and agents turned away
with disgust from the incapable rapacious Kuomintang rulers; that the peasant
armies could neither be defeated nor win entire power, so that the permanent
civl war brought chaos and prevented recovery. The natural sympaty of
American capitaist rulers towads exploiting classes in other parts of the world,
ad its equally class-bor hostiity against popula movements, makes them
blind to the fact that only out of the latter the basis for strong economic devel
opment may arise. Thus an entire reversal of polcy would be necessary. The
fact that the cmmunist aries are backed by Russia intensifes American
antagonism towards the Chinese people's masses, thus preventing China from
becoming a market for American export.
1 92 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Then there is Russia, the U. S. S. R. , in extension ad population a continent
in itself, after the U. S.A., the second realm of the world in industrial develop
ment under one State government, with imense sources of the most valuable
raw materials, the second gold producer of the world, abounding in fertile land,
with a rapidly increasing population estimated withi twenty years to reach up
to 250 millions. It is closed to foreign commerce; an iron wall isolates it from
any foreign infuence. American capitalism, so much u need of markets for its
outouring mass of products can it sufer such a wall to exist without trying to
break it open? It waged a war for "liberty"; liberty means free commerce and
intercourse all over the world. It is not to be expectcd from the mightiest capi
talist class tat it should tolerate excusion from a thrd part of the industrially
developed world.
Moreover, Amerca capitalists are condent that agaist the impact of even
peaceful commerce Russian economy will not be able to hold out, but will grad
ually give way to private ownership. So, apparently, think the Russian rulers ;
refuse to expose their skilfully constructed higher organization of planned
economy to the corrupting infuences of private capitalism.
Thus the conditions for a deep-seated confict are given. By its very nature
American private capitalism is, fundamentally, the aggressor; Russia state-cap
itaism has to defend its position. Of course, defense often has to consist in
attacking; in any war preparation each party imputes aggression to the other.
So Russia tries to establish a protecting finge beyond its borders and tries to
extend its domination over Europe. Moreover, in all capitalist countries it has
an orgaization of devoted adherents and agents, allured by the revolutionary
traditions of 1 917, convinced tat organized state-directed economy means
socalism, frm in te expectation of an approaching economic crisis tat will
upset the system of private capitalism.
Among economists, too, there is a widespread opinon that world
industry, that especially American idustry, is to face a heavy crsis. Its pro-
ductive capacity, its output of products is so large that there is no market it.
So, afer te first peace boom supplying the defciencies of the war years, there
will come a heavy slump, with large unemployment and all its consequences.
Strictly speaking, it is a continuation of the 1930-33 slump, after whic no real
recovery until 1 940 took place. Then the war provided an enormous market
for a rapidly expanding production, a market never choked because all prod
ucts were rapidly destroyed. Now that the war is over the capitalist class again
faces the pitifl situation that the world cannot absorb its products. Is it to be
wondered at that once more its thoughts turn to those golden yeas of high
profts when death and destruction of uncounted human lives brought in such
a rich harvest? And that even great parts of the workers, narrow capitalist
minded as tey are, think of tat time only a years of high wages and exciting
adventure?
THE PEACE 1 93
War a a market can be partly substituted by war preparation as a maket.
Armaments already occupy a notable part of the productive force of Society.
For the budget year 1946-47 America's military budget amounted to 12 bil
lions of dollars. Compared with an estimated total yearly nationa product of
180 billions it may not look impressive; but compared with an American peace
time export of seven bilions it gans in importance. The bulk of production is
always destned for home consumption of food, clothes, tools, machnery, etc.;
the fringe of export and extension is the active force that stimulates the entire
ty of production, increasing the need for productive apparatus and labor hands,
who, i their turn, need commodities; under capitalism each extra demand
from outside tends to directly and still more indirectly at a much
enhanced rate, the extent of producton. The continued demand for war mate
rials to be destroyed and to be replaced continually because in a few years tey
are superseded by new inventions, may act as a force postponing the impend
ing industrial crisis.
It is highly questionable, however, whether such a rate of war preparedness
can last indefinitely. Though theoretically it seems possible that two lots of
slave-drivers, practising different methods, but not so very different i deepest
chaacter, when viewing the risks, may prefer to come to ters with one anoth
er, it does as yet not look probable. The American capitalist knowing that
at the other side of te iron curtain war preparatons go on in the same fever
ish tempo, trustig that at the moment America is the strongest in wa technics,
driven by the desire to have the entre world open to international trade, believ
ing in America's mission to make the world into one unity, might in view of the
allurements of war well be expected to overcome its fear of its big cities
turned into dust by atom bombs. And then hell again breaks loose over
mankind.
Is war inevitable? Is not war an anachronism? Why should man, able to
discover atomic processes, not be able to establish world, peace? Those who
pose this question do not know what capitalism means. Can there be world
peace when in Russia millions of slaves are worked to death in eoncentration
camps, and the entire population lacks freedom? Can there be world peace
when i America the kngs of capital keep the entire socety in subjection and
exploitaton without beig faced by any trace of a fight for social freedom?
Were capitalist and capitalist exploitation domnate world peace must
remain a pious wish.
When we say that, hence, war is inseparable from capitalism, that war can
only disappear with capitalism itself, this does not mean that wa against war
is of no use ad that we have to wait till capitalsm has been destroyed. It
mean that the fight against war is inseparable from fight against capitalism.
War against war can be effective only as part of the workers' class war against
capitalism.
194 WORKERS' COUNCILS
If te queston is raised whether it is possible to forestall a threatening war,
it is pre-supposed that there is a confict between government, invested with
power and authority on war and peace, and the masses of the population, espe
cially the working class. Their voting power is without effect since it works
only on election day; parliaments and Congresses are part of the ruling Power.
So the question comes down to this: Have the workers, and in a wider sense
the people's masses, at the moment of danger the possihility, by other than par
liamentary means, to enforce their peace"will upon the war-preparing rulers?
They have. such a will actally lives within them, if they arc prepared to
stand wth resolute conviction for their aim. Their form of fght then consists
in direct mass-actions.
A government, a ruling class cannot go into war with the people unwilling
and resisting. Therefore a moral and intelectual preparation is no less neces
sary than a technical and organizational preparation. Systematic war propa
ganda in the press, in broadcasting, in movies, must waken a bellicose spirit
and suppress the instinctve but unorganized spirit of resistance. Hence it is cer
| that a decided conscious refusal on the part of the people's masses, demon
strated in outspoken widely heard protest, can have a determining infuence
upon te governmental policy. Such a protest may appear frst in mass meet
ings voting sharp resolutons. More efficient will be the protest if the masses go
into the streets demonstrating; against their ten and hundred thousands all riot
acts and court injunctions are meaningless. And when these are not sufficient,
or are suppressed by military violence, the workers and employees in trafic
and industry can ste. Such a strike is not for wages, but to save society fom
utter destruction.
Government and the ruling class will try to break the resistance with all
means of moral and physical suppression. So it will be a hard fight, demanding
sacrifices, steadfastness and endurance. The psychological basis for such fght
is not at once present in full vigour; it needs time to develop, and does so only
under heavy spiritual strain. Since the middle classes always tend to vacillate
between opposite moods, capitaist greed expressing itself in nationalist aggres
siveness, and fear for destruction, from the stubhorn resistance cannot be
expected. The fight, therefore, takes the character of a class fght, with mass
strikes as its most powerful weapon.
In the 19t
h
centry the idea of a unversal stke at the outbreak of war, as
well as that of a general refsal to take up arms, was propagated, especially by
the anarchists; it was meant as a direct impediment to mobilization and wa
fare. But the power of the working class was far too small at the time. In the
frst decade of the 20t
h
century, when an imperialist war became ever more
threatening, the question of how to prevent it became urgent aong European
socialists. In te German socialist party there were discussions about mass
strikes, and the idea gained ground whether mass actions could be used against
THE PEACE 1 95
war. But the party-and union-leaders opposed a such actions because they
feared tat in that case Goverment would suppress and annihilate their labo
riously built-up organizations. They wished to restrict the workers' movement
to parliamentary and trade union action. I 1 912, when again war loomed
near, an international peace congress was held at Basle. Under solemn bib-bam
of the bells the delegates entered the cathedral, to listen to fne speeches from
the most prominent leaders on the international unity and brotherhood of the
workers. Part of the delegates wished to discuss ways ad means how to
oppose war; they inteded to propose resolutions calling up the workers of all
countries for discussion and mass action. But the presidium s aid no; no dis
cussion was allowed. Whereas now the splendid demonstration of unity and
peace-will, it said, would impress and warn the war-mongers, the discussions
exposing our dissensions about the ways of action would encourage the mili
tarists. Of course, it was just the reverse. The capitalist rulers were not deceived
by this show; they at once sensed the inner weakness and fear; now they kew
they could go on and that the socialist parties would not seriously oppose the
war. So the disaster took its inevitable course. When in 1 914, during the last
days of July, working masses demonstrated in the streets of Berlin they felt
uneasy, because the sodalist party failed to give energetical directions; their
calls were drowned in the louder national anthems of the bourgeois yout. The
war s tarted unhampered, with the working class organizations tied frmly to its
chariot.
BasIc had been a sybol, a test, a crossroad. The decision taken there
determined al frther events, te four years of murder over Europe, the catas
trophe of all moral and spiritual progress, and then beyond, Hitlerism and the
second world war. Could it have been otherwise? The Basle result was not
chance, but a consequence of the actual inner state of the workers' movement:
the supremacy of leaders, the docility of the masses. Socia developments
depend on the deeper general power relatons of the classes. But just as in geog
raphy small structure details of watersheds determine whether the water flows
to one or to another ocean, so small hardly noticed differences in relative
strength at definite moments may have decisive effects on the course of events.
If the opposition in the socialist parties had been stronger, more self-confdent;
if at the time in the workers the spirit of independent action had been stronger;
u, hence, the BasIc congess had been compelled to discussion and thus had
brought more cleaess, when the war, surely, would not have been prevented.
But from the onset it would have been crossed by class fights, by interal strife
withn each country breaking up national unity, exalting the workers' spirits.
Then the history of the later years, the state of socialsm, the relations of the
classes, the conditons of society would have been different.
Now again society at large, and the workig class especially, stands before
the same question: ca the war be prevented? Of course, there ae differences;
196 WORKERS' COUNCILS
thn the bourgeoisie was mostly unaware of tlle danger, whereas now it is itself
full of apprehension; then the working class was well organized in a socalist
party proclaiming itself hostile to imperialist policy, and the deadly foe of all
capitalism, whereas present day America shows nothing of the sort. It is not
cetain whether this is only weakness . The Russian workers are entirely pow
erless; they lack the liberties which the American workers enjoy and may use
in their fght: feedom of speech, of press, of discussion, of organization, of
action. So, in any case, it is up to the American workng class to decide whether
as obedient instruments they will help to make their capitalist masters all-pow
erful masters of the world, or whether, by making war against war, they wl
enter for the frst time into the war against capitalism, for their own freedom.
2. TOVARDS NEVSLAVERY
The second world war has devastated Europe. I Germay nearly all towns
have been trned into ruins and rubbish by American bombers, where 60 mil
lion people, starving and naked, have to live as savages in their holes. In
France, Italy, Holland, Poland, lngland, large parts have been devastated in
te same way. More vital still tha this visible lack of housing is the destruc
tion of the production apparatus. Under the industrial system of capitalism the
production apparatus, the factories, machines, traffic are the backbone, the
basis of life. Under primitive, pre-capitalist conditions of simple agriculture the
soil secures life. Under capitalism-in-ruins agriculture, retrograde as it is, can
not provide sufcient food for the industrial millions, and ruined industry can
not provide tools and fertilizers to restore agriculture. So Europe, after the war,
as frst and mai task, faces the problem of recovery.
Recovery, reconstruction, was the watchword proclaimed and heard every
where. It meant more than simply reconstruction of the production apparats,
the construction of new machies, ships, trucks and factories. It meant recon
struction of the production system, of the system of social relations between
capital and labor, the reconstruction of capitalism. Whereas during te wa
ideas arose and were heard of a new world to come after the war, a better world
of harmony, social justice and progress, even of socialism, now it was made
clear that, practically, capitalism and exploitation were to remain the basis of
society. How could it be otherwise? Since during the war the workers acted
ony as obedient servats, soldiers to vanquish their masters' enemies, with
never a thought of acting for their OWn freedom, tere can be no question
to-day of any change i the basic princple of society, capitalist exploitation.
Tis does not mean restoration of old capitalism. It has gone forever.
Conditions have chaged. Capitalism is in distress. We ae poor. Where pro
ductive force has been destroyed so thoroughly, it stands to reason that there
must be scarceness of all lfe necessities. But there is more to Poverty is not
THE PEACE 197
equally distributed. As Pesident Truman lately stated, wages had risen less
ad profts had risen more tan the prices. The poor are poorer now; the rich
are richer than before. Tis is no chance result of temporary conditions. To
grasp its meaning we have to consider the deeper economic basis of te new
social conditions. Formerly, in ordinary times, the gradual renovation of the
productive apparatus at the rate in which it was used up or became antiquat
ed, took a certain regular percentage of the entire labor of society. Now the
mass destruction demands a mass renovation in a short tme. This means that
a larger pat of the total labor has to be spent on the production of means of
production, and a smaller part is left for consumption goods. Under capitalism
the means of production are the property of the capitalist class; they are reno
vated out of the surplus-value. Hence more surplus-value is needed. This
means that a larger share of the produce has to fall to the capitalist class, a
smaller share to the working class. As capitalist opinion in the middle class lit
erature expresses it: For recovery of prosperity the first condition is production
of capital, accumulation of profts ; high wages are an impediment to rapid
recovery.
Thus the main problem of capitalist policy since the war is how to increase
the surplus-value by depressing the standard of life of the workers .
Automatically this happens already by the steady rise of prices, a consequence
of the continuous issue of paper money under scarcity of goods. So the work
ers have to fght ever again for increase of the nomina wages, have ever again
to strike, without attaining more than that the wages slowly, at a distance, fol
low the increasing cost of living. Still there may be a willingness among indi"
vidual employers-in view of the shortness of labor power-to pay more than
the contacted scale of wages ; so the State intervenes in the interest of the entire
capitalist class. First by means of the institute of mediators. These state-appoint
ed mediators, formerly designated to abitrate in case of wage disputes, now
have the function of imposing standard wages, maximum wages not to be sur"
passed by any employer. It now happens that in a strike the employer is willing
to pay more wages, but the State forbids it. Or the goverment proclaims a gen
eral wage-pegging which, in view of the rising prices, means a continuous low
ering of life standard. Thus the strike against individual employers or employ
ers' unions becomes meaingless; each strike is directed and must be directed
consciously against State power.
Trade unions, too, now acquire a new fncton. Tey are directly inter
posed as officially recognized institutions that negotiate and mae treaties, in
the name of the workers, with the governmentl and capitalist bodies.
Government gives legal sanction to the decisions of the union; ts means that
the workers are bound moraly and legally to the contracts made by the umon
leaders considered as their representatives. Formerly it was the workers them
selves who in their assemblies had to decide on the new working conditons ;
198 WORKERS' COUNCILS
they could, by their vote, accept and reject them. Now this semblance of inde
pendence, of at least formal free decision in bargaining, is taken from them.
What the union leaders in conference with government and capitalists arrange
and agree upon, is considered law for the workers ; are not asked, and
should they refuse, al the moral and organizational power of the union is used
to force them ito obedience. It is clear tat unions as formally self-rulig
organizations of the workers wit chosen leaders are far more apt to impose the
new bad working conditions than would be any power institute of te State.
Thus the trade unions are made part of the power apparats dominating the
working class. The union is the salesman of the labor power of the workers,
and in bargaining in conference wit the State oflicials sells it to the employers.
This does not mean, of course, that now the unions and their leaders in
every case consent to the capitalist demands. Thereby their authority would
soon brea down, as is actually the case to a certain degree now. Their attitde,
moreover, often depends on political considerations, whether they stand etire
ly at the side of te Government, as in England, or are hostile against the
Government, as in France. The trade union leaders in France, belonging to the
C.P., hence agents of the Russian rulers, have not the least interest now to sus
tain the French capitalist class and its government, as they did some years ago
when they took part in goverment themselves and stood hostile against the
workers' strikes. Thus the fight of the workers against impoverishment is used
by the political parties as a subordinate means in the struggle between the
Wester system of private capitalism and the Russian system of state capital
Ism.
The problem facing European capitalism, however, has a still wider scope.
It is not only a matter of wages ; it is the question whether, after this breadown
of the ecnomic system, the working masses are willig to rebuild it.
Capitalism knows that "labor only can save us." Hard work and low wages are
the conditions for recovery. Will the workers, who remember the hard li
under capitalist exploitation before the war, consent to a still harder life in
order to restore that state of things? They may, if they can be convinced that it
is for a better world that they now exert themselves, for a world of freedom for
their cass, for socialism. Socialism is the magic word able to transform sullen
rebels into ready co-operators.
In broad layers of the middle class the conviction awoke that socialism, in
one way or another, was needed for recovery; in most countries socialist min
isters took office, sociaist and communist parties dominated the paliaments.
In England the slogan read: "Labor only can save us"; a large combined lid
dIe class and workers' vote gave an overwhelming majority to the Labor Party
that in former governments had shown its capitalist reliability. Where a down
right capitaist government would have been unable to suppress forcibly the
THE PEACE 199
resistance of the workers and to enforce the new hard living conditions upon
them, a Labor Government was the only escape.
England, indeed, was in a critical condition. The second world war had
exhausted its capital of foreign ivestments, the interest of which formerly
directed a stream of unpaid consumption goods into the country. Uncle
Shylock had given his generous aid only after his hard-pressed Ally had deliv
ered most of its assets-notithstanding the fact that the war essentially had
served to destroy Amerca's most dangerous rival to world domination, a
Germany disposing of the resources of the entire European continent. England
had to give up a large part of its colonies, it could hardly bear the expenses of
playing the part of a Big Power any longer. Also we see the Englsh bourgeoisie
lose its old self-reliant feelig of coufidence; its foreign polcy, e. g. , in the Near
East, shows sigs of diffidence. The privileged position formerly occupied by
the British working class, having its share in England's exploitation of the
world, had gone. Now the Labor Party faced the task of clearing the bankrupt
estate.
Socialism, however, was not to be simply make-believe. A good dose of
Socialism was really needed to restore capitalism. Some of the basic industries
of capitalist production, as coal mining and railway trafic, as a consequence of
private owership encumbered with an entirely antiquated lack of organiza
tion, constituted a ridiculous muddle of ineffciency. To a well-developed capi
talist production good organization of such basic branches as coal, steel, trafic,
ujust as necessay as that of post and telegraph; so nationalization is a capi
talist necessity, to which the name socialization is given. Though tere is noth
ig revolutonary in it, former goverments were too full of respect for private
enterprise to satisfy those genera needs; a "socialist" Labor Government was
needed to establish capitalist eficiency. When now te miners complain that
they find no difference in treatment between the former mine owners and the
new Coal Board they have to consider that the reform was not made for them,
but for capitalism. l was not an attack on capitalist property; the coal mine
shares-of doubtfl quality-were replaced by Government Bonds; ths manip
ulaton has in no way lessened the exploitation of the workers.
Te State has to assume functions in the production apparatus that for
merly were the doman of private enterrise. 111is does not mean state-cap
italism, as in Russia, but ony state-directed capitaism, somewhat as it was in
Nazi-Germany. And there are more points of resemblance. Capital is scarce in
post-war Europe, as it was in Germany after the first wa. The strictest econo
my is necessary. No more than under German fascism can it now be left to the
free will of the capitalist class to spill the available national capital by import-
luxuries or materials for dle production of luxuries. To rebuild the produc
tion apparatus of the country Goverment has to take in hand the control and
command of all imports an exports, of all transport of values across the fron-
200 WORKERS' COUNCILS
tiers. Interational trade then cannot be left to private merchants ; the govern
ments negotiate trade pacts, often strictly bilateral, on quantities comprising the
bulk of food supplies and the industrial produce of the entire country. What
Nazi-Germany introduced as the new totalitarian system of trade is now imi
tated by all the European States, an emergency measure here, just a it was
there. But the character of te emergency is different; tere it was to spare
forces for a new assault toward world conquest, to prepare for world war; here
it is to stave off starvation and revolution, a result of world war. Every gov
erment has to import foodstuffs from abroad-grain production in Europe by
deterioration of the soi and lack of hands having dimiished to only half or
two-thirds of its pre-war amount-lest the hungry population should revolt and
bring the C.P. into power. But tey must be paid by the export of industial
products withheld from their own people; or by loans from America, tying
Wester Europe with the bonds of debt slavery to the master of the world's
gold.
So the State has a far greater power now tan before. It is the consequence
of war destruction. This does not mean, however, tat it is a temporary abnor
mal state of things. Nobody believes that hereafter old private capitalism can
return. Te increasing size of enterprises, the interconnection of world econo
my, the concntration of capital demand planing and organizaton; though
now and then it needs catastrophes to enforce these tendencies. These post-war
condtons form a transition, an introduction to a new world, the world of
planned capitalism. Te State rises as a mighty power above society. It domi
nates and regulates economic life, it directs planned production, it distributes
food and other life necessities according to its judgment of primary needs, it
distributes the surplus-value produced by the workers among the owners of
capital; it directs more or less even the spiritual food, having distributive power
over the paper needed for the printing of books. In its organizaton the politi
cal parties are its bickering ofce-of-publicity holders, and the trade unions are
part of its bureaucracy. And, most important, the totaitarian State incorporates
the working masses into its social organizaton as the obedient producers of
vaue and surplus-value. This is performed by calling planned capitaism by the
name of socialism.
This is not simply usurpation of a name. A simple word, a deceitful name,
has no such power. The name is the expression of a realit. Socialism was the
watchword of the suffering and fighting workers in the past century, the mes
sage of their liberation, the magic word occupying their hearts and heads. TIley
did not see that it meant only an imperfect liberation, the rule of their leaders
as new masters, disposing over production apparats and product. Socialism
was the program ,of the leaders and politcians they sent into the parliaments
there to fight capitalism and exploitation. The goal of socalism, after the con
quest of State power, was the organization of production, planned economy,
THE PEACE 201
transferring the productive apparatus into the hands of the community, repre
sented by the State. Now that i the 20'
h
century capitalism in emergency
needs planned economy, direction and organization of production through
State power, the old slogan of te workers just fits in wth the new needs of cap
italism. What had been te expression of their modest hopes for liberaton
becomes the instrument of their ready submission under stronger slavery. Al
the traditions of former aspiations, sacrifices , and heroic s tuggle, binding
socialist workers to their creed and their party and condensed in the name
socialism, now act as fetters laming resistance against the growing power of the
new capitalism. Instead of clearly seeing the situation and resisting, blindfold
ed by the dear traditional slogans, they go into the new slavery.
This socialism is for Europe; it is not for America, nor for Russia. It is bor
in Europe; it has to save capitalist Europe. Why did Europe succumb into such
utter powerlessness? It has outside Russia, 400 million people, more than the
U.S.A. and the U.S.S.R. together, it is rich in raw materials for industy, rich
in fertle land; it had a highly developed industry and a well-instructed popu
lation disposing of an abundance of capital. Why, then, such a lack of cpital
ist power? Because Europe is divided up in a dozen nationalities, speaking sev
eral dozens of languages, and s o is driven by ferce centuries-old antagonsms
and natonal hatreds. At the rise of capitalism these nations were the right size
for economic units ; now that capitalist efciency needs larger unts, of conti
nent size, Europe is at a disadvantage against the new powers America and
Russia. Its inner inextinguishable enmities and wars called in those mightier
rivals who trampled it down, physically and economically. What at the end of
the Middle Ages happened to the Italian towns, which had been the birthplaces
of burgher power and early capitalism, but which, tom by their mutual feuds
and hatreds, could not establish a larger natonal unity, ad so were, as battle
field, trampled by the French and the Spanish armes and subjected to mighti
er foreign powers-now happened to Europe on a large scale. European capi
talism is now te victm of that nationalism that once was its force. When after
the first world war President Wilson, as the arbiter of Europe, proclaimed the
principle of national self-determination this was the very means to keep Europe
powerless, divided up into a host of independent, mutually fghting parts. It is
quite natural that now socialist politicans propagate te idea of one consoli
dated socialist Europe; but they are too late; Europe is being partitoned
already into an Eastern and a Western block. The idea itself of tryng to make
socialist Europe a third world power bridling the aggression of te others,
belongs to te realm of middle class ideology that sees only contending nations,
of contnent size now; this ideology means the salvation of European capital
ism.
Looking from a general point of view we may say that the development of
the productve forces of society renders inevitable their social organization into
202 WORKERS' COUNCILS
one well-planned entirety. It may take place in two diferent ways. One is the
way of capital, making State power the directng power of the production, mak
ing managers appointed from above the commanders of labor. It leads to total
itarianism in different degrees, the State extending its regulative power over
ever more realms of human and social life. It leads to dictatorship, more or less
camouflaged by parliamentary or sham democratic forms. Such dictatorship
does not necessarily assume the brutal forms we have seen in Germany and
Russia, wit an all-powerful secret polce keeping all classes in its cruel grip. For
the working class the difference between Western democratic and Easter dic
tatorial forms of Government is not essential, economiclly; in both it is sub
jected to exploitation by a ruling class of officials that commands production
and distributes the produce. And to stand over against the State as the all-pow
erful master of the production apparatus, means loss of a good deal of tat lim
ited amount of free action by which it could formerly resist the demands of cap
ital.
The other way is the way of the working class, seizing social power and
mastery over the production apparatus.
3. TOWARDS NEW FREEDOM
The second world war has inaugurated a new epoch. More than the frst
world war it has changed the structure of the capitalist world. Thereby it has
brought a fundamental change in the conditions of the workers' fght for fee
dom. These new conditions the working class has to know, to understand, and
to face. It has, first, to give up illusions. Illusions about its future under capi
talism, and illusions about an easy way of winning feedom in a better world
of socialism.
m the past century, the first epoch of the workers' movement, the idea of
socialism captured the mind. The workers built up their organizations, politi
cal parties, as well as tade unions, and attacked and fought capitaism. It was
a fght by means of leaders ; parliamentarians as spokesmen did the real fight
ing, and it was assumed that afterwards politicians and officials should do the
real work of expropriating the capitalists and building up the new socilist
world. Where reformism pervaded the socialist parties it was believed that by
a series of reforms they would gradually mitigate and finally transform capi
taism into a real commonwealth. Then at the end of the frst world war hopes
ran high about a near world revolution led by te communist party. By pro
claiming strict obedience of the workers towards the leaders under the name of
discipline, this paty believed it could beat down capitalism and establish state
socialism. Both parties denounced capitalism, both promised a better word
witout exploitation, under their rulership. So millions of workers followed
THE PEACE 203
them, believing they would defeat capitalism and liberate the proletariat from
slavery.
Now these illusions have broken dow. First about capitalism. Not a miti
gated, but an aggravated capitalism faces us. It is the working class that has to
bear the burden of capitalist recovery. So they must fight. Ever again strikes
flare up. Though successful in appearance, they do not succeed in staving off
want and misery. Against the formidable power of capitalism they are too weak
to bring relief.
Not illusions about party communism-suc could hardly have existed;
because the c. P. never concealed its intention to establish a despotic rule over
a subordinate working class. This goal stands squarely opposite to the workers'
goal of being free masters of society themselves.
There were, too, illusions about socialism and unions. Now the workers dis
cover that te organizations tey considered as part of themselves stad as a
power aganst them. Now tey see that their leaders, political and union lead
ers , take side with capital. Their strikes are wild-cat strikes. In England Labor
holds the State offce for capitalism-in-need, and the trade unons are inserted
as part of the apparatus of the State. As in the Grimethorpe strike a miner said
to a reporter: "As usual, we ae united and every one is against us."
This, indeed, is the mark of the new time. All the old powers stand against
the workers, driving, sometimes cajoling, mostly denouncing and abusing
tem: capitalists, politicians, leaders, offcials, the State. They have only them
selves. But in their fght they are firmly united. More firmly, more unbreakably
than in former contests, their mutual solidaty forging them into one solid
body. Therein lies an indication of the future. To be sure, such small strikes
cannot be more than a protest, a warning, to reveal the mood of the workers.
Solid unity in such small units can be no more than a promise. To exert pres
sure upon the government they must be mass strikes.
m France and Italy, where the government tied to maintai wage-pegging
without being able to prevent a rise of prices , mass strikes flared up, now
indeed consciously drected against the government; combined with stronger
forms of fght, with shop occupation, seizure by the workers of the offces . It
was not, however, a pure class action of the workers but at the same time a
political manuever in party s tife. The stikes were directed by the central com
mittee of the tade unions (C.G.T), domnated by the C01l unist Party, ad
had to serve as an action of Russian politcs agaist the Western governments.
Thus from the onset there was an intinsic weakness in them. The fight against
private capitalism took te form of submission to state capitalism; hence it was
opposed by tose who abhorred state capitalist exploitation as a worse condi
tion. So the workers could not arrive at real cass unity; teir acton could not
display as real massal class action; their great aim of freedom was obscured
through servitude to capitalst party slogans.
204 WORKERS' COUNCILS
The ferce antagonism sprung up at the end of the war between Russia and
the Wester powers has changed the attitude of the classes towards Russian
communism. Whereas the Western intellectuals take side with their capitalist
masters against dictatorship, large parts of te workers once more see Russia
as their parter. So the diffclty for te working class to-day is that it is
involved in the struggle of two world powers, both ruling ad exploiting them,
both referring to the exploitation on te other side in order to make them obe
dient adherents. In the Wester world te Communist Party, agent of Russian
state capitalism, presents itself as the ally and leader of the workers against
home capitalism. By patient, petty work in the organizations it shoved itself
into the leading administrative places, showing how a well-orgaized minority
is able to dominate a majority; unlike the socialist leaders bound to their own
capitalism it does not hesitate to put up the most radical demands for the work
ers, thus to win their favor. In countries where American capitalism retains in
power the most reactionary groups, the C.P. takes the lead of popular move
ments, as the future master, to make them allies of Russia should tey win
dominace. If in America itself te working masses should come to mass
actions against new war, the C.P. will immediately join and try to make the
action a source of spirital confusion. On the reverse, American capitalism wil
not be slow to present itself as the liberator of the enslaved Russian masses,
hereby to claim the adherence of the America workers.
-This is not a chance situation of today. Always capitalist policy consists i
dividing the working class by making it adhere to two opposite capitalist par
ties. They feel by instinct that in this way the working class is made powerless.
So the more tey are alike, two lots of proft-seekg exploiters and office-seek
ing politicians, the strong"er they emphasize their often taditiona artfcial df
ferences into sounding slogas simulating fndamental priciples. So it was in
home politics in every county, so it is now in international poltics, agaist the
working cass of the world. Should capitalism succeed in establishing "one
world" it certainy would discover the necessity to split into two contending
halves, in order to prevent unity of the workers.
Here te workg class needs wisdom. Not solely knowledge of society and
its intricacies, but that intuitive wisdom that is growing out of their plain con
dition of life, that independence of mind tat is based upon the pure principle
of cass stuggle for freedom. Where bot capitaist powers to win te work
ing masses by their noisy propaganda and thus to divide them, these have to
realize that theirs is the third way, the fight for thei own mastery over society.
This fght arises as an extnsion of their present small attempts of resist
ance. Up till now they struck separately; when one factory or industy went on
strike the others looked on, apparently uniterested; so they could only worry
the rulers who at most appeased them with small concessions. Once they per
ceive that the first condition to enforce their demands is mass unity of acton
TE PEACE 205
they will begin to raise their class power against State-power. Up till now they
let themselves be directed by capitaist interests. Once they understand that the
other condition, not less primary, is to keep the direction in teir own hands by
means of their delegates, their strike committees, their workers' councis, and
do not allow any leaders to lead tem, they will have entered the road to fee
dom.
What we now wtness is the beginning of breakdown of capitalism as an
economic system. Not yet visible over the entire world, but over Europe, where
it took its origin. In Englad, in Europe, capitalism aose; ad like a oi-spot
it extended ever wider over the world. Now in this centre we see it decay, hard
ening into despotic forms to stave off rui, showing the now fourishing new
sites, America, Austalia, their fture.
The beginning of breakdown: what was supposed to be a matter of the
future, the liitedness of te earth as an impedient to frter expansion of
capitalism now manifests itself aready. The slow increase of world tade since
the first world war indicates the slackening tempo, and the deep crisis of 1930
has not been vanquished by a new prosperity. The slacening at the time did
not enter into the consciousness of man; it could only be made out afterwards
in statistical figures. 'lbday the breadown is conscious experience; the broad
masses of the people feel it and kow it, and in panic try to fnd a way out.
Te breakdown of an economic system: not yet of a social system. The old
dependencies of the classes, the relatons of a master and a servant cass, the
basic fact of exploitation as yet are in full vigour. Desperate efforts are made to
consolidate them. By transforming the chance economy into planned economy,
by increasing State-despotism, by intensifing the exploitation.
The beginning of breakdown of an old system: not yet te beginning rse
of a new system. The working class is far back, compared to the master class,
i recognizing the changed conditions. Whereas the capitalists are active i
transforming old institutions and adapt them to new functons, the workers
stubborly adhere to taditional feelings and actions, and try to figt capital by
putting their trust in agents of capitalism, in unions ad parties. Surely te wild
strikes are first indications of. new forms of fght. But only when the entire
working cass is permeated by the new isight into the signifcance of self-acton
and self-rule, the way to feedom opens out.
The breakdown of capitalism is at the same time the breakdown of the old
socialism. Because socialism now turns out to be a harsher form of capitalism.
Socialism, as inherited fom the 1 9t
h
century, was the creed of a socia mission
for the leaders and politicians : to trasform capitalism into a system of
State-directed economy without exploitation, producing abundance for all. It
was the creed of class struggle for the workers, the belief that by tansferring
government ito the hands of these socialists they would assure their freedom.
Why did it not happen? Because the casting of a secret vote was too insignifi-
206 WORKERS' COUNCILS
cant an effort to count as a real class-figt. Because the socialist politicians
stood single-handed within the entire capitalist fabric of society, against the
immense power of the capitalist class being master of the production apparatus,
with the workers' masses only looking on, expecting them, little squad, to upset
te world. What could they do oterwise tan run the affair in the usual way,
and by reforming the worst abuses save their conscience? Now it is seen that
socialism in the sense of Stte-directed planned economy means state-capital
ism, and that socialism in the sense of workers' emancipation is only possible
as a new orentation. The new orientation of socialism is self-direction of pro
duction, self-direction of the class-struggle, by means of workers' councils.
What is called the failure of the working class, alarming many socialists, the
contradiction between the economc breakdown of capitalism ad the inability
of the workers to seize power and establish the new order, is no real contra
dicton. Economic canges only gradually produce changes in the mind. The
workers educated in the belief in socialism stand bewildered now that they see
that the very opposite, heavier slavery, is the outcome. To grasp that socialism
and comunism now both mean doctrines of enslavement is a hard job. New
orientation needs time; maybe only a new generation will comprehend its full
scope.
At the end of the first world war world revolution seemed ncar; the work
ing class arose full of hope and expectation that now its old dreams would come
tue. But they were dreams of imperfect freedom, they could not be realized.
Now at the end of the second world war only slavery and destruction seem
near; hope is far distant; but, a task, the geater aim of real freedom looms.
More powerful than before, capitalism rises as master of the world. More pow
erful than before the working class has to rise in its fight for mastery over the
world. More powerful forms of suppression capitalism has found. More pow
erful forms of fght the working class has to find and use. So this crisis of cap
italism at the same time will be the start of a new workers' movement.
A century ago, when the workers were a small class of downtrodden help
less individuals, the call was heard: proletarians of all countries unite! You have
nothing to lose but your chains ; you have a world to w. Since then they have
become the largest class ; and they have' unted; but only imperfectly. Only in
groups, smaller or larger, not yet as one class-unity. Only superficially, in outer
forms, not yet in deep essence. And still they have nothing to lose but their
chains ; what else they have they cannot lose by fghting, only by tiidly sub
miting. And the world to be won begins to be perceived dimly. At that time no
clear goa, for which to unite, could be depicted; so teir organizations in the
end became tools of capitalism. Now the goal becomes distinct; opposite to the
stronger domination by state-directed planned economy of the new capitalism
stands what Marx called the association of free and equal producers. So the call
for unity must be supplemented by indication of the goal: take te factories and
THE PEACE 207
machines ; assert your mastery over the productive apparatus; organize pro
duction by means of workers' councils.
Further Reading
(Compiled by Robert F. Barsk)
Ackerman, Frank. ed. The Changing Nature 0 Work. Washington, DC: Island
Press, 1998.
Arens, Werer. "Works Councls in the Industrial Provinces : Eight Case
Studies of Relations Belween Management and Poduction in the
Factory." [Betriebsraete in der industriellen ProvIZ. Acht Fallstudien
ueber bertriebliche Herrschafts und Produktionverhaeltnisse.] Sociloga
Rurlis 22. 2 ( 1982) , 1 97-198.
Albeda, Wil. "Between Harmony and Confict: Industrial Democracy in the
Netherlands:' Annals ofthe American Acadmy qfPltical Social &nce 13l
(1 977) : 71-82.
"Changing Indusrial Relations in the Netherlands." Industril Relations
16. 2 ( 1977) : 133-114.
Albrecht, Sandra I "Forms of Industrial and Economic Democracy: A
Comparison of Pevailing Approaches!' Mi-American Review 0 Sociolg
8. 2 ( 1983) : 43-66.
Altmam, Norbert, Peter Biehnarm, and Klaus Dull. "New Forms of
Employment: Managerial Polices and Employee Interests. [Neue
Arbeitsformen, betriebliche Leistungspolitik und Interessen der
Beschaftigten.] Soziale H33.31 (1 982) , 440-165.
Altmann, Norbert, and Klaus Dull. "Rationalizaton and Partcipation:
Implementation of New lechnologies and Problems of the Work
Councils in the FRG." Eonomic and Industrial Democrac 1 1 . 1 (1 990) :
1 1 1-127.
Antipev, Anatoliy Grigorevic. "Work Group Council n: the System of
Colective Administration." [STK v sisteme upravleniya kollektivom.]
Sotsiologcheski Isledovania 16.5 (1989) : 70-73.
Anweiler, Oskar. The Soviets: 1h Russin Prkes, Pasants, and Soldiers Councilf,
1905-1921. [Die Ratebewegung in Russiand, 1905-1921.} Trans. Ruth
Hein. New York: Pantheon Books, 1 975.
Ascher, Abraham. "'Radical' Imperialists Within German Social Democracy,
1 912-1 918." Political Since fartel 76(4) (1 961 ) : 555-575.
Bayat, Assef. Prkers and Revolution in Irn: a Third Pfrld Experience q/ Workersi
Contol. London: Zed, 1 987.
Balfour, Campbell, ed. Particiation in Industry. London: Croom Heh, 1 973.
209
210 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Bellace,Janice R. "The Europea Works Council Directive: Transnatonal
Informaton and Consultation i the Europea Union." Comparative
Labor Law Jounal 1 8 (1997) , 325-361.
Bellamy, Richard and Darrow Schecter. Gramsci and the Italian State. New York:
St. Martinis 1 993.
Bernstein, Paul, and Bonnie Burrow. Training Trkersfr DemocraJ Management:
Findngs on the Euroean Expece. Society for the Stdy of Social
Problems (SSSP) , 1979.
Bertram, Hans. "Transformaton Process : Commission for the Study of Social
and Political Changes in the New Federal Republic of Germany
(KSPW) . [1ransfromationsprozesse: Die Kommission fur die
Erforschung des sozialen und politis chen Wandels in den neuen
Bundeslandern (KSPW) . J" Diskurs 7. 1 (1997) : 59-63.
Boekelman, Marinus Antonius M. The Development of the Socal and
Political Thought of Anton Pannekoek, 1873- 1960: From Social
Democracy to Council Communism. Thesis, University of Toronto,
1980.
Boggs, Carl. "Marxism, Pefigurative Communism, and the Problems of
Workersl ControL" Radical America 1 1-12.6-1 (1 977-1978) , 98-122.
Bologa, Sergio. "Class Composition and the Theory of the Party at the
Origl of the Workers- Councis Movement." Trans. Bruno Ramirez.
Tlos 13 ( 1972) : 4-27
Bolweg, j. F. "Refections on the C. O. P. Experimens n Participation.
[Refecties rond de C.O.P. experimenten medezeggenschap.] " Mens en
Oming3 1. 1 ( 1977) , 45-66
Boreham, Paul, and Rchard Hall. "Trade Union Strategy in Contemporary
Capitalism: The Microeconomic and Macroeconomic Iplications of
Political Unionism." Eonomi and Industal Demcrac 15. 3 (1994) ,
3 13-353.
Bradley, Keith and Alan Gelb. Coopertion at Work: The Mondraon Eperince.
Heinemann Eductional Books, 1983.
Bricianer, Serge. Pannekoek and the Pf irkers ' Counci. {Pannekoek e les urc ouvn
e.Trans. Maachy Carroll. Saint Louis : Telos Press, 1978.
Brinton, Maurice. The Bolsheviks and Workers ' Contrl, J5Jto J52J, The State
and Countr-Revolution. Solidarity, 1970.
Broekmeyer, M. J., ed. Ygoslav Pfrkersi &/Manageent. Poceedings i a sympo
sium held in Amstrdm, ~5 January, J50. Dordrecht, Reidel, 1970.
FURTHER READINGS 21 1
Bronfenbrenner, Kate, ed. Organizing t o win: new research on union strateges.
Ithaca: ILR Press, 1998.
Burns, Tony. 'Joseph Dietzgen and the History of Marxism." Science OSocety
2002 66(2) : 202-227.
Carby-Hall, ]. R. Jrker Particpation in Europe. Croom Helm; Roman and
Littlefeld, 1 977.
Clegg, Ian. Workersi SlManagement in Alger. New York: Monthly Review
Press, 1 971 .
Coates, Ken, ed. , et al. New JOrker Co-oeratives, Spokesman Books, 1 976.
Coates, Ken, ad 'lony 'apham, eds. Workers ' Contrl: A Book qReadings and
Wtnesses}or Workers ' Control. MacGibbon Kee, 1 968; Panther, 1970.
Comisso, Ellen Turkish. Jrkersi Control Undr Plan and Market: Implictions q
Yugoslav Selmanagement. New Haven, CT: Yale UP, 1979.
Congdon, Tim. "The Economics of Industrial Democracy." New Socit 34. 682
(1975) , 255-257.
Danes, Robert Vincent, ed. Introduction. Documentar Histor q Communism
and the Jrl: From Revolution to Collpse. Trans. Robert ` Danels.
Hanover: Universit Press of New England Press, 1 994.
Danik, Claude. "Trade union politics." Canadin Labor and Emploment Law
Joural 5 ( 1996) , 1 17-121 .
Dankabaar, Ben. "New Production Concepts, Management Strategies and the
Qality of Work." Work, Employment and Socit 2. 1 (1988) :25-50.
de Zwaan, Frans H. "A Works Council. [Een Ondernemingsraad.]" Mens en
Oeming28.3 (1974) , 145-162.
"How Well does the OR Work? [Hoe Goed Doet de OR Het?]" .n en
Oreming28.4 ( 1974) , 21 6-231 .
Dolgoff, Sa, ed. The Anarchist Collectives: Jrks ' SelManagement in the Spanish
Revolution (1936-1939) . Free Life Editions, 1 974.
Einemann, Edgar. Researh by the Concernedfr a Human Future q Work.
International Sociological Association (ISA) , 1986.
Falkner, Gerda. "European Works Councis and the Maastricht Social
Agreement: Towards a New Policy Style?" Jourl q European Public
Poli 3. 2 ( 1996) , 192-208.
Fincham, Robin, and Grace Zulu. "Works Councis in Zambia: The
Implementation of Idustial Participatory Democracy." Labor and Societ
5. 2 ( 1980) : 171-190.
212 WORKERS' COUNCILS
First Dilic, Ruza. "On E. Sicardfs Reflectons. [0 RazmisUanjima E. Skarda.] "
Socl sel 12. 1 (1974) : 92-94.
Fisera, Vladimr, ed. Urkers Councils in Czechoslvakia, 1968-9: Documets and
Essays. London: Allison and Busby, 1978.
Frege, Carola M. "Workers' Commitment to New Labor Institutions :
Comparing Union Members in East and West Germany." European
Joural qf Industl Reltions 4. 1 (1988) : 81-10 1.
Furstenberg, Friedrich. "The Regulation of Working Time in te Federal
Republic of Germany. Labor and Socit 10.2 (1985) , 133-150.
- "West German Experience with Industrial Democacy." Annals qf the
Amerian Acdmy qf Politl and Social Szce 431 (1977) : 44-53.
Gerber, Jolm Paul , Anton Rnnekoek and the Socilism qf Urkers ' Se!Emanciation
J
1873-1960. Dordrecht; Boston; Amsterdam: Kluwer Academic;
Interational Institute of Social History, 1989.
Gerber, John. "From Left Radicalism to Council Communism: Anton
Panekoek and the German Revolutionay Marxism." Joural qf
Contemporar Histor. 23(2) (1988) : 1 69-189.
Gevers, P. "From the Company Council . . . to te Workers' Council? A
Dilemma That the Belgian vVorkers Movement Must Solve." [Du con
seil dientreprise . . . au consei des tavailleurs? Un demme pose au mou
vement ouvrier.] " Recherches Sociologiques 8.2 (1977), 189-210.
Gluckstein, Donny. The weste Soviets: workers ' councils versus parliament,
1915-1920. London: Bookmarks, 1985.
Gramsci, Antonio. Antonio Gamsci: pre-prison writings. Richard Bellamy, ed.
Trans. Virginia Cox. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1994.
Greenberg, Edwards S. "The Consequences of Worker Participaton: A
Clarification of te Theoretical Literature." Social Science Qarterl 56. 2
(1975) , 19 1-209.
Gueri, Daniel. Anarchism. Introduction by Noam Chomsky. Monthly Review
Press, 1970.
Hansen, Erik. Marxists and Society: Te Emergence of Marxan Social
Teory in the Netherlands, 1894-1914. Journal of European Studies
64(4) , 1976: 262-285.
Hassencamp, Alfred, and Hans Jurgen Bieneck. iTechnical and
Organizational Changes and Design of Working Conditions in te
Federal Republic of Germany." Labor and Societ 8. 1 (1983) : 39-56.
FURTHER REAINGS 213
Herrigel, Gary. "Works Councils : Consultation, Representation and
Cooperation in Industrial Relations." Amercan Joural 0 Sociolog 102. 4
(1997) , 1205-1208.
Hethy, Lajos. "Plant Level Participation in Hungary." Osterreichische Zeitchrf
fr Soziolo 13. 1 ( 1988) : 38-49.
HintonJames. Te First Shop Stewardi Movement. London: G. Allen Unwn,
1973.
Horkheimer, Max. "The Authoritarian State." Tlos 15 (1 973) : 3-20.
Hovels, Ben W. M. , and Peter Nas. "Works Councils in the Netherlands :
Some Findings from an Empirical Survey." .etherlnds Jourl 0 Sociol
[Sciolog .Nerlrtia] 13. 2 (1 977) : 107-124.
"Industial Democracy in Europe: Differences and Similarities across
Countries and Hierarchies." Oganiatio Sudies 2. 2 ( 1981) , 113-129.
Jacoby, Sanford M. "Current Prospects for Employee Representation in the
U. S. : Old Wme in New Bottles?" Joural oLabor Research 16.3 (1 995) ,
387-397.
Kaleci, MichaL Socj alizmkowwanie I wieloltnie planowanie. [Socilism-fnc
twning and long-run planning.]J erzy Osiatynski,ed. Trans. BohdanJung.
Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1992.
Kaufman, Bruce E and Morris M. Kleiner, ed. Emploee Tpresentatio:
Slteratives and FutUre Directions. Madison, Y. Industrial Relations
Research Association, 1993.
Kema, Hans. The Development 0 Industial Demcrac in the .Ntherlnd sice the
Secon World /r: From Corporatm to Co-Counselin? Interational
Sociological Association (ISA) , 1986.
Kandermans, B. , and N. Terra. "A Works Council Consults Its Supporters :
The Mobiliation of Union Members. [Een centrale ondernemingsraad
raadpleegt zijn achterban: de mobilisatie van vakbondsleden voor een
advies. ] " Me en Ondremi34.5 (1980) , 3 92-412.
Kleiner, Morris M., and Young-Myon Lee. "Works Councils and
Unionization: Lessons from South Korea." Industril Relts 36. 1
(1997) : 1 -16.
Kochan, Tomas A. , and Harry C. Katz. "Collectve Bargaining, Work
Organization, and Worker Particpation: the retrn to plant level bar
gaiing." Labor Law Jourl 34 ( 1983) , 524-530.
Kolaja, Jiri. "A Yugoslav Workersi Council." Human Organiztn 20. 1 (1961) :
27-31 .
214 WORKERS' COUNCILS
"New Data on Worker Self-Administration." Amerian Joural rEconomic
and Socilog 39.4 (1980), 415-417.
Kolaja, Jiri Thomas. "rkersi councils: the 'ugoslv exerience. New York: Praeger,
1965.
- "rkers' Council: Ine 'goslav Experience. London: Tavistock Publications,
1965.
Koopman Iwema, Agnes M. "Power, Motivation and Code termination;'
.Ntherlands Jourl q Sociolog [Sociolog .erlandica] 1 9.2 ( 1983) , 199-204.
"Workers' Counci Laws in Germany and the Netherlands. [De
Onderemingsraad in Duitsland en Nederland: Wetgeving en Paktijk] ."
M and 036. 4 ( 1982) , 327-347.
Keissig, Volkma. Emploee Partiation and .New Forms q Management in Et
Germany and Russia. International Sociological Association (ISA) , 1 998.
- German Unjfcaton and .Nw-Old Issues q Industrial Relations. International
Sociological Association (ISA) , 1 994.
Lammers, Cornelis. "Problems and Achievements of Self Management in
Yugoslavia. [Problemen en Prestaties van hetJoegoslavisch
Zelfbestur.]" Mens e Maacapi 48 ( 1973) , 139-15 1.
Pauline L. Meurs, ad Ton A. Mijs. "Direct and Indirect Participation in
Dutch Firms and Hospitals." Organiatin Studies 8. 1 ( 1987) : 25-38.
and Ada van der Hoogte. The Role qDutch Emploersi Assocations with
Respect to Leglaton o Istrial Democrac. International Sociological
Association (ISA) , 1986.
Lammers, D. J, J H. H. Andriessen, A. A. Mijs, and P. L. Meurs. "Do
Worker Councils Have a Chance in Dutch Hospitals? [Maakt de
ondernemingsraad in het Nederlandse ziekenhuis een kans?] " Mens en
Odrming 34. 2 ( 1980) : 88-104.
Lauc, Ate. "Influence of the Working Class and Some Means of Increasing
Working Class Infuence. [Utecaj Radnicke Klase I Neki Putovi
Povecaja Utjecaja Radnice Klase.] " Sociologa 14.4 ( 1972) , 625-641 .
Lecher, Wolfgang, and Stefan Rub. "The Constitution of European Works
Councils : From Iformation Forum to Social Actor?" European Journal q
Industril Relations 5. 1 (1999) : 7-25.
Lecher, Wolfgang, and Ulrike Sieling Wendeling. "New Developments in the
Discussion of Co-Determination in Europe." Labor and Societ 4. 1 (1979)
: 80-98.
FURTER READINGS 215
Looise, jan Cornelis. "Employee Representation at the Crossroads: Trade
Unions and Work Councils in Changing Industrial Relatons.
[Werknemersvertegenwoordigiug op de tweesprong: Vakbeweging en
vertegenwoordigend overleg in veranderende arbeidsverhoudingen.]"
Dissertation Abstacts Interationu50.4 (1989) , 624-C.
Looise, jan C. , Jan De Leede, and UIke Veersma. The Efcts q/' Cianges in
Organkation and Wrk on Wrks Councils. Interational Sociological
Association (ISA) , 1 998.
Majchzakowa, Irena. "The Workers{ Councls in Poland:' Archives
Internationales de Sociologie de h Cooperation et du Developpement 2 (1957) :
146-155.
Mangold, Werner. Aspects q Socl and Rlitical Conciousness qfGerman Industrial
Wrkers. Internatonal Sociological Association (SA) , 1978.
Mapadimeng, Simon M. "Workplace Representaion through the Workplace
Forums in Contemporary Sout Mrica: Opportunities and Constraints."
Societ in Transition 29. 3-4 ( 1998) : 93-103.
Markey, Ray, ad jacques Monat, eds. Innovation and Emploee Participation
1?trough Wrks Councils: Intetional Ce Studes. Brookfeld: Ashgate
Publishing Compay, 1997
Marsden, David ward. "Tst European Developmets in Industrial Democrac."
Inquiy in Creative Sociology 8. 1 ( 1 980) : 1-5.
Matuszak, Grzegorz. "Workers' Opinions about the Reward and Punishment
of Workers in an Industrial Enterprise. [Opinie zalogi 0 wyroznianiu I
karaniu pracwnikow w przedsiebiorstwie przemyslowym.]" meglad
Sog'ologany 33 ( 1981) , 321-330.
McGlynn, Clare. "European Works Councils: towards industria democra
cy?" The Industrial Law Joural 24 (1995) : 78-84.
Melman, Seymour. Ajler Capitalm: From Managerialism to Workplace Democrac.
`. Knopf, 2001.
Miller, Douglas. "The Industrial Representation of Labor Unions in the
Federal Republic of Germany. [ie betrieibliche Prasenz von
Gewerkschaften in der Bunderepublik Deutschland.]" Sozial Telt 30.3
(1979) , 328-353.
Mohamed Halfmi S. , and Sandbrook, Richard. eds. Empowering peole: Building
communit) civil assoctons and legaliit in Afa. Toronto: Centre for Urban
and Community Studies, University of Toronto. cl 993. Poceedings of
an Iternational Conference of Civil Association held m Arusha,
Tanzania, August 1991.
216 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Monat, jacques . "Partcipation and Political Structure." Labor and Socit 8.4
( 1983) : 371-378.
Mourianx, Rene. "Strategies and Events : The Form of the CGT from 1936 to
1968. [Strategies et evenements ; la forme de la CGT de 1 936 a 1968.]
French llit and Socit 1 4. 4 ( 1996) ; 15-22.
Mulder, Mark. "The Seizable Power. [De Grijpbare Macht. ]" Ada llitia 8. 2
( 1973) , 133-152.
Noble, David. Area by Design: Scince} 1echnolog} and the Rise qCorporate
Capitalisr. `. Knopf, 1977
Frces q Poduction: A Socl Histor q Industril Autoration. . Knopf,
1983.
Obradovic, Josip. "Distribution of Participation in the Process and the
Making of Decisions on Themes Linked With the Economic
Functioning of Enterprises. [istribucia Partcipacij e u Procesu
Donosenja Odluka na lemama Vezanim uz Ekonomsko Poslovanje
Poduzeca.]" Revija z Sociol 2. 1 ( 1972) : 15-48.
Obradovic, josip. "Paticipation-Research Results and Theory. [Participacia
Rezultat Istrazivanja I Teoretski Model.]" Rvija z Sociol 4. 1 ( 1974) :
29-54.
Obradovic, Josip. "Workers ' Participation: Who Participates?" Industrial
Reltions 14. 1 ( 1975) : 32-44.
Pollert, Anna. Labor Moveents i Transjoration in lt-Corrand Econoris. Te
Case q Cetral Ester Europe. International Sociological Association
(ISA) , 1998.
Pontusson, jonas. "Works Councils : Consultation, Representation and
Cooperation in Industrial Relations." Contemporary Sociolog 26.3 (1997) ,
338-339.
Popovic, Mihailo ` "Can the Working Class Control the Total Process of
Social Reproduction? [Moze I i radnicka klasa da ovlada celokupnom
drustvenom reprodukcijom?]" SociologJa 28. 1-2 jan-june ( 1986) : 1-10.
Peusche, Evelyn. HrCouncils i Est Gerany beteen Cooeration and Coriict.
Interational Sociological Association (ISA) , 1 994.
Rahnema, Saeed. "Works Councils in Iran: Te lllusion of Worker Control."
Eonoric and Industrl Democracy 13. 1 ( 1992) : 69-94.
Rasnic, Carol D. "Germanyis statutory works councils and employee codeter
mination: a model for the United States?" Loyol q Los Aneles
Intational and Corpartive Law Jourl 14 ( 1992) , 275-300.
FURTHER READINGS 21 7
Rudolf, Stanislaw. "Intergrating Actvities of the European Community
Regarding Worker Partcipation Issues (European Company Councils).
[zialania integracyne wspolnoty europejskiej w zakresie partycypacji
pracowniczej (Euroiskie Zakladowe) .] Pneglad Socologzny 43 (1994) ,
185-199.
Samuels, Warren J. "Refections on the Intellectual Context and Sigificance
of Thorstein Veblen." Joural i Economic Is ues 29.3 ( 1 995), 915-922.
Sandbrook, Richard, and Mohamed Halfani, eds. Empowering people: building
communit; civil asociations and legality in Afic: procedings i an Interatinal
Cc i Ciil Assoctins held i Arusha; Tanzania; Augut 1..l.
Toronto: Centre for Urban and Community Studies, Universit of
Toronto, 1 993.
Scheinecker, Martina. "Between Personnel and Management. Work
Organization and Bow of Information amoung Members of Works
Councils. [Zwischen Belegschaft und Unterchmensleitung.
Arbeitsorganisation und Infromationsfluss mBetriebsratskollegium.]"
Ostreichische Zeitchrf fr Soziolog 1 3. 1 ( 1 988) : 98-99.
Schnabel, Claus, and Joachim Wagner. "Industrial Relations and Trade
Unon Effects on Innovation in Germany." Labor 8.3 (1 994), 489-503.
Schulten, Thorsten. "Te European Works Councils: Prospects for a New
System of European Industrial Relatons." Euroean Journal i Industrial
Reltions 2.3 (1 996), 303-324.
Schurer, H. Anton Pannekoek and the Origins of Leninism. Slavonic and Et
Euroean Review 41 (97) (1963) : 327-344.
Shaw, Jo. "Works councils in German enterrises and Article 1 1 9 E. G. ."
European Law Review 22 (1997) , 256-262.
Shipway, Mark. Anti-Parliamentar Communism: The Movel tfr fIrkers ' Councils
in Britain, 1.17-45. Basingstoke: Macmllan, 1 988.
Sirianni, Carmen. fI rkers Control and Socilst Democrac: the Sovit Expernce.
London: NLB, 1982.
Smart, D. A. Pannekoek and Gorte's Marxism. London: Pluto Press, 1 978
Stanzani, Claudio. "European Work Councils: 'e Critical Aspects of
Participation. [I comitati aziendali europei: aspetti critici di parteci
pazione.] " Sociolog del Lavoro 68 (1 998) , 21 9-228.
Ster, Robert N. , and Nada Zupan. BiOre th Flood: Legal Structure and the
Pactie i Sl Management in a Ygslavian fIrkers' Council, 1.73-1.8..
American Sociological Association (ASA) , 1 991 .
21 8 WORKERS' COUNCILS
Streech, Wolfgang. "Industrial Citizenship under Regime Competition: The
Case of the Europea Works Councils." Joural qfEuropean Pblic RJlic
4. 4 (1997) , 643-664.
"Neither European Nor Works Councils : A Reply to Paul Kutsen."
Economic and Indutrial Democracy 1 8.2 ( 1997) , 325-337.
Sturmthal, Adolf Fox. Workers Councls: A study 0 frkplace Organization on Both
Sies 0 the Iron Curtain. Cambridge: Harvard U P, 1964.
Tallard, Michele. Bargaining over New Tchnolog and Nw Forms 0 Democrac in the
Firm. Interational Sociological Association (ISA) , 1990.
Tanasijevic, Vera, and Zivojin Kojic. "Qatity of Information Available to
Workers on the Rights of Workers! Conferences. [Obavestenost radnika
rudnika, topionice I rafnacije bakra Bor 0 prava zbora.] " Socrloski
Pegled 10. 1-3 (1 976) : 35-45.
Teulings, A. W. M. "A Political Bargaining Theory of Co-Detemlination An
Empirical Test for the Dutch System of Organizationa Democracy."
Oganization Studies 8. 1 (1 987) : 1-24.
"Representation of Workers Interest and Consultation in the Dutch
Works Counci." Socilog Neerlandica 5.2 (1970) : 80-102
"Representing Employee Interests : Works Councils and the Rank and
File: Representation Stategies and Avoidance Rituals ." Economic and
Industrial Deocac 9.2 (1 988) , 179-195.
H. ]. L. Voets. "The Function of the Works Council. [Het Functioneren
van de Ondernemingsraad.] " Mens en Onderneming 25. 2 (1971) ,
108-119.
Thir, Alfred L. The laise Pomise 0 Codetermination: The Changng Nature 0
Euroean frkers ' Prticipatn. Toronto: Lexington Books, 1980.
Toth, Andras. "The Invention of Works Councils in Hungary." Eurpean
Joural ofIndustri Relations 3.2 (1997), 161-1 81.
Turer, Lowell. "Works Councils : Consultation, Representation , and
Cooperation in Industrial Relations." Industrial and Labor Relations Review
50.4 (1997) , 707-708.
Vanek, Jan. 1Economics Ifrkersi Management: A Yugoslav case study. London:
Allen and Unwin, 1972.
Van der Bruggen, A. L. A. , and]. F. den Hertog. "Workers! Participation at
the Departmental Level. [Werkoverleg op afdelingsniveau] ." Mens e
Ondeeming 30.6 (1976) , 334-353.
FURTER READINGS 219
van Holle, Roland. "Twent-Five Years of Works Council in Belgium.
[Vijfentwintig jaar Ondernemingsraden in Belgie.]" Mens en Onderig
28.4 (1974) , 232-247.
Van Hoorn, Th. P., and H. C. Dekker. "Social Reporting at a Crossroad?
(Sociale verslaggeving op een tweesprong?]" Mens en Oreing 31.3
(1977) , 127-1 99.
Vinogradov, ` Workersi Control Over Poduction: Past and Pesent. Moscow:
Novosti Press Agency Pub. House, 1973.
Visser, jelle. "Works Councils and Unions i the Netherlands: Rivals or
Allies?" Netherlands Joural i Socil Sciences 29. 1 (1993) : 64-92.
Weston, Syd, and Miguel Martinez Lucio. "Trade Unions, Management and
European Works Councils : Opening Pandorafs Box?" Intertonal
Joural if Human Resource Management 8.6 ( 1997) , 764-779.
Wheeler, Sally. "Works Councils : Toward Stakeholding?" Jourl if Law and
Scit 24. 1 (1 997) : 44-64.
Windmuler, john P. "Industrial Democracy and Industrial Relations." Annals
i the American Acady qfPlitical and Socil Science 431 (1 977) : 22-31.
"Perspectives i n Dutch Labor Relations." Mens en Onderneming 24.2
(1970), 136-141.
Wirth, David A. "Trade Union Rights in te Workersi State: Polad and the
ILO." Dever Joural i Intetional Law and Poli 13 ( 1984/1 985) ,
269-282.